^ * \ + 1 ^ v ^ *p x 0o <\ *° ;#' ^ Ji \ * \V ^ ,# '+*• -^ -*> % % FACTS MESMERISM, ANIMAL MAGNETISM WITH REASONS FOR A DISPASSIONATE INQI IRT INTO IT. BY THE B BARE TOWHSHfcND, A.M., ITl ii\n. C11 W ITH AN A IT I LINING THE i i r THE I COMMITTEE OH BOSTON: CHARLES C. LITTLE AND JAMES BROWN. MDCCCILI. Gift W. 1*. Shoemaker 7 S '06 BOSTON: PRINTED BY FREEMAN AND BOLLES, WASHINGTON STREET. u (7( ADVERTISEMENT TO THE BOSTON EDITION. rt A cottbse of Lectures on M \ or Animal Magnetism^ accompanied with an exhibition of its effects, has recently been delivered in this city by Dr. Collyer. The public atten- tion, which lias by this mean- been attracted to the subject, has the publication of an American edition of Pro!' twnshend't work. It was proposed at first to omit a co le portion of the volume, that it might thus be mamment, and sim- ply with the addition of i t. The principal inch led to lb de81gn W88, a conviction that Mr. Townshend is a writer of no ordinary character and power: and that few of those who might feel desirous ofpos- Lisfied with B mutilated copy. lion and belief, that the whole id character of the work are such a- will ':. elevate the subject of Hesmerii re the low ami vu! . on which it lias too often been pr« at least upon respect- able footing. And even thosewho may continue to be incrcd- ulou 1 to the reality of the Metnierie phenomena^ may yet be gratified and instructed by the penetration, the sagacity, the sound learning and the liberal philosophy, which are brought to bear upon and elucidate the subject; as well as warmed and improved by the deep moral feeling and tone of religious sentiment, by which the whole is pervaded. INTRODUCTORY EPISTLE. TO JOHN ELLIOTSON, M.D. Caotab. F.R.S. Mv hi.\K Sir, Oh seeing thai 1 dedicate the following pa{ to you, the world will, perhaps, be kind enough to — "Here is a Coalition!" [not the less fear- lead] place the work under jrour auspices; trusting that some persons at least may conceive that two may be of one mind on a subject, and jrel guiltless of a conspiracy against Church or State — Truth 01 Sci- no . Ami what if we are ranged under the same banner] Union is not Treason; — and I trust that there is no harm in our being equally impressed with onviction of the reality of Mesmerism, and equally animated bj a resolution to disclose honestly that winch we know certainly. Here, then, is our coali- tion — if any one bo chooses to term it. — a coalition to defend truth — and not to spread imposture. Perhaps, however, it may be as well to state (lest wo should leave too much to the sagacity of those who smell a plot in everj thing), that I have pursued my mesmerical researches entirely apart from four self; nay. on the oth«r side of the Channel ; and that, vet more, we were but recently made acquainted, by letter only — through the medium of a mutual friend, who is not a mesmeriser, hut a public functionary VI INTRODUCTORY EPISTLE. and man of letters. Again : let it be known that I never had the pleasure of seeing you till within the last two months ; though, indeed, I must add, that I think it a loss not to have made your acquaintance earlier. It was said of some great man — Burke, I think, — that you could not stand up with him under a shed during a shower of rain, without finding out that you were in company with a fine genius. The remark may be applied, with some diversity, in most cases. Our first impressions of persons are often an instinctive judgment, of which our after feelings towards them are only a development ; and. with regard to yourself in particular, I am not singular in remarking, that to converse with you, but for a quarter of an hour, is to carry away a pledge of your honor as a gentleman, and of your sincerity as man of principle ; and this, independently of the knowledge that, to the cause of truth, you have made every sacrifice except that of integrity. I must sp< my opinion, — though at the risk of being suspected of flattery. You, at least, shall not have the credit of countenancing the panegyric, as this letter will only be read by you on the day it is given to the public. These things ought to be known : — for they are testimony to mesmerism. Here are two persons, in different countries, wholly unconnected, setting out on an inquiry by different paths, and yet meeting, at length, in one common conclusion and point of union. As regards myself, 1 may affirm that no one could possibly have taken up and pursued a subject more independently, or in a more unbiassed manner than INTRODUCTORY EPISTLE. Vll I have taken up and pursued mesmerism. I have not drawn my ideas of it from books, but from expe- rience : I have even abstained from reading articles on it. lest I should lose the originality and freshness of personal observation. But I need not insist on this. My \\«>rk itself contains internal testimony that our coincidence of opinion i- honest, not concerted ; — lor. in truth, we differ while wc agree. I have not described, because I have never seen, the curious delirium, and coma, which some of your patients have* displayed. Nol being myself of the medical profession, I have naturally treated mesmerism as a phenomenon of our nature, rather than as a curative means; and the maladies, which you have bo sue- rfully combated by the n« w v. have of course produced modifications in in action, which the healthy subjects to whom I have confined my pra< Jd not have displayed. However various the i neric d tents portrayed 1>\ me, the principal a of the have been similarly eh <•<[ throughout, inv object being to delineate that species of mesmeric sleepwaking, which, I conceive, ma) be i/i WHICH RENDEB it a SUBJECT Dinii i 1.1 TO BE t I Having bad man] opportunities of convincing my- self that man can i< ally influence his fellow in the manner called mesmeric, 1 have determined to ar- range and classify the phenomena, relative to this influence, which have fallen under nay observation, in the hope of reducing them to a few simple and general principles. In thus coming forward, 1 am fully aware of the obstacles which I have to encoun- ter. The fatal word Imposture has tainted the sub- ject of my inquiry ; and Ridicule, which is not the test of truth, has beep pressed into the service of talent, in order to annihilate the supposed absurdity before the dread ordeal of a laugh. MESMERISM. But it is not only the witty who have set up mes- merism as the mark of their fine arrows ; men of science have attacked it, because they could not make it harmonize with their preconceived notions ; and many of the Galens of our day, instead of wisely taking it under their patronage, and into their own hands, have treated it with a desperation of hostility : — as if, were it allowed to flourish, their glory was tarnished and their " occupation gone." What is worse, some of the friends and supporters of mesmerism have done it more disservice than it- bitterest foes. Instead of Betting before the world the simplest features of the new discovery, the] have at once produced to view its most astounding marvels, thus dazzling into blindness the eyes which, by a more cautious conduct, they might have taught to see. Then it cannot be denied that the name <>f Mesmerism, or Animal bfagnetism, has sometimes served as a watchword to exploded quackery and impudent deceit: and who does not know how diffi- cult it is to separate the merits of any doctrine from the faults of its partisans"; Mesmerism has occa- sionally been found in company with the vicious and the designing ; and its good repute has suffered ac- cordingly. Another circumstance has contributed to the dis- grace of this unfortunate subject. In its palmy daj B, when De Maineduc plunged his visionary fing into the stomachs of gouty earls and dyspeptic mar- chionesses, nothing less was expected from the new remedy than the renovation of human nature, and an absolute conquest over all diseases. That it should MESMERIC. O subsequently full into oblivion, will not astonish those who have observed the invariable fate of every fash- ionable panacea — of Peruvian bark, for example. From thinking that it can perform everything, men doubt whether it is capable of anything; and the more extravagant have been the hopes which it has excited, the more deep is the disgust which disap- pointment naturally creates. But mesmerism has been looked upon as worse than false or DUgatDry. Many, who have believed in its powers, have believed only to tremble. Cre- dulity has done it worse service than incredulity. It has been proscribed as an unholy thing; books have been written upon its dangers ; the good Cath- olic crosses himself when he name- it ; and the ful Protestant 9 even if he hesitat* s to brand it as diabolical, think- at least that ii may be prostituted to evil purposes. A.nd bo it undoubtedly may be. But thru the same objection applies to all that is most beneficial upon earth. All great engines are capable ot great p« rversion. This is tacitly allowed in the whole conduct of life. Jfel we do not abstain from the use of fire because it can destroy, nor from the medical application of laudanum because it is a poison. That the world's quarrel against mesmerism should be so verj bitti i. is hardly accounted for by any of the foregoing considerations. Primd facie, one would that there were attractions in this despised doc- trine, more than sufficient to countervail every ob- jection that might be brought against it. Fond lis we are ot" the shadowy and the unknown, its very mys- 4 MESMERISM. tery might seem congenial to our nature ; and even those vague suspicions concerning its sinfulness which hover darkly around it, might be supposed to have a charm for man — the wilful — who rushes to the for- bidden with so keen a zest. But there is a sort of unexplained odium attached to mesmerism, which quells curiosity and deadens interest. From this odium it appears almost necessary that I should n my subject, before entering fully upon it : I must secure a hearing before I can plead my cause : I must show that there is in it. If no inherent fault, which can justly exclude it from B (air and candid examination. This end, as it appears to inc. I shaD best attain by exposing the primary causes which have degraded mesmerism; and !>v showkig thai these are extrinsic to itself. Having done this, 1 propose, also, to touch upon the reasons that make the subject 1 have chosen not only distasteful to the genera] reader, but of e\trem« difficulty to the Author himself. First. The original cause of the ill reception which mesmerism has met with from the world. i< undoubt- edly to be found in the character of its discover* r — Mesmer, — in his want of candor and philosophic strictness. Had it been introduced to notice bj a Newton or an Arago, by one who would have Stat his facts honestly, and drawn from them none but legitimate conclusions, the difference erf its car may be estimated by all who are aw are how much depends upon a propitious beginning. Hut unfortu- nately, from the very outset, mesmerism was ftSSO* ciated with the soiling calculations of self-intepM, MESMERISM. 5 and the errors of an over-heated brain. Mesmer wished to make a monopoly of that which should have been the property of all mankind: he sold his secret — he bartered for gold his future tame and the reputation of his fading subject; 1 and. Losing the light which emanates only from an upright spirit, he became the dupe of his own miracles, bo miserably to Burroilnd his really simple and sublime discov- er] with fictitious terrors and misleading puerilities, The result of this moral and 8CW lltific suicide has been the degradation of im. First associa- tions are, from the verj law of our minds, all but indestructible; and therefore it is that with a few original thinkei to replace the subject on its true and ive footing — namely, its own merits. The false teas been to blended with the true, that it is no wonder that both should be rejected togi ther. Tin come not :<> us pure, hni from a fountain head that is itself disturbed and sullied ; bo that, instead of ling forth into a lu- cid mirror, reflecting h< aven and earth, and enliven- ing all around, thej fee in a thick and blinding marsh. Had mesmerism been announced to the world, not as a studied enigma, but in the form of a simple proposition ; had all men been invited to test the truth erf the principle, and to investigate the laws of n- operation ; had it been practised in unostenta- 1 Injustice t«> the memory of Mesmer, it should be stated that against tin* tact <>!' b 9 liundn d louii to each candidate foi initiation, should i ertain ejet* at'mir circumstances, srhich are related in Mr. Colquhoun's Isis Rerelata, vol. i. p. 2 r O MESMERISM. tious privacy instead of crowded assemblies ; had there been in the chambers devoted to its service, neither mystical machines nor exciting music, no convulsionaries, no hysterical women ; had mesmer- ism from the first appeared that which it eminently is — a spirit of calmness and of reason ; then had it interested the scientific and conciliated the wise ; then had it been transmitted to the present age pure and unenveloped by the mists of prejudice. The mere fact that man can produce a kind of dumber in his fellow-man by a few and simple means, surely not to be confounded with the heap <>t absur- dities attached to it. To say that the one ia inextri- cably and necessarily linked with the other, were want of sense as well as of candor : and. unless we choose to admit a principle which would [pake even our religion answerable for the sins committed in it- name, we must allow that mesmerism ifl in no way affected either by the errors of its partisans 01 the prepossessions of its enemies. Secondly. As mesmerism was ill-omened in its birth, so also was it unfortunate in its baptism,. Shakspeare's often-quoted query finds here, if no where else, its answer : — and we are forced to reply — There is much in a name, except where true love or true philosophy renders the mind insensible to those externals which are all in all with the general- ity of mankind. The disservice rendered to mesmerism by its name. is this: — It has turned men from true inquiry, and. like a tub thrown out to the whale, has served a- an object of attack, while the real point in debate has MESMERISM. 7 remained untouched altogether. We have asked whether such a power BE mesmerism exists; when we should rather have demanded whether there is a statt so denominated. It will at once he seen in what material respects the two questions differ. The first presumes, even while it professes to seek, a cific cause for certain phenomena; — the second merely regards the phenomena themselves, and in- quires — Do such and such foots exist! Bach in- quiry should be kept carefully distinct, and vet they have uniortunan l\ been mixed up together ; or rather an unhappy priority has been granted to the fust, in- volving the rery existence of the second. For it is plain that when wr demand, " I- there such a power as mesmerism?" the answer may ever be - A T o ; " and then, b common injustice, we extend the ative ovei the n bole question, there being but f< \\ who will n<»i confound b mistake and the object mistaken in one general anathema. EHd ire, bow- r, clearlj perceive that " Power i§ nothing more than the relation of one object, or event, as invaria- bly antecedent to anothei objed <>r event/ 3 ' we should perceive thai thi called mesmeric, have as much claim to !><• considered realiti< b, as if indeed there hh n a magnetic power 01 influence. ( tf the error of the mesmerists in bestowing an ill- judged appeUatkm, the opposite party have taken ample advantage. They have thrust forward the unl men into the very van of discussion, and have thus compelled an inquiry into the cause »wn'l Philosophy of the Human Mind. 8 MESMERISM. of mesmerism, before the phenomena could be well considered. Surely it must be conceded that so singular an inversion of true philosophical investiga- tion cannot but have proved highly detrimental to the subject of our discussion. In what other matter have we acted so strangely as to inquire into the se- cret cause, before men are well agreed respecting the visible effects ? Do we not, in conducting an important analysis, first ascertain the phenomena, their characteristics, and the circumstances under which they appear ; and then, after long and (archil induction, name — but with caution — sonic pervad- ing principle into which they may all be harmoni- ously resolved? Not only is it natural thus to com- mence a course of reasoning with what is nearest to our apprehensions, but, by so doing, we secure that essential requisite to an argument — a firm and un- debatable ground, where both lie who would con- vince, and he who is to be persuaded, may meet as on a neutral territory, and. taking a common point for starting, be advantaged with at least a probability of arriving at a common conclusion. Pacta arc this neutral ground ; — tacts are this point o( vantage : — for it is to be remarked that respecting outward and visible phenomena there is ordinarily but little differ- ence of opinion, while, in reference to hidden can-.-. men ever are and must be divided. For instance, every one knows the sensation of light, and may convince himself, if he pleases, that under such and such circumstances, such and such phenomena do occur. So far mankind are agreed : but when we would assign the primary cause of light and its phe- MESMERISM. \) nomena. we find the war commenced, and opinions for divided — some adopting the undulatory theory, while others fondly cling to the Newtonian doctrine of emitted n It ig do wonder, then, that the premature assump- tion of a specific cause for the phenomena of mes- meric somnambulism should have shocked men in the outset, and have indisposed them, through the medium of their prejudices, tor calm investigation. Under this head of offence may he classed, also, such technical expr< - "magnetised water." "mag* netised tree-.*' Ac. The ideas, which these terms convey, are vague and unpleasing. Who can tell that thrir Humming miiij>I\ i-. — water, or trees, breathed upon, or touched l>\ the band, after a cer- tain formula: Th< vocabulary of «\ti\ science has been, to the uninitiated, foolishness; — but the no- menclature of mesmerism is worse: it has been a re-crow even to the \\ ise. I confess that of all the causes, which have con- tributed to render mesmerism unpopular, this is to me the most discouraging. To make a dispute ver- bal is to make it endless, and the erroneous way in which our subject ha- been considered] has transferred its merits from things to words — a sad and barren — All hope of an accommodation between the friends and foes of mesmerism is thus rendered doubtfuL How, indeed, can they calmly discuss the matter, when the first hare mention of it i^ a sort of Slogan or battle-yell, that raises a conflict sufficient to drown the voice of Reason for ever? How shall they decide a truth, whose late depends upon the 10 MESMERISM, propriety or impropriety of its name? How shall they adjudge the real business in hand , seeing that preliminaries can never be adjusted ? The subject has indeed fallen into the very Chancery Court of Philosophy. That men should be so easily entrapped into pur- suing a shadow, while the substance has eluded their observation, may seem strange ; but, words being the media of our thoughts, we are naturally so influenced by them that even the most clear-judging find it diffi- cult not to be diverted by a verbal inaccuracy from more important matters. The fate of Hartley's The- ory of Sensation is a proof of this. All the world fastened so vehemently upon the unlucky term u vi- bration," and were so intent upon proving that the soft and loose chords, which compose the nervous system, could never properly be said to vibrate, that the true merits of a very beautiful hypothesis \\ overlooked. Thirdly. Nearly connected with the erroneous naming of mesmerism, is the circumstance next in order, which lias thrown a blight over its preten- sions, — I mean the decision, in its disfavor, of the French Academy, in 1784. Since then, it has been considered as worse than unexamined ; — it has been conceived to have undergone examination, and to have been found worthless. Since then, to revive an interest upon such a condemned subject has been nearly as impossible as to restore life to a corpse by galvanism. Since then, instead of a mystery, it has been regarded as a delusion : and the world has turned away from it with the same sort of fiat disap- MESMERISM. 11 pointment which we experience, when, after having trembled at the haunted chambers, dusky veils, and heaving coverlids of a romance, we are chilled into our sober senses by the earthly explanations of its concluding pages. The magician's wand is broken forever: we like to be frightened, but hate to find ourselves deceived. The attractive ever perishes with the supernatural. But to those who read and inquire for themselves, there is nothing whatever in the decision of the French Academy of Science which can be considered bus destructive of mesmer- ism. What is it that the Academy decided? Few know, — few care to inquire. A general impression has gone abroad, thai mesmerism received, in 1784, its coup '/' graa ; and there men are content to let the matter rest ; \^r are they not thus Baved the trouble of thinking i I low pleasant to believe in the eternal banishment of a subject, concerning which, the idle, the self-interested, and the prejudiced have • their several motives for saying, els some honest churchman did of the Aihanasian ( freed, " I wish we wen- well rid of it." The blessed consummation is not, however, so i asj of attainment ; for what is the truth? The French Academj merely decided that there was not sufficient o to -how that the phenomena called magnetic are caused by the action of a fluid. A.8 to the phenomena themselves the idemy not only allow- I >ut, as it appears to me. concede - i ; .< real question in debate, in terms the most explicit. These are the very words in which the examiners sum up their report "Ce que nous avous appris, oii, du mom-, ce qui nous a etc con- 12 MESMERISM. firme d'une maniere demonstrative efevidente par Pexamen des procedes du magnetisme, c'est que Vhomme pent agir sur Vhomme a tout moment, et presque a volonte, en frappant son imagination ; c'est que les gestes, et les signes les plus simples peuvent avoir les plus puissans effets ; c'est que Taction de 1'homme sur l'imagination peut-etre reduite en art, et conduite par une methode, sur des sujets qui out la foi." ' Translating the above as literally as possible, we find that the Commissioners have thus expressed themselves : — " That which we have learnt, or, at least, that which has been proved to us, in a clear and satisfac- tory manner, by our inquiry into the phenomena of mesmerism, is — that man can an upon man, at all times and almost at will, by striking his imagination : — that signs and gestures the most simple may pro- duce the most powerful effects: that the action of man upon the imagination may be reduced loan art, and conducted after a certain method, when exer- cised upon patients who have faith in the proceed- ings." The above passage will show that the French Academy decidedly agrees with the first promo of mesmerism as to the existence of certain remark- able phenomena : it is only respecting the cause that the two are at issue ; the one asserting that it i- a fluid — the other that it is imagination. Whether 1 Expose des Experiences qui ont etc faitos pour l'Exameo du Magnetisme Animate. Pans. 17^4. MESMERISM. 13 the latter may not herein be as guilty of a nonsequi- tur as the former, we may hereafter consider. At present I merely remark that, granting the magnetic phenomena to spring from the imagination, we do not thereby condemn them to contempt, or oblivion; far less do ire (as Borne persona seem to suppose) abrogate them altogether* Were mesmerism only viewed as illustrative of the mind's influence upon the organization, it would hold out high claims to notice. What subject, we may ask, is more fertile of important reflections? Materialists, curiously enough, adduce it to disprove mesmerism, which makes against their news of man ■s a mere machine — of thought as a mere elabora- tion ot* the brain; — but, in so doing, they open a field of speculation^ which the] would be sorry to enter upon further than they find convenient In the \< rj terms of their dissent, they admit of two thin- - of a wholly different nature — that is, the imagination and the organization; — the first not only modifying the action of the latter, but actually mastering it altogether. Granting that the imagina- tion can influence the bodily frame to the extent al- lowed by the French Academy in its report on mes- merism; if what thej saj In- true: — "Nous avons mi ['imagination exalted devenue assez puissante pour faire perdre en un instant la parole." — u We have i the imagination, when exalted,, become powerful enough to make a person lose the faculty of speech in a moment : " — if we believe this, then indeed we admit of a motive force, to which we can hardly Bet bounds, and which makes mesmerism, with all its 2 14 MESMERISM, pretensions, a feeble and unnecessary agent. The supposition of an existing fluid can add nothing to miracles like these. By demonstrating the omnipo- tence of mind over organization, the opponents of mesmerism prove too much. They bring us to a point where it is only one analogical step further to inquire, whether the force, which can so act on the organization to which it is attached, may not, perad- venture, extend its influence to a sphere external to itself? For peremptorily answering this question in the negative, we can assign no reason, but that ex- ternal offices for such an agent come not within the pale of our experience; — and reasoning like this we cannot but reject as an effectual bar to all inquiry whatever. We must remember that human experi- ence is ever on the increase, and that there exists not one power, even the most palpable, of which we can affirm that we have ascertained all the functions. There is not a discovery of modern times, but teaches us that the force which performs some things where- of we are cognizant, may also perforin others of which we have, as yet, no notion whatever. Let my reader bear in mind, that I by no means affirm that the imagination is the agent in mesmerism, in- ternally or externally. All I mean to assert is. that the careful French Academy, and their subsequent followers, have gone further than the magneti* themselves, in attributing power to mind, and in re- lating wonders to prove that power. Say what we will, the important point in mesmerism. — the influ- ence of man upon his fellow. — was conceded by the French Academy in no doubtful terms : — through MESMERISM. 15 the imagination, it is true ; yet still it is conceded. The imagination is but considered as the means ; man is still the agent. Are the phenomena them- selves altered by being referred to the imagination, instead of a magnetic fluid? Not in the least. Do we comprehend them better. when so referred? By no means. We onlv seem so to do, because in the one case they are referred to a cause of which we cannot but confess oui ignorance ; while, in the other, they are attributed to the action of a power which we think (how vainly !) that we comprehend. Fourthly. The fourth cause, which has banished iip-iih li-in from the rank and position to which it is entitled, is the early attempt to assimilate it to the certain sciences in an erroneous manner. In our researches into the discover] of fcfesmer, we bave, from the beginning, struck into a path which never could lead 08 tO the desired end; and then, most unreasonably, we bave charged upon the subject of our inquiry the fault which existed in ourselves. Because we bave found nothing, when we did not k aright, we have impatiently concluded that there was nothing whatever to be found. Perhaps the error has originated with the Mesmerists them- selves. To secure the suffrage of scientific men for their favorite pursuit is evidently desirable. How should they accomplish tin-: 'The da\< are long since past, in which men were content to reason after the vague mode of the Aristotelian philosophy , which leant upon conjecture rather than experiment, and discussed absurdities as gravel] as the ordinary phe- nomena of nature. The world has reached an era, 16 MESMERISM. in which facts, attested by the senses, "independent of the human will, and invariably reproduced under the same circumstances, can alone engage the atten- tion of the learned. With the scientific men of our day, (and far be it from me to censure this) certainty is the great object. In order, then, to claim the no- tice and the fostering protection of science, the friends of mesmerism have long endeavored to identify their presumed agent with physical forces, already ascer- tained and of invariable action. In their principle, perhaps, they are right — in its application. wrong altogether. Forgetting that mesmerism is a mental and vital, not less than physical phenomenon, and that mind and life are in perpetual opposition to the laws of the material world, they have endeavored to recognise in mesmerism an operation as constant as that of the galvanic battery, or the electric rial, A certain school of German writers, ef reason tin \ are n..i leulated to awake disgust A icience that is misconceived la- bor- under peculiar disadvantages. Thus, then, till the initial Btep towards a comprehension of mesmer- ism be taken anew, there ba no hope that it will ever be understood <>r appreciated. Why unavailingly seek to reduce it to a formula of which it is insus- ceptible; if we ascribe it to a power already ascer- tained, why not treat it, at least, as an entirely new function of that power: Why limit it to what we know, when possibly it may be destined to extend the boundaries of our knowledge} Why are we to be trammeled with foregone conclusions i Vet upon these vet) restrictions, the opponents of mesmerism insist : thus taking away from men the means of in- 2* 18 MESMERISM. vestigating the agency in question, by Torcing them to set about it in the wrong way. The case is the more perplexing, inasmuch as this apparent unfairness is grounded on instinctive pro- pensities of our nature, with which it were vain to quarrel, since they are actually a part of man's most valuable inheritance and absolutely essential to the whole conduct of life. That attraction towards sens- uous objects, which is fitted to a being that lives in a visible and tangible world, draws us inevitably away from whatever shuns the senses to that which may be seen and handled; and that constitution of our minds, which leads us to rely mi the invariable) i of nature's sequences, necessarily brings with it a love of the certain and the permanent. With tendencies like these, at once to be cherished and guarded against, it is difficult to deal. Thus reflecting, I am not sur- prised at the hostile reception which mesm< rism has met with in almost every quarter — I see that it could not have been otherwise. Unfortunately too, those men who are the last to he gained over, air generally the best worth gaining; while those whose habits of mind lead them to embrace the now doctrine without hesitation, are mostly visionaries, who find themselves more at home in the affairs of heaven than of earth, and are ever more disposed to speculate wildly than to submit to the rules of strict and severe analysis. But, on the other hand, let it not be forgotten that it is the province of man to mount from the known to the unknown, and to reason from that w hich can be seen to that which is invisible. If one strong instinct teaches us to repose in the objects which lie MESMERISM. 19 open to our immediate apprehension, another not less powerful calls us imperatively to rise to the detection of secret causes. And true wisdom consists in the just balance of these two contending propensities. Nor are we invited to ascend beyond the level of more obvious things by the constitution of our minds alone. Between the quenchless desire of our bosoms, and the dispositions of the external world, there is a harmony as perfect a- it i- beautiful. The simplest of nature's sequences, should we trace it further up the scale, conducts as inevitably t<> somewhat beyond our visual ken. while at the same time we are encou- raged t<> proceed] by our success in analyzing the in- visible and ascertaining the obscure. For instance, by imperceptible exhalation and absorption, there is carried on throughout the world a perpetual loss and gain, conversion of substance, and exchange of pow- er, which i- scarcel] conceivable, yel which man, in many instances, has reduced t<> rule and expressed in number. We have measured the undulations of light, and the Waves of SOUnd. The microscope has slmwn ns worlds, <>f which our unassisted senses have no cognizance ; and science, aided by the telescope, ha- traced from stars, unseen by the naked eye, the one great law of attraction prevailing to the very verge of ascertained creation. Ought we. then, in any case, to torn away from facts that indicate a hidden influence, merelj because that influence has net yet been tested by the » uses? Even our con- duct in earthly matters will reprove us here, or the machinery, wrought by human hand-, the results alone are present d to vulgar view, while it is left to 20 MESMERISM. the thoughtful and the wise, to explore the finer springs and hidden motory powers. How much more, then, in viewing the mechanism of the uni- verse, should we believe that we discern, as it were, only the hands and the dial-plate, while, behind these, " wheel within wheel involved " is hidden from our gaze, in order to tempt our inquiry, and to deve- lope the higher part of our nature by the stimulus of curiosity ? There is, then, in the nature of things no necessity that mesmerism, because it is recondite, should be unexplored. To investigate it may indeed be diffi- culty but appears to be rather enjoined than forbid- den — enjoined by the tendencies of mind, not 1 than by the constitution of matter. It may. how- ever, still be urged in reply, that the variableness, which must be granted, in some respects, to charac- terize mesmerism, is the true disqualification which debars it from the realms of science. How. may it be argued, can that which is confessedly irregular be shaped into a system : how can phenomena, which contradict each other at every turn, admit of classifi- cation ? I answer that such an objection, if carried out into a principle, would effectually arrest the progress of all human knowledge. It would make us rest satis- fied with the apparent and the superficial, when we should be striving after the real and the profound. It would make our own imperfect observation the measure of Nature's regularity. Are we entitled to conclude, in any case. that, because we have not hitherto been able to assign a law to certain opera- MESMERISM. 21 tions, they are therefore absolutely without law ? Are we to assert that the orderly dispositions of the universe are deformed by a monstrous exception, or is it not wiser to believe that our own knowledge is in fault, whenever Nature appears inconsistent with herself! Surely we have enough order around us to SUggeftl that all. which to us seems chance, is "direction which we cannot Bee?" that all apparent anomalies arc but like those discords which, in the most masterly music, prepare the transitions from one noble passage to another, and are actually essen- tial to the general harmony. In many instances, this is not mere conjecture. Il<>w much <>f fancied im- pel frctum and disorder has Red before our investiga- tion '. The motions of comets at first appear to offer an exception to the exact arrangements of the uni- verse. The] traverse all parts of the heavens. Their path- have every possible inclination to the plane of the ecliptic; and, unlike the planets, the motion of more than half of those, which have ap- peared, has been retrograde; — that is, from East to West. 1 JTel have we been able to detect the ele- ments of regularity in the midst of all this seeming confusion, and to predict with certainty the day, the hour, and the minute, of a comet's return to our re- gion of the sky. Experience also shows that apparently insulated and lawless phenomena may not only be reduced to a law. hut to a well-known law; — that many a fa- miliar agent puts on strange disguises : and that 1 Mrs. Somerville's Connection of the Physical Sciences. Page 22 MESMERISM. events, with which, in their mazy channels, we seem to be unacquainted, may be perfectly recognised by us at their source. Thus galvanism and the mag- netic force are proved by recent discoveries to be only forms of electricity ; showing that a fact may be altered — not in itself, but in the circumstances that surround it, and that complexity of develop- ment is perfectly consistent with unity of design. Instances like these, while they encourage us to in- quiry, should teach us to believe that all which is needed to vindicate the regularity of nature is a more extended observation on our parts. Far, then, from granting that mesmerism is de- barred from the province of strict analysis by an ap- parent irregularity, I cannot admit that there exist! in it one disqualification, that has not equally been shared, at one time or other, by every science. All that I concede, is that it is in a different stage of its existence, compared with subjects of ascertained knowledge. It must not be likened to optics, CM hydrostatics, in their actual development, but to those sciences in their dim and early condition ; when rude guesses were accepted as substitutes fot truth, and when objects were discerned as mistily as the landscape is — 11 What time the shepherd, Mowing- of his nails. Can neither call it perfect day nor night." There is indeed this difference — the ad\auces that we have made in knowledge, generally, render it more easy for us to study any subject in particular. Still mesmerism (represented indeed by some as in MESMERISM. 23 its dotage) is but in its infancy, and it is a folly to call upon it to exhibit the features of a riper age. Moreover the uncertainties of mesmerism have been much exaggerated. I may ask. can that be so irregular an influence, which the French Academy, in the heigh! of its learned displeasure, acknowledged was capable of being conducted by art and method? My own experiments, also, will hereafter show that it exhibits a definite u form and pressure," and justify the conjecture that it may have its own laws of cer- tainty, though not precisely those to which we would refer it. On the whole it appears, there IS DO reason to con- clude that mesmerism, because once wrongly pre- sented to science, should never be presented to science ;it all ; — that because its agent has not been analyzed, it is therefore unfit tor analysis; or that because often erroneously identified with known forces it should at no time be found to be connected with them j but — Fifthly. Our impatience of whatever we cannot account for, has prevented, and will. I fear. Ion- pre- vent mesmerism from being rightly examined, or even from being classed generally amongst realities. This cause, at the basis of all the others, which have, at any time, operated most powerfully against mesmerism, deserves <>nr particular attention. This it i-. which induced the friends of mesmerism to bestow on it a name, and refer it to agents, which, by seeming to indicate its origin, should render it easier of belief. This it is, which led the members of the French 24 MESMERISM. Academy of Sciences — not being ablfc to get rid of it altogether — to banish it to the airy realms of the imagination. And this it is, which, at the present day, can alone explain the standing miracle — as great as that of mesmerism itself — namely, that facts, which have been witnessed by thousands, should be rejected as if no testimony to their truth had ever been offered. If in inquiring into the deep grounds of this sin- gularity, I should trespass op my reader's patience, let the following consideration plead my excuse. Every secret cause of the judgments we form, in which the constitution of our own minds is con- cerned, requires to be thoroughly probed and exhib- ited in its soundness or unsoundness ; lor how shall we attain to certain truth, unless sure of the princi- ples on which we seek it ? A- he. who would take an observation of the sun must first ascertain that his instrument is correct, so must we. before examining nature, duly regulate the organ of our perception. Whence, then. ari>e> it, that with the world in general, " 1 comprehend not." is equivalent to " I do not believe ? " Many of our most important and habitual modes of thinking would seem to revolt against this error. Granting that whatever is beyond the pale of our knowledge is a delusion, we. by parity of reasoning, must deny the existence of ourselves, and. conse- quently, of all external things: for the soul i< an unsolved problem, and man is the great anomaly of creation. Yet thus do we not argue? On the con- trary, we not only acknowledge that we are. but o KESMEltiSM. 25 not to inquire what we are. ever studying the volume of our intellectual being, in order to discover some law. which should be to mind what attraction is to matter, Consenting thus to take our minds as we find them, and to observe and to ascertain rather than to decide and to excommunicate, why is it that, on bo many other occasions, we pursue a directly itrary course \ For this reason. With regard to ourselves, our own consciousness compels us to begin by recognising the reality of certain phenomena; but, with regard to other things, we are at liberty to speculate before we ( \aniine. 1/nIess restrained by some -non- controlling force, our natural tendency is i \< i to rush onwttrd i<> causi - and conclusions — t<> simplify and to g< w ralize— and hence to dismiss from our consideration what \« r does not harmonize with our own systems. This propensitj to resolve the complex and the partial into the simple and ulti- mate appears t«. be a pan «,t' our original constitu- tion, and is one <»t" those strong impulses which seem made to ram us too tar. lesl they should tail of car- rying a- tar enough. By if we trace that unity amidst variety, winch stamps creation a- the work of one hand: hut by it also we are led to invert the true proa - of n asoning, and i<» -natch at the higher antecedents of nature's sequences, before we have brought the lower within our grasp. Those compre- hensive principles whi< h .are. m truth, the latest fruit ot ezperi< nee, We Would force to our impatience, mid mature at our pleasure. All knowledge being iden- tified with a progT --ion toward- priman causes, and primar] s being ot' necessity the simplest, we 26 MESMERISM. fall into the mistake of striving after simplicity that we may reach wisdom — whereas it is only through wisdom that a safe simplicity can be reached. In- stead of accommodating ourselves to nature, we would compel nature to accommodate herself to us. Instead of ascending cautiously from the individual to the general, we take our general rule and force the individual circumstance to bend to it. Instead of adapting our theory to our facts, like a gracefully fitting garment, we clip and torture our facta to make them suit the construction of our theory, or, should they prove especially rebellious, banish them alto- gether. This is fatal to the very clearness we aim at. To simplify rashly is but to confuse. Until we consent to view things as they are, rather than as we would make them to be, we shall advance only to be led astray. Until we learn to consent for a while to philosophic doubt, we shall never arrive at certainty. For, in truth, we are debarred from that comprehen- siveness of principle, which is so attractive to our pride by the deficiencies of our own understanding. 1 Our laws must necessarily be multiplied because ouf faculties are bounded. Nature, indeed, may be one ; but the aspect she presents to us is varied, and We 1 "I thought that the first step towards satisfying several inquir- ies, the mind of man was very apt to run into, was to take a survey of our own understandings, examine our own powers, ami see to what things they were adapted. Till tli at was done. I suspt-cted we began at the wrong end, and in vain sought for satisfaction in a quiet and sure possession of truths, that most concerned us, v we let loose our thoughts into the vast ocean of being, as if all that boundless extent were the natural and undoubted p of our understandings.'' — Locke's Essay on the Unman I standing." MESMERISM. 27 cannot climb high enough to behold her mighty land- scape subject to our gaze. Our ardent inclination to generalize thus straggling with our defect of power, how difficult ifi the task of impartially examining a new and extraordinary Agent ! Impatient of our ig- norance, and making DO estimate of our own minds, we attempt to soar into the full light of truth, with- out considering whether omr pinions may not be made of such materials efi to melt beneath its beams. From these consideratioiis it appears that the only course of investigation which is fitted to our faculties is to observe with patience, and not to be frightened from oar propriety because a phenomenon appears strange to us, either in itself or its concomitants. In a world, where it must be allowed that all is wonder- fill, <»r that nothing i- wonderful, there i- no intrinsic reason why <>nr sequence of events should be more astonishing than another. Neither Bhoukl we be afraid of multiplying laws (which are, in truth, no- thing m<»rc than " the expression of the most general circumstances, in which the phenomena to which they refer have been felt by us t<> agree 9 '), as if. l>y id doing, we offended against some unknown and mysterious power. In proposing a new law, we only adopt a convenient, and it may be, temporary expe- dient; we only mean to acknowledge that we have not sufficiently obs e r ved ;> new bet as yet to perceive ii- relationship with others, wherewith we are already acquainted. And. indeed, if offence there he. it is not of our creating. It i< the agreement or disagreement of natural phenomena by which the number of our laws IS diminished or extended. Above all. we must not for- 28 MESMERISM. get that it is not we who are to give laws to the fact, but the fact to us. We have simply to trace its im- mediate and remoter antecedents, keeping in mind that a fact is a virtual unity, and that the nobler pro- vince of analysis lies not in ingenuity of dissection but in mounting, step by step, the scale of apparently di- vergent causes until we re-unite them in one common centre ; — not in distinguishing the parent stem from the branches and the leaves, which together make up one tree, but in tracing back the tree itself to that which is the general origin of all plants — a seed. Thus Gall, as I have heard, developed the brain, instead of cutting it in pieces, and demonstrated that its convolutions were but parts of one beautiful and consistent whole. But even should we utterly fail in this. — should a phenomenon stand single and alone, and baffle all our attempts to assimilate it to aught around us, we cannot, in true philosophy, pronounce that it exists not. The circumstance that water expands when cooled down below a certain temperature, is utterly at variance with the usual law by which all substani contract under a diminution of heat. \ el we do n<»t deny that the fact is so. Surely, when we consider that every event is but one term of a series, the be- ginning and the end of which are alike lost in infinity, we should expect to trace back many a phenomenon into an obscurity that should seem impenetrable. Surely, when we reflect oh the vastness of the visible creation, and on the still vaster universe of thought : when it seems probable that our system is but one ^\ countless numbers, that are revolving round some ; MESMERISM. 29 unknown centre, in periods which thought cannot measure nor science determine ; that these, again, are peopled with various orders of intelligence, — we should rather wonder that we know so much, than that some facts should transcend our knowledge, and acquieefee ill <>nr ignorance rather than deny existence to that which we cannot comprehend. But I may be reminded that mesmerism may be one of those subject* which surpass our intellects vision : and that, if so, to examine it is superfluous, and to search for its principle a pure waste of time. Undoubtedly. But are we now. or can we be, in- deed, at any tinir. entitled to da£S mesmerism amongst Unfathomable things : It " the proper study of man- kind is man." this, as regarding man especially, pre- sent- to In- faculties a fair field of investigation ; and with respect to such legitimate subjects of inquiry, the point at which we should abandon enterprise has not yet been ascertained. While, then, we admit the difficulties that beset us on every side, let us ad- vance, and fear not. and take caution with us in our pursuit erf truth : not to check hut to steady US in our course. Discovery may be nearer to us than we suppose. 1 The enigma in which every point seems to contradict the other, may be rendered clear, per- haps, bj one word alone ; and ma\ set us wondering 1 This, above all. is not the time f«»r despair, when such a man u Ell I >1 Ins powers of learning and of observation to tli . Ueating tin- - far as ! fan jndge from th< count of Dr. E riments which ha- reached me abroad) in a spirit which seems to render any re- marks of mine useless. 3» 30 MESMERISM. that we did not sooner perceive its sirrlple solution. To me, at least, nature has just read a beautiful les- son, inculcating doubt in ourselves, trust in her, and patience to wait upon her revelations. All day the mountains were covered with a mist so uniform that, to a stranger's eye, they might have seemed like clouds, or altogether have escaped his notice ; — but at this moment there is light and clearness : and where almost a blank was, are now the glorious Alps, snow-covered, lit up with sunshine — seeming to link earth with heaven. Having now detailed, a1 too much length, perhaps, the principal causes thai have rendered mesmerism obnoxious to the world, it now only remains for me to touch briefly on one or two minor causes of offence. Mesmerism is one of nature's great resources in the cure of maladies; and it is not, therefore, wonderful, if some of its most striking effects should have been developed rather in the ailing and the delicate than in the health) and robust. Heine the world, always readv to build up error on truth, has connected it, in idea, with weakness of mind as well as of body, and has classed it amongst those idle imaginings which beset the fanciful invalid. But what is the fact? Mesmerism does, indeed, act more peculiarly on the nervous system; and. on that account, affects, in an especial manner, persons whose nervous system is finely organized. But we must not confound sensi- tiveness with imbecility. The universal temperament of genius gives the lie to such an error ; and it would be plainly ridiculous to say that the timid and sus- ceptible author of an elegy in a country churchyard, MESMERISM. 31 or Rousseau, or Pascal, 1 who were both nervous even to hypochondriaeism, wete weak in intellect, because they were strong in sensibility. Besides, before we identify mesmerism with weakness of any kind, it should be shown that none but the feeble are suscep- tible of its influence. Now, as far as my experience s, 1 can affirm, that not only doesa certain degree of intelligence appear requisite for the favorable man- ifestation of the mesmeric phenomena, but that per- sona in perfect health have frequently exhibited them. It maj also be asserted, that fear and nervous agita- tion are wholly iuc uipatible with their genuine development These may. indeed] accompany a spurious sort of mesmeric affection, but are wholly distincl from the power with which the] <<> ixist, and to which the] are invariably hurtful. The] arc the corruptions of die true faith, Bind not the faith itself. In fine, sensibility, and ma weakness, is the real con- dition on winch mesmerism depends. But u i- not only an apparent identity with weak- m ss which has degraded tin- unfortunate subject ; — it has suffered -till more from a repulsive connection with disease. The discovt rer of mesmerism was a physician, and its extraordinary curative powers have naturally placed n m medical hands; BO that of the existing work- upon it there are few- that are not written bj members of the medical profession, and fewer still that do not bear immediate reference to the treatment of maladies. This alone is sufficient after having on< • t into a river was, for a l<>n L r t : i 1 1 • - . toruiented frith the idea of being continually on the edge of a prcc; 32 MESMERISM. ■s to exclude it from general interest, and to lower its pretensions to literary consideration. Medical books are read but by a few, — ordinarily, indeed, by those alone whose vocation compels them to the perusal. To the greater part of mankind they are as closely shut as the dissecting room. It might, however, be supposed that, as all men are liable to pain and sick- ness, all would be interested in that which, at one time, claimed to be a panacea. But whatever may be said of the sufferings of humanity, the masfl of health is greater than the mass of disease ; and most persons instinctively dislike to have their well-being disturbed by hearing of remedies which they do not require, or of ailments with w Inch they cannot sym- pathize. There is something also in medical details, which is peculiarly quenching to the imagination, and consequently distasteful to the man of letter- and re- finement. It is not, then, extraordinary that mesmer- ism, treated medically, should have been restricted to a narrow sphere : but is this the fault of mesmer- ism itself? Surely not. On no subject i- it permitted to " Give up to party what's meant for mankind." The doors of this temple should he thrown widely open to the world. As mental, it regards the meta- physician and the moralist : as physical, the physiolo- gist and the man of science : and 1 would call upon each and all, separating it from its ridiculous con- comitants, to contribute to raise it to that intellectual grandeur of which it is so eminently susceptible. Such are the causes which have condemned mes- MESMERISM. 33 merism to lie beating, like a wreck, on the shore of substantial knowledge. The vessel, in itself, was beautiful and well built, but adverse currents turned it from its course, and by many a storm its sails were rent, and its noble frame was shattered. But it is not so much the causes which I have separately enumerated a- their combination which ha- marked the discovery oi' Monier with peculiar odium, and rendered it a by word and a reproach. All the circumstances which are unfavorable to mes- merism end in one fatal word — contempt. Every thing tends to raise a laugh at its expense ; — and iflSf a laugh who -hall ha\e the COUTage to con- tend : Tin- l- the last possible degradation. Men love the mysterious and the proscribed, but shrink from the ridiculous; they can bear to he thought wicked, but not to he deemed fools ; they will en- dure t«» he hated. Ian not t<> l»c despised. A<>w mes- merism ha- become not merelj a persecuted but a ridiculous faith. There i- no pomp of circumstance about it to uphold the proselyte who is called upon to defend it to the (hath. The -Ion of martyrdom for in sake is done away. There is no dignity in suffering in such a cause. Thus, then, the advocate of mesmerism comes be- fore a prejudiced tribunal, and labors under disabili- ties which it were just to hear in mind w hen we feel inclined to measure the merits of his subject by the reception with which it meets. We should, however, take hm a partial view of the case, were we lo attri- bute the writer's want of success entirely to the par- tialities of those whom he addresses. Before we can 34 MESMERISM. have a true notion of the difficulties of his undertak- ing, the causes of failure personal to himself, must also be added to the account. He has to battle not only with the minds of others but with his own — to fight his way through obstacles which arise from with- in as well as from without, and to force himself to calmness where all conspires to agitate and to excite. However difficult it may be for him to obtain a hear- ing ; to treat his subject impartially and so as best to conciliate an adversary is perhaps a still harder task. He is his own worst enemy, and, amidst every ambush laid for him, has most to beware of the snares of his own spirit. For what is a man's state of mind, when, for the first time, he withdraws the curtain which sep- arates the region of mesmerism from the scenery of common life? He is bewildered wit 1 1 rushing thoughts and wondrous speculations. He has beheld, but seal ly knows what it is he lias beheld. A world of magic has opened on his gaze; and. should he be a person of imagination, who. like Schiller's idealist, i< tired of rough reality, he finds there all that can intoxicate and enchain, anil keep him lingering <>n enchanted ground when he should be struggling onward t<> the domain of truth. Thus fascinated, thus enthralled, it is no wonder that, if called upon to abdicate his paradise, he should exclaim, like Milton's Eve when sentenced to quit Eden — u From thee How shall I part, and whither wander down Into a lower world, to this obscure And wild ? How shall we breathe in other air Less pure, accustomed to immortal fruits : '* MESMERISM. 35 There is, moreover, in the sensations of him who finds that he is capable of exercising the mesmeric influence that peculiar charm which ever waits upon the development of a new faculty. Even the swim- mer, who learns at length to surmount the boisterous surf, or to stem the adverse stream, will revel in the conscioiisne-s of awakened power. How much more must the mental enthusiast riot in the display of ener- gies so long concealed, so wondronsly developed! Self-love adds her flattering lure to the attractions of novelty: — the pride of exerting an influence over others awakens in his breast. It is he himself who is the author of his own enjoyment ; and the fairy scenes appeal to him fairer still, because they are of his own creating. Unexpectedness, too. that prin- cipal ingraft nt of pleasure, vet more entrances and bewilders the astonished novice, who perceives such mighty effects resulting from In- employment of a few and simple means. He feels that he i> •■ greater than Ik 1 knows/* and he advances into the yet uncon- quered province that lies before him. with all those alternations of rapture and surprise which agitate \< ( please the explorer of strange regions. He trembles — he hesitates — he catches ;i glimpse of a new pros- pect Still is he tempted onward — ever onward fresh wonders still opening around him. and fresh complacency awakening in his heart : tor mesmerism is not one of those pursuits of which a man soon tire<. Pounded OH human nature, it presents B per- petual variety, like that of humanity itself. Its -ur- cessful votary runs the risk, therefore, of turning his thoughts upon it not only too vividly, hut too exclu- 36 MESMERISM. sively. Absorbed by a mighty interest^ he is too apt to pass into that mood wherein, as to a lover, all nature is to us but a reflection of the beloved object ; when, if we turn a page, we think that it bears reference to the subject of our ceaseless contempla- tion ; — ' when every sound teems with appropriate oracles, and every sight with omens addressed to us alone — all figuring the image of our own thoughts. Of this there is the greater danger, because there exists, in fact, so much of unconscious mesmerism in life, that it is not surprising if, like Alonzo in The Tempest, we should exclaim — " Methought the billows spoke and told me of it; The winds did sing it to me, and the thunder — That deep and dreadful organ-pipe — pronounced Its name." But, to an enthusiast in particular, how much there is about him and within him to recall and strengthen the first impression, and to speak to him perpetually of that which has kindled his imagination ! That mysterious bliss, wherewith the very atmosphere (^ those we love seems to be impregnated ; — that at- traction of an unknown face, which beams upon us from the passing crowd, and which we would give worlds to see again ; — the sleep of the infant that is " rocked by the beating of its mother's h< art ; " — all teems with an influence, potent yet invisible, and which we may call mesmerism, if we will. But, alas ! feelings are not proofs : and. on these occasions, how much we feel that wo can by no means prove — how much we seem to understand of which we can ren- der no account ! It will be easily seen how unfavor- MESMERISM. 37 able is this vagueness of emotion — this universality of reference — to the strictness of philosophy and the particularity of rigid research. We have at hand too ready a solution of every difficulty. We are tempted to generalize before we have performed the work of analysis, and to allow hypothesis to supersede investigation. On a subject BO wide and so fertile, analogies offer themselves in crowds, and being easier than inductions, are more readily accepted by our effervescing imagination. Bo much of nature's inner processes 18 apparently laid open to our view, that we seem to be on the point of snatching the last word of her secret, and of breaking down the bar- riers that separate the visible from the unseen, the finite from the unbounded* Thus excited, how shall ire subside into the calm- ness, wherein alone the mind can compare, can select] or reject j How shall we exchange the wand of the magician for the disenchanting rod of truth? How. tVoni the very heights of contemplation, shall we stoop to the observation of petty tacts — to the detection of fallacies — to the routine of ordinary examination : Deeming that we know all things by intuition, how can we condescend to reason ? Rather arc \\< tempted to frame some vast and all-embracing theory — to rush at evnv subject, and consequently to fail in all. It l- at least worths of remark, that the writers on mesmerism, who have treated it otherwise than medically, have been too iniieh of that, school, which philosophizes "de omnibus rebus, ei quibus- dam aliis." They bave passed the flaming hounds of the universe, when the) ought to have been con- 4 38 MESMERISM. sidering the peculiar influence which one human being, under certain circumstances, exerts upon another. Mesmerism, then, is no matter of indifference, on which a man may argue with a clear head because he argues with a quiet heart. It is a subject which not only calls into action, but has a decided influence on all the most essential principles of the human mind; disturbing the emotions, and through them the exercise of the intellectual powers. Self-love, wonder, and desire of novelty, we have already seen enlisted in its service, and troubled by its apparent miracles. But deeply as it maj engage these feet ings, still greater is the effect ivhich it produces upon the principle of belief — a part of our mental con- stitution which so largely concerns our modes oi ac- tion — our present, and our future well-being, that whatever tends to modify it is of vital consequence, and should be treated with all the caution which the importance of the occasion demands. With how much watchfulness, then, should we approach a sub- ject which is calculated to work an entire revolution in the very regulator of our being — to substitute a rash credulity for a sound and safe belief: This ifl the great snare of his own mind, against which a writer on mesmerism has perpetually to be on his guard. He has beheld phenomena which are beyond the pale of his former experience ; and. impelled as we all are to reason from that which we oursel 1 1 ave seen to that of which we are personal!) ignorant, he is tempted to ask himself. — " If this he true, (as I perceive it is), why not a thousand other things, oi MESMERISM. 39 which I have hitherto doubted ? Thus is he led to trust rather to analogy than to observation; and his willingness to accept a fact upon due evidence is turned into a disposition to credit all things upon no evidence whatever. The barrier of prudent hesita- tion is cast down, and his mind is left a prey to the invasion of every idle fancy. Thai he was once even of a skeptical spirit will profit him nothing. Rather, with that propensity U) rush into extremes which is a part of human imperfection, the more incredulous he has hitherto been, the greater will be his rebound to credulity. The more he has hitherto refused to put faith in the testimony of others, the more entirely will he submit himself to that of In- <»w n senses ; and finding that h< i- forced to believe what once he deemed incredible, he feels that he has scarcely a right to refuse assent to the wildest dreams of a dis- eased imagination. The wiae admonition, — " l>e- lieve not ever] spirit," — 1- disregarded ; nay, there is danger that he should become in love with marvels, and not onK welcome them, \\ hen they are offered to his consideration, hut go out of his way to seek them, even where they exist not ; elevating every trifle into Importance, till he falls into the absurdity of perpet- ual wonder. Thus it is to be feared that he who adventures his baric of discovery into the great deep of mesmerism will not. Columbus-like, steer ever to- wards one anticipated point, deterred neither by por- tents nor by passions in mutiny : but that he will en- ter upon a course resembling rather the fabled voyage of Ulysses, haunted by prodigies and embarrassed by delays ; and it will be well if imagination, like an- 40 MESMERISM. other Circe, does not seduce from their allegiance, and transform those faculties which ought to guide and serve him under the stern control of reason. But, even supposing that a man has strength of mind sufficient to elude these perils, and to discipline his fancy to the proper standard of belief, stating only that which he has ascertained by the most rigid ob- servation, there is still a difficulty in his way, which relates mutually to himself and to those whom he ad- dresses. However reasonable he may be and how- ever unprejudiced his reader, still each party is, as regards the subject in question, in a very different state of experience. It is true that, in a degree, this remark applies to every case where information is given and received : but then, in ;ill other cases, there is a groundwork to go upon, common both to the instructor and the instructed. The experience of the former is indeed more enlarged than that of the latter: yet it is ever to the experience of the pupil that the teacher appeals ; and the basis of the m\v edifice of knowledge which he undertakes t«> erect consists in a tew simple principles * hich arc generally recognised by all mankind. For instance, an igno- rant man, when told of the enonnous distances at which the stars are placed, relatively to the earth and to each other, may at first feel inclined to doubt the facts : but let the size of the heavenly bodies be -fa- ted to him; let hiih be reminded that all objects appear less in proportion to their distance from us ; and, that which he knows already helping him to that he does not know, the matter is at once brought within the scope of his comprehension. But. as re- MESMERISM. 41 gard- mesmerism, we are excluded from any such appeal to universal experience. On this subject, he who undertakes to persuade 4 , and he who consents to listen, are not only in different, hut in opposite states of mind. There is no common point from which they may start together, — there is DO centre of belief where they may meet and be reconciled. The pupil, at the very outset, is called upon to assent to a seri< - of propositions not only startling but repug- nant to his experience- Thai a man can throw another into a kind of sleep by certain gestures ; that the person thus apparently deprived of consciousness can answer questions rationally, and discern objects, though In- eyes are fast -hut ; — these are the extra- ordm.m statements winch alarm him into opposition before the discussion is begun, and excite either his incredulit] or In- scorn, Bj them he is thrown into a perplexing dilemma. Unexplained as are the facts of mesmerism, of (what is worse) inefficiently ex- plained, n seems ;i- if he bad onlj t<> choose between rejecting them as absurdities, or admitting them as miracles. In either case, an inquiry into their causes seems a pure waste of time It' nullities, they Bprang from nothing; if miracles, the] cannot !><• accounted lor. Moreover, to admit them as miracles is repug- nant t<> human feeling in general* Men love not to have their faith taxed more than is absolutely neces* s;n\ : and, in tin- case, there is no religious motive which can compel faith: on the contrary, many a person of weak but seakras piety fears to lessen the miracles recorded in scripture, by allowing that any thing whatever, which appears to interrupt the course 4* 42 MESMERISM. of nature, can, at this day, be wrought by mortal power. With these feelings, though once, perhaps, experienced by himself, the mesmeriser finds it diffi- cult duly to sympathize. He has left them far be- hind. To him the facts of mesmerism are no mira- cles, — for one plain reason : from the moment a thing takes its station amongst every day occurrences it ceases to be a wonder. Let any unwonted term in any sequence of events with which we are already acquainted interpose itself sufficiently often, and it will itself become a part of the series which it ap- peared, at first to interrupt. Jn brief, our familiarity with a fact is the measure of our opinion concerning it. Drawing lightning from the clouds was once a feat that appeared almost necromantic: but custom has deprived it of its marvel, and we place conduct- ors on our houses as a matter of course. Had the sun always begun the day in the west, such would appear to us his natural mode of rising. Now the mesmeriser has probably been in the constant habit of witnessing those phenomena, at the bare mention of which others are alarmed or revolted ; and so riv- eted together in his thoughts are certain trains of physical or mental changes, that not to behold them would be the surprise ; not to find the usual result consequent upon the usual causes would be the mir- acle. Thus, then, the writer on mesmerism and \u< reader are, as it were, at antagonist poles of belief: and it is as difficult for the one to divest himself of his present knowledge, and to revert to his ancient incredulity or wonder, as for the other cordially to MESMERISM. 43 -ent to facts which belie the whole tenor of his experience. To find the resolution of these discords is do easy tusk. Let the author approach his subject as guardedly as he may. still he cannot but state facts that arc astonishing; and the manner of his discourse will avail him little while the matter of it fas so exceptionable. To those who disbelieve the phenomena whereof he treats, an inquiry into their causes is but an impertinence. The vcrv calmness with which he propounds his heretical opinions, and which results from a deep conviction of their truth, must appear to others the worst system of incurable elrror; — bis impartiality will seem prejudice; his utmost caution madness. Let him be ever so MMind in mind, he will encounter more than one Felii who will be ready to exclaim, "Thou art beside thj selfl" An opposition so great between the writer on our Bubject and his reader, would seem to render the task of the former pot only difficult but hopeless. On more mature reflection, however, we shall per- ceive that though there is much to make him lower his expectation- of BUCCeSSj there is enough to encourage him not to abandon them altogether Amongst those to whom facta interesting and new are stated, there will ever be some persons who will be led to think and to inquire tor themselves. Thus the mesmeriser only loses the suffrages of the pre- judiced who refuse, or the careless who are incompe- tent, to examine the question, and the vcrv causes that contribute to narrow the circle of his auditors tend only to render it more select. 44 MESMERISM. In conclusion : — The result of the preceding deliberations seems to be this. We should lay aside all prejudice, connected either with the origin, name, or injudicious exposition of mesmerism, and try the subject, wholly and impartially, upon its own merits. Unalarmed by the apparent strangeness and in- congruity of the phenomena to be investigated, we should call to mind how frequently " appearances of external nature, puzzling at first sight, and seemingly irreconcilable with one another, have all been solved and harmonized by a reference to some one pervad- ing principle," and should thus be led to surmise that the irregularity and variations of the mesmeric world may be found, upon mature observation, less inex- plicable than a careless spectator could imagine. Even should this hope be long deferred, we are not, on that account, to deny the reality of well-attested facts. Are these things so? is the one great ques- tion which we have to ask ; and to separate this from all its accidental accompaniments is the first step towards its satisfactory solution. BOOK II. SECTION I. MESMERIC SOMNAMB1 LISM, oil. MORE PROPERLY, SLEEPWAKING. 1 In entering upon the examination of a new subject, we should strive to place it in the clearest and least disputable point of new. T<> this end, I shall far the present consider mesmerism simply as a distinct species ol somnambulism, into which it has been asserted that man has the capacity of passing, through the influence of his fellow-man. Were this all — did none other of the extraordinary allegations re- specting mesmerism exist, — this alone appears to me a subject of deep interest, and worthy of being submitted to that patient investigation, which should either confirm it as a fact. <>r banish it as an illusion. Mesmeric sleepwaking — it' proved to be a reality — will claim to be considered as one of the conditions of man, and. BS such, must concern all mankind — 1 Dr. Elliotson, in the chapter on mesmerism in his Physiology, has adopted the term deeptoakingj because walking is but one result of the combination of the waking with the sleeping state, and be- cause in this state persons may not walk, or may even be unable to walk. 46 MESMERISM. but especially the philosopher, who, in order to in- vestigate our nature truly, should explore it in its weakness and its strength, its integrity and its disorder. Sleep, fever, irritation of the nervous system, have each their several trains of physical and mental phenomena, which are anxiously investigated by him who would know man as he is. Even drunkenness has had its anatomists, and with w r hat fearful interest we strive to fathom the abyss of madness, as if we could evoke from thence the secret of our complicate and wonderful existence ! There is good sense in this. From the derangement of a machine we are often led to ascertain the uses of its several parts. Now, though mesmeric sleepwaking can scarcely be called a derangement of the animal economy, still it is an aberration from man's normal state ; and. so considered, cannot fail to be replete with instruction to the careful observer. Unless we peruse this page, our study of the great volume of human nature must be incomplete. Surely likewise, independently of the philosophical view of the question, all who share this suffering mortal frame — all who, during long and tedious hours, have vainly courted sleep, thai perverse power which, in the poet's beautiful words, is ** still last to come where it is wanted most/ 3 — all who mourn the past, or fear the future, cannot but be inter- ested in a discussion respecting the reality of a power in man to withdraw for a while the senses of his fellow-mortals from this world of troubles. In thus considering mesmerism as nothing more than a state to be investigated like any other state MESMERISM. 47 into which man has the capacity of passing. I shall probably surprise those who have been accustomed to regard the matter either as too mysterious to claim affinity with aught on earth, or as too fanci- fully wild to be brought under the laws of rational research. It may be doubted also, whether, with some persons, our subject may not lose its charms, when robbed of its pontroversial title, and whether the plain view 1 have taken of the question may not equally offend the argumentative opposer who seeks to show his eloquence in dispute, and the warm par- tisan who would invest his favorite science with an awful and unknown dignity. Hut the earnest and impartial pupil of nature will be content to take his Stand with me on the sure ground of experimental proof, and. even should lie become my opponent, will attack the true subject in debate instead of the man of straw, which has BO long and 90 often been warred with under the name of mesmerism. The proofs, which I shall oiler, regarding tins pe- culiar phasis of our mortal state, will be drawn, almost exclusively, from the proceeds of my own observation. To make use of the materials accumu- lated by others, in order to construct a theory of one's own. has always appeared to me inconsistent with the earnestness of true inquiry. That deep conviction of the reality of hi> subject, which is an author's hfe and soul, is the result of personal ex- perience alone. Besides, it should be the aim, as I conceive, of everv one who undertakes a cause, to add to the stock of real information thereupon. Thus only can the boundaries of human knowledge 48 MESMERISM. be enlarged ; — for what new fact can be elicited by those, who copy everlastingly from the old ? More- over, a person who observes for himself may per- chance remark what has hitherto escaped the notice of even clearer eyes than his. Let twenty men wit- ness a transaction, and the attention of each will probably be directed to a different feature of that transaction. By the combined result of such indi- vidual scrutiny, we come to a perception of the whole truth. Each carefully observed fact is an heirloom to mankind ; and he who verities a new phenomenon does more, perhaps, for science than he who constructs a theory. Before, however, bringing forward the records of my own personal experience, I must warn my reader that if he imagines I have anything miraculous to relate he will be disappointed. It is true that I might, were I so inclined, give a zest to my ]>;>_ by recording circumstances which were pa-sing strange; but I have avoided these, from reasons which partly regard myself, partly those whom I address. With respect to the latter. L think that persons in general would only be revolted by particulars which they would scarcely credit on any testimony; and thus I should rather injure than promote the cause I have undertaken to defend. Secondly, as concerning myself. For my own sake I shun those tracts of thought, which, if not belonging to superstition, at least closely border upon her domains. When once we pass the bounds of the definite and the probable, we can scarcely settle MESMERISM. 49 with our own minds what degree of credit we ought to attach to the mystic circumstances that surround us, or on what basis we should place them. Of every fact of this nature there are ordinarily two explanations to be given — a rational, and a marvel- lous. The marvellous would lead us too far: the rational docs not content us. As. for instance, a rieepwaker describes to me what her family, in a distant house, are doing at a particular hour. I inquire subsequently into this, and find that she has been correct in every point. \o\v there are two interpretations of this seeming miracle: — ire may either suppose that the sleepwaker has really seen what she stated; or that, from her knowledge <»! what the occupations of her familj generally are, at a certain limn, she was enabled to divine, almost I'- truth. in: a Bleepwaker tells me — "Mj brother, who has been to the Savannah, and of whom we have not heard for -<>me months, IS returned, and is at this moment anchored off flushing. He is just Coining from watch, and on such a day he will he here.'" This i-> verified to the letter; hut again there are two method- of explaining wherefore : — either the sleepwaker was gifted with extraordinary knowledge and prescience, or. from expecting her brother about a certain time, she calculated on prob- abilities perhaps, more acutely than in her natural state: and this, combined with that sort of coinci- dence which occurs more frequently than some may suppose, i- sufficient to account for the verification of her assertions and her prophecy. This may be 50 MESMERISM. true ; but I confess that such reasoning as the latter does not always satisfy me, and that, in my opinion, after subtracting from the account all of the marvel- lous that we possibly can, there will yet remain a residuum of something strange and perplexing. For this reason, I turn my attention to facts that appear to me more important, as well as more certain ; con- ceiving that to dwell on wonders, that are, at best, doubtful, is far from healthy to the mind. I have therefore always discouraged my sleepwakers from making to me extraordinary revelations, and I have endeavored to confine both them and myself within a walk — narrow, indeed, but safe ; less interesting, perhaps, but certainly more direct. All facts connected with the senses, or which illustrate the close affinity between the mesmeric r and his patient (indicative as they are of some me- dium of communication existing between them) seem to me unexceptionable in their tendency, and strictly relative to the influence we have to consider. To these then I have chiefly limited myself at the hazard of offending by over-caution, rather than by super- fluous zeal. Hence my narrative will have an hum- ble air, which may contrast oddly, perhaps, with the high terms in which I have spoken of the pretensions of mesmerism in my first book. I may be asked the cui bono of certain trifling details, and may be told that the experiments I have related are neither beautiful nor useful. To what end, it may be de- manded, do these sleepwakers perform things asleep which were better done awake ? I can imagine a critic saying — " Never was the i parturiunt montes/ MESMERISM. 51 more admirably exemplified than in the work before us. We are told, in the first place, that the mesmer- iser withdraws a curtain that conceals a magic world, and we are then presented with nothing better than a Bartholomew show of farthing rushlights. We first read of awakened powers and intellectual influences that unlock the mysteries of nature, and, then, proceeding to the experiments, we meet with trash little better than the following: — 'Are you asleep ?' ' JTes !' — * Do y<»u see me .-' — * No V &c &c." This is ;ill easily said; but I beseech my reader to remember the vast disproportion between the experiments themsehres and deductions to be drawn from them: they are but mean steps to a mighty temple: yet they must be mounted before We can enter the sanctuary itself. I< this prelimina- ry humiliation in approaching a science peculiar to mesmerism? Lei u< turn to Newton's optics, where we shall find such small particularities as the fol- lowing: — "I made in a piece of lead a small hole with a pin, whose breadth was the forty-second part of an inch : for twenty-one of those pins laid to- gether took up the breadth of half an inch." We are neither amused nor prejudiced bv this, because we know to what mighty consequences the apparent trifles led. Bui in mesmerism unfortunately we look not forward thus: and unfortunately also there is no existing subject which more requites men to look beyond externals. The object experimented on is man ; and, in the very nature of things, w hatever has to do with man contains some of the ludicrous. Human life and the paires of Shakspeare will show 52 MESMERISM. how near akin in us are tears and laughter, sublimity and littleness. Our postures, our gestures, our pe- culiarities of countenance may all become matter of mirth to each other of us. When their best friend falls down, the first impulse with most persons is to laugh. It is no wonder, then, that in mesmerism we experience a sense of the comic, which the in- animate objects that are operated upon in other sciences cannot excite. No one feels disposed to ridicule a crystal, or to smile at a mineral : but there will be, perhaps, moments in mesmerism, when " to be grave exceeds all powers of face." The motions of the mesmeriser especially must seem ridiculous to those who see him gesticulate, and know not to what end. He is using those means which experience has shown him to be most efficacious in calling forth the phenomena he desires to produce : — but the un- initiated cannot be aware of this, and an action that appears to want motive is essentially ludicrous. Any one who has stopped his ears to the music, while people are dancing, will remember how fantas- tic the scene of gaiety appeared to him. This, and more, I can allow. I have as lively of the ludicrous as any man, and could, myself, most easily travestie mesmerism, and exhibit it in a ridiculous point of view; for ridicule is always easy. I can also laugh, where a grave subject is goodhumoredly bantered ; as, for instance, where Hood writes a lively and pleasant article — into which one c plainly see no malice enters — on what he face- tiously calls sombamboozleism : and represents a Yorkshire grazier as much disappointed, when he MESMERISM. 53 finds that mesmerism is not a new mode of fattening animals and has nothing to do with mangel wurzel. But there is something in solemn and malignant ridi- cule which is not so easy to be endured ; — though, indeed, we should remember that whether scoffers laugh at mesmerism or not can matter little. The Subject is not for them, nor for any who cannot look through the trifling to the important, without being diverted from their object by things which may make them smile at the moment but ponder deeply after-, wards: — a-, for example, the mesmeriser makes faces, and the sleepwaker. though seeing him not, imitates them exactly. Some may stop short at the ludicrous part of this; hut. tor him who views the as proving an unseen medium of commu- nication between the mesmeriser and his patient, the fact is lull of an absorbing interest which checks all lighter thoughts. Thus some have mocked at tin* simplicity of diction or of events that characterizes the writings of Word-worth, while others have ^ccn that the poet has only adopted nature's mode of teach- ing us philosophy. This, at [east, must be granted, The merest trifles aw interesting that suggest to us an action in man independent of his present organi- zation. Now mesmerism teems with more than slight indications of this : and we should treasure up such glimmerings of futurity — however faint, and how- ever presented to as — as inestimable proofs that we possess a germ erf being which God permits us to behold partially unfolded here, in order to confirm our faith as to its fuller development hereafter. 54 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. This being premised, I proceed to give an account of the first experiments in mesmerism which it fell in my way to witness ; conceiving that such a narrative will form not only the simplest but the best com- mencement to the series of proofs I have to offer, respecting the state and characteristics of mesmeric sleepwaking. If to have been an unbeliever in the very existence of the state in question can add weight to my testi- mony, my reader, should he be also an heretic on the subject, may be assured that his incredulity in this respect can scarcely be greater than mine was up to the winter of 1836. That at the time I mention I should be both ignorant and prejudiced on the score of mesmerism will not surprise those who are aware of its long proscription in England, and the want of information upon it which till very lately prevailed there. In the course of a residence at Antwerp, a valued friend detailed to me some extraordinary results of mesmerism to which he had been eye-witness. I could not altogether discredit the evidence of one whom I knew to be both observant and incapable of falsehood; but I took refuge in the supposition that he had been ingeniously deceived. Reflecting, how- ever, that to condemn before I had examined was as unjust to others as it was unsatisfactory to myself. I accepted readily the proposition of my friend to in- troduce me to an acquaintance of his in Antwerp who had learned the practice of the mesmeric art from a German physician. We waited together oiu Mr. K , the mesmeriser, (an agreeable and well- MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. 55 informed person) and stated to him that the object of our visit was to prevail on him to exhibit to us a specimen of his mysterious talent. To this he at first replied that he was rather seeking to abjure a renown that had become troublesome, half the world viewing him as a conjuror, and the other half as a getter upof strange comedies ; but," he kindly added, "if you will promise me a strictly private meeting, I will, this evening, do all in my power to convince you that mesmerism is no delusion.' 3 This being agreed upon, together with a stipulation that the members of my own family should be present on the occasion, I, to remove all doubt of complicity from every mind, proposed thai Mr. K should mesmerise a person who should be a perfect stranger to him. To this he lily acceded ; and now the only difficulty was to find a subject foe our experiment At length we thought of a young person, in the middling class of life, who had often done line work tor the ladies of our family, and of whose character we had the most favorable knowledge. Her mother was Irish: her fa- ther, who had been dead some tune, had been a Bel- gian, and she spoke English, Flemish, and French, with perfect facility. Her widowed parent was chiefly supported by her industry, and. in the midst of trying circumstances, her temper was gay and cheerful, and her health excellent. That she had never seen Mr. K we were >ure : and of her probity and inca- pacity for feigning we had every reason to be con- vinced. With our request, conveyed to her through one of the ladies of our family, for whom she had conceived a warm affection, she complied without 56 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. hesitation. Not being of a nervous, though of an excitable temperament, she had no fears whatever about what she was to undergo. On the contrary, she had rather a desire to know w T hat the sensation of being mesmerised might be. Of the phenomena which were to be developed in the mesmeric state she knew absolutely nothing. Thus all deceptive imitation of them on her part was rendered impos- sible. About nine o'clock in the evening our party assem- bled for what in foreign phrase is called f 1 line seance magnetique." Anna M , our mesmerisce, was already with us. Mr. K arrived soon after, and was introduced to his young patient, whose name we had purposely avoided mentioning to him in the morning — not that we feared imposition <>n either hand, but that we were determined, by every precau- tion, to prevent any one from alleging thai imposition had been practised. Utterly unknown as the parlies were to each other, a game played by two confede- rates was plainly out of the question. Almost im- mediately after the entrance of Mr. K we pro- ceeded to the business of the evening. By his directions, Mademoiselle M placed herself in an arm-chair at one end of the apartment, while he oc- cupied a seat directly facing hers. He then took each of her hands in one of his, and sat in such a manner as that the knees and feet of both should he in contact. In this position he remained tor some time motionless, attentively regarding her with eyei as unwinking as the lidless orbs which Coleridge has attributed to the Genius of Destruction. We had MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 57 been told previously to keep utter silence, and none of our circle — composed of some five or six persons — felt inclined to transgress the order. To me, novice as I was at that time in such matters, it was a moment of absorbing interest. That which I had heard mocked at as foolishness — that which I my- self had doubted as a dream. was perhaps about to he brought home to my conviction, and established for ever in my mind as a reality. Should the present trial prove successful, how much of my past experi- ence must be remodeled and reversed ! Convinced as 1 have since been to what valuable conclusions the phenomena of mesmerism may con- duct the inquirer, never, perhaps, have I been more impressed with the importance of its pretensions than at that moment when my doubts of their validity were either to be strengthened or removed. Con- centrating mj attention upon the motionless pair. I observed that Mademoiselle M seemed at her ea-e. and occasionally smiled, or -lanced at the embled party: but her <\<-. as it' by a charm, always reverted to those of her mesmeriser, and at length seemed unable t«> turn away from them. Then a heaviness, a- of deep, seemed to weigh down her eyelids, and to pervade the expression of her countenance; her head drooped on one side; her breathing became regular ; at length her eyes closed entirely, and. to all appearance, she was calmly asleep in just seven minutes bom the time when Mr. K first commenced his operations. I should haw observed that, a- soon as the first symptom of drowsiness was manifested, the mesmeriser had with- 58 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. *» drawn his hands from those of Mademoiselle M ■ and had commenced what are called the " mesmeric passes," 1 conducting his fingers slowly downward, without contact, along the arms of the patient. For about five minutes Mademoiselle M continued to repose tranquilly, when suddenly she began to heave deep sighs, and to turn and toss in her chair. She then called out, " Je me trouve malade ! Je m'etouffe ! " and, rising in a wild manner, she con- tinued to repeat, " Je m'etouffe ! " evidently laboring under an oppression of the breath. But all this time her eyes remained fast shut, and. at the command of her mesmeriser, she took his arm, and walked — still with her eyes shut — to the table. Mr. K then said, "Voulezvous que je vous eveille ? * •• Oui. oui," she exclaimed, " Je m'etouffe." Upon this. Mr. K again operated with his hands, but in a different set of movements, and. taking out his hand- kerchief, agitated the air around the patient, who forthwith opened her eyes, and stared about the room like a person awaking from sleep. No tra< of her indisposition, however, appeared to remain, and, soon shaking off all drowsiness, she was able to converse and laugh as cheerfully as usual. On being asked what she remembered of her sensations, she said that she had only a general idea of having felt unwell and oppressed ; that she had wished to open her eyes, but could not. They felt as if lead were on them. Of having walked to the table she had no recollection. Notwithstanding her having suffered, 1 This terra means nothing more than such motions as I have described. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 59 she was desirous of being again mesmerised, and sat down fearlessly to make a second trial. This time it was longer before her eyes closed, and she never seemed to be reduced to more than a state of half unconsciousness. When the mesmeriser asked her if she slept, she answered in the tone of utter drow- siness, " Je dors, et je ne dors pas." This lasted some time, when Mr. K declared that he was afraid of fatiguing his patient (and probably his spec- tators too), and that he should disperse the mesmeric fluid. To do so, however, seemed not so easy a matter as the first time when he awoke the sleep- waker. With difficulty she appeared to rouse her- self, and even after having spoken a lew words to us, and risen from her chair. ^\w suddenly relapsed into a state of torpor, and fell prostrate to the ground, as if perfectly insensible* Mr. K entreating us not to be alarmed, raised her up. placed her in a chair, and supported her head with his hand. It was then that I distinctly recognised one of the asserted phe- nomena of mesmerism. The head of Mademoiselle M followed everywhere, with unerring certainty, the hand of her mesmeriser, and seemed irresistibly attracted to it, as iron to the load-tone. At length Mr. K succeeded in thoroughly awaking his patient, who, on being interrogated respecting her past sensations, said that she retained a recollection of her state of semi-consciousness, during which she much desired to have been able to sleep wholly ; but of her having fallen to the ground, or of what had passed subsequently, she remembered nothing what- ever. To other inquiries she replied that the drowsy 60 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. *► sensation which first stole over her was rather of an agreeable nature, and that it was preceded by a slight tingling, which ran down her arms in the direction of the mesmeriser's fingers. Moreover, she assured us that the oppression she had at one time felt was not fanciful, but real ; not mental, but bodily, and was accompanied by a peculiar pain in the region of the heart, which, however, ceased immediately on the dispersion of the mesmeric sleep. These statements were the rather to be relied upon, inasmuch as the girl's character was neither timid nor imaginative. Second Sitting. On this occasion Mademoiselle M sat down, as she assured me afterwards, with a resolution to resist the mesmeric drowsiness to the utmost, and with a strong impression that she should not sleep. This want of cooperation on her part seemed to ren- der the mesmeriser's task more difficult, yet in about twenty minutes she was brought into that state of imperfect slumber into which she had fallen on the first evening. As then, so now, she affirmed. " Je dors, et je ne dors pas;" while all the time she seemed incapable of opening her eyes. At other times she expressed an impatience of her semi-con- scious state, and exclaimed, " Faites-moi dormir tout- a-fait ; " but then again she murmured, " Non, vous ne le pouvez pas." In this half torpid state she re- mained so long, that we feared no other result would be obtained ; and Mr. K himself turned round his head towards us, and shook it, as much as to say that he despaired of success. At length, however. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKINC. 61 appearing to rally his powers, he laid his hands upon the shoulders of his patient, who almost instantly heaved a deep sigh, and fell back in her chair with every symptom of the profoundest slumber. Soon after this, I observed that her head, as on the last occasion, followed every motion of the mesmeriser's hands. Mr. K now asked her if she slept, and she replied softly, but distinctly, " Oui, je dors." He then asked her if she would quit her chair, and walk a little, but to this proposition she strongly objected, declaring that she wished to rest, and that she thought she should fall were she to attempt to get up. Mr. K . however, assured her that such would not be the case, and rising from his chair, and going to a short distance, he made a motion with his arms, as if he VTOIlld draw her towards Inm. Sighing deeply, she then go! up and moved towards him. but tottered, and exclaimed. " Oh je vais tomber." Upon this the E&esmeriser seized her hand, and said, in a tone of decision. " Non, vous ne tomberez pas." In effect, she afterwards stood firmly, and even walked about the room, holding the arm of Mr. K , but still retaining the expression of a sleeping person, though the extreme torpor which weighed down her head before she left her chair seemed, in a great measure, removed. To all appearance her eyes were closely shut, and there was even ;i sealed look about the lids which was very remarkable. Notwithstanding this, she appeared to be very sensible to the light, and never approached the lamp without complaining of the glare. One of our party having expressed a doubt that she slept, and this having been explained 6 62 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. to her by the mesmeriser (for she did not seem to attend to any one else), she exclaimed, with an air of surprise, u Yes, certainly, I am asleep." During the time (upwards of an hour) that she remained thus abstracted, or entranced, I noted the following phe- nomena : — 1st. Attraction towards the mesmeriser — mental and physical. — She could not endure Mr. K to leave her for an instant ; and there was a nervous anxiety in the manner in which she often exclaimed, " Mais, il ne faut pas me quitter." The most appa- rently uncomfortable posture seemed agreeable to her so long as she could rest her head on the mesmeri- ser's hand. If another hand was substituted, how- ever adroitly, she was immediately aware of the change, and betrayed uneasiness. On one occasion I took the mesmeriser's place at a moment when lie stood behind her. After a few seconds, an expire sion of utter discontent and repugnance came over her countenance, and she removed her head from my support. At this moment Mr. K was stealing aw T ay noiselessly to another part of the room, and I ob- served that her face turned towards him. and followed his every motion. When he made a gesture as if he would beckon her towards him, she got up immediate- ly, and walked to where he was, threading her way. exactly as he had done, between the chairs. tabi- &c, without stumbling or coming in contact with any obstacle. 2dly. A knowledge of what the mesmeriser ate or drank, indicating community of sensation with him. — This phenomenon appearing to me to constitute one MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 63 of the most interesting features of the mesmeric state, I took particular pains to verify it. Mr. K stood behind the sleepwaker, but in contact with her (for otherwise the experiment did not seem to answer) one hand slightly touching her shoulder. In this po- sition of the parties, we handed to Mr. K from behind (so as to prevent any possibility of the sleep- waker seeing what we were about, even had her eyes been open) different things to drink or eat. While the mesmeriser was taking these, Mademoiselle M imitated precisely all the motions of tasting and swallowing, just as if she herself had taken the substances into her mouth. On being asked what she tasted, she Stated correctly what the mesmeriser was occupied with at the moment. In this way she recognised tea. wine, and water, and distinguished between them, change them as often as we would. The accuracy with which she described a peculiar kind of roll, which we gave Mr. K to eat, was extraordinary. " (V if est pas du pain ; cc n'est pas precisement du biscuit. C'est quelquechose que les matelots mangent." The last assertion was perfectly correct, for at Antwerp this kind of roll is a favorite article of diet with the sailors. 3dly. An increased quickness of perception;. — Pri- vately and with precaution, I changed rings with the mesmeriser. The moment the sleepwaker subsequently took his hand, she exclaimed. " Vous avez quelque chose, qui n'est pas de vous !" " A qui est ce done ?" asked Mr. K : she immediately named the right owner. I should remark that, in her waking state, she assured me she did not know whether even I 64 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING* wore a ring or not. Another proof of the acuteness of her perceptions was the accuracy with which she distinguished her mesmeriser's hand from every other. We made the experiment together with her mesmer- iser, giving her all our hands successively many times, in a different order, but she invariably recog- nised the hand of Mr. K at the first touch, ex- claiming, " Ah c'est de lui." 4thly. A development of the power of vision. — I am aware that I here approach dangerous ground. Our very nature rises up in arms against whatever seems incompatible with our personal experience ; and that men should, under any circumstances, see otherwise than in the appointed way of vision appears so entirely to contradict the very purposes of our organization, that we shrink from the bare mention of such an ano- maly. Accordingly, what is called clair-voi/ancc has been ever the great stumblingblock to the unbeliever in mesmerism. To decide that mesmeric sleepwakera do really possess the faculty of seeing through closed lids, or other obstacles, would in this place be pre- mature. I waive that question till 1 can place it upon the sure ground of proof. But allowing to pass for the present an hypothesis which has been sug- gested to me ; namely, that mesmerised persons, being in a state of nervous excitement, see. like those afflicted with a peculiar irritability of the retina. with less light and through a smaller aperture be- tween the lids, than others ; still, even the fact that the sensibility of vision can be thus increased by apparently insignificant means, appears to me highly interesting and worthy of investigation. This I can MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 65 safely affirm — that there was something new and astonishing in the manner in which Mademoiselle M distinguished objects. The closest observa- tion of the six members of the party, who witnessed the experiments I am now detailing, could detect not the slightest opening of hei eye-lids ; nevertheless she gave undoubted proofs of possessing a consider- able degree of vision, for she recognised and named every person pit -cut. when brought up to her in any order. The exercise, however, of whatever new mode of vision she had acquired, appeared to her difficult and fatiguing; and. when an object was held before her. she usually declared it to be too small lor her to know what it was. \\ hen urged to look at any thing, she expressed th< est repugnance to do so ; and it was only at the reiterated command of the mesmeriser that she aroused herself to the acces- sary effort. At those times, her whole deportment was that of B person who wished to rest, yet who by some external force was compelled into exertion. No exorcised spirit could have done its work more grudg- ingly; and. like the enchantress evoked by Odin, she continually entreated to be left to repose. Sometimes addressing those around her. when asked to look at any object, she exclaimed. " Ynu. who see so much better than I do. why do not you rather tell m what it i-. 1 beg of you to tell me/' Twice, however, she gave singular proofs of correct vision. Some music-paper was put into her hand, and she was asked what was written on it. She replied, " There is nothing written on it; it is music paper." The mesmeriser gave her his watch, and asked her 66 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. *. the hour. After the usual reluctance and some de- lay, and moving of her fingers over the watch-glass, in the direction of the hands, she named the hour and minute with precision. During this sitting, there was no return of the op- pression from which Mademoiselle M had suf- fered on first being mesmerised. Both in countenance and manner she remained perfectly calm. The experiments being at an end, she was asked if she wished to awake, when she answered in the affirmative, but at the same time declared her ina- bility to do so unless the mesmerise* took off the heaviness from her eyes, as in the preceding sitting. Upon this Mr. K made some lateral motions with his hands, across her face, as if he wore removing something from before it. and in about a minute the sleepwaker opened her eyes 3 rubbed them, and stared about, like a person awaking from heavy -lumber. Her first question was. "How long have I been asleep?" She then complained of considerable heaviness in her limbs, but this was soon removed, as it seemed, by some mesmeric " passes" which Mr K made over them. When interrogated as to what she remembered of her past state, she said that the last thing which she distinctly recollected was the mesmeriser's laying his hands on her shoulders — that they felt to her burning hot. and as heavy as lead, and seemed to weigh her down into uncon- sciousness. All subsequent to this was a blank, with the exception of a confused notion, as of something in a dream that many hands had touched her own. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 67 Third Sitting. This time, Mr. K brought to us, as his mesmeric patient, a young man of about seventeen years of age, whom I shall call Theodore, the son of most respectable persons in Antwerp. Mr. K bad already mesmerised him several times, and had excited our curiosity respecting him by detailing to us extraordinary proofs of his powers of vision in the state of >lcep\vakiiiLr. From the moment of his en- tering the room, this young man prepossessed every one in his favor. His quiet, and even timid man- ners, and his ingenuous countenance, made us feel that we might rely upon, as genuine, any phenome- na ho might exhibit Ho \\;i< in a state of per- fect health. In about ton miinin -s from the time he was sub- mitted, m the usual manner, to the influence of Mr. K . he gave tokens of having passed into the mesm eric state, his bead following every motion of the mesmeriser'a hand. Slight shudderings, from time to time, seemed to pass over his frame, and were occasionally repeated during the whole time of his sleep\\akil)L r . This UnUSUal State Wafl aeeoin- panied by a marked change in his demeanor. He seemed to have lost his shyness, and conversed with Mr. K in an unembarrassed manner, as if no longer conscious of the presence of strangers; He became more animated, frequently laughed aloud, and even went the length of committing ;i pleasant- ry. When led up to a very pretty irirl in company, the mesmeriser (in order to try his powers of vision) 68 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. said, " Savez vous qui est ce jeune hornme 1 " to which Theodore replied directly, " Je voudrais bien voir un jeune homme aussi joli que cela." The principal phenomena which I noted in the case of Mademoiselle M were all developed in this sleepwaker, with the slight exception of his more patiently suffering the mesmeriser to go to a short distance from him. On the former, however, trying to steal from the apartment as noiselessly as possible, he rushed to him and dragged him back with considerable agitation, which was only calmed by the mesmeriser caressing him, as it were, with the hand. On all occasions he testified the - ro g si attachment and affection to Mr. K . frequently leaning his head upon the shoulder of the latter, and running to him. when placed at a little distance, on the slightest motion of his hand, with such simple and natural gestures as a child uses when, half playfully, it runs for shelter to its mother'- side. His physical attraction towards the mesmeriser was as strongly marked 8U3 the mental. A- In* was sitting- down, Mr. K approached his hand to the leg of the patient, and then slowly drew it upward. The limb, as if compelled to follow, rose also. and. as long as Mr. K held his hand over it. remained in a raised position. A very important proof that this physical attrac- tion was wholly independent of the patients imagin- ation was the following: — Theodore was standing with his back to the mesmeriser. while some one en- gaged his attention in front, and the mesmeriser going to a good distance, so as to render any cognizance MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 69 of his gestures by feeling impossible, gently beck- oned towards him the patient, who actually ran back- wards for some steps, then, turning quickly round, hastened to the mesmeriser. Community of sensa- tion was manifested not only by a recognition of what the mesmerise! ate ofr drank, but in another way. which seemed lp indicate thai the sense of feel- ing, as well as of taste, was placed in some mysteri- ous communication with the corresponding function of the mesmcriser. Mr. K having left Theodore standing apart for a few instants, went to the fire and warmed himself. During this time the patient rub- bed his hands and spread them out, as if over the flame, precisely as the mesmeriser did, and with a look of evident satisfaction and enjoyment Mr. K said, " Que faites tous la Theodore ? " " Je m'echaufie " was the answer. Our young patient also exhibited other phenom- ena, which I have since found to l>e generally char- acteristic of mesmeric sleepwa&ing, and which 1 shall call — Occasional Community of Motion with the Mesmer- iser. — halation from all others than the Mes- n a risi /". In illustration of the first. I might adduce the fact, that there was no person present who did not remark that, in walking, Theodore took the step and air of Mr. K as if his body were a machine directed by the mesm&iseri But this may be objected to as a proof not sufficiently rigorous. The correctness, however, of the following experiment cannot be con- tested. 70 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. The mesmeriser was placed with his back to the patient. In this position, the former made sundry grimaces and contortions of visage, which were ex- actly and simultaneously imitated by the latter. Secondly. Upon first passing into the mesmeric state, Theodore seemed absolutely insensible to every other than the mesmeriser's voice. Some of our party went close to him, and shouted his name, but he gave no tokens of hearing us, until Mr. K , taking our hands, made us touch those of Theodore and his own at the same time. This he called put- ting us " en rapport " with the patient. After this, Theodore seemed to hear our voices equally with that of the mesmeriser, but by no means to pay an equal attention to them. With regard to development of vision, the eyes of the patient appeared to be firmly shut during the whole sitting, and yet he gave the following proofs of accurate sight : — Without being guided by our voices (for in making the experiment we kept carefully silent) he distin- guished between the different persons present and the colors of their dresses. He also named with ac- curacy various objects on the table, such as a minia- ture picture, a drawing by Mr. K . &c. When the mesmeriser left him, and ran quickly amongst the chairs, tables, &c, of the apartment, he followed him, running also, and taking the same turns, without once coming in contact with any thing that stood in his way. He told the hour accurately by Mr. K 's watch, MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 71 He plaved several games at dominos with the dif- ferent members of our family, as readily as if his eyes had been perfectly open. On these occasions the lights were placed in front of him. and he ar- ranged his dominos on the table with their backs to the candles in such a manner that, when I placed my head in the same position as his own. I could scarcely, through the shade distinguish one from the other. Yet he took them up unerringly, never hesi- tated in his play, generally won t ho game, and an- nounced the sum of the spots on such of his dominos as remained over at the end, before his adversaries could count theirs. One of our party, a lady, who had been extremely incredulous OH the subject of mesmerism, stooped down bo as to look under his eyelids all the time he played, and declared herself convinced and >atisiied that his eyes were perfectly closed. It was not always. howe\er. thai Theodore could be prevailed upon to exercise his power of vis- ion. Some words, written by the mesiueriser, of a tolerable size, being shown him, he declared (as Mademoiselle M did on another occasion) that it was too small for him to distinguish. Towards the conclusion of the sitting, the patient seemed much fatigued, and. going to the sofe, ar- ranged a pillow for himself comfortably under his head, after which he appeared to pass into a state more akin to natural sleep than his late sleepwaking. Mr. K allowed him to repose in this manner for a short time, and then awoke him by the usual for- mula. A very few motions of the hand were suffi- cient to restore him to full consciousness, and to his 72 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. usual character. The fatigue of which he had so lately complained seemed wholly to have passed away, together with the memory of all that he had been doing for the last hour. I must now pause to set before my reader my own state of mind respecting the facts I had witnessed. I perceived that important deductions might be drawn from them, and that they bore upon disputed ques- tions of the highest interest to man, connected with the three great mysteries of being — life, death, and immortality. On these grounds I was resolved to enter upon a consistent course of inquiry concerning them : though, as yet, while all was new and won- derful to my apprehensions, I could scarcely do more than observe and verify phenomena. It was, how- ever, necessary that my views, though for the present bounded, should be distinct. I had already asked respecting mesmeric sleepwaking — does it exist? and to this question the cases which had fallen under my notice, and which were above suspicion, seemed to answer decidedly in the affirmative. But it was essential still further to inquire — does it exist so gen- erally as to be pronounced a part — though a rarely developed part — of the human constitution ? In order to determine this, it was requisite to observe how far individuals of different ages, stations, and temperaments, were capable of mesmeric sleepwak- ing. I resolved, therefore, by experiments on as ex- tensive a scale as possible, to ascertain whether the state in question were too commonly exhibited to be exceptional or idiosyncratic. Again, the two cases that I had witnessed coincided in characteristics. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 73 But could this coincidence be accidental ? It might still be asked, were the phenomena they displayed uncertain, mutable, such as might never occur again ; — or were they orderly, invariable, the growth of fixed causes, which, being present, implied their pre- sence also? In fine, was mesmeric sleepwaking,! not only a state, but entitled to rank a^ a distinct state, clearly and permanently characterized : and, as such, set apart from all other abnormal conditions of man ? On its pretensions to be so considered, rested, I con- ceived, its claims to notice and peculiar investigation. To decide this point was. therefore, one of my chief objects ; and respecting it I was determined to seek that certainty which can only be attained by a care- ful comparison of facts occurring under the same circumstances. To sum up my intentions, — I de- sired to show that man. through externa] human in- fluence, is capable of a species of sleepwaking differ- ing from the common, not only inasmuch as it is otherwise produced, but as it displays quite other characteristics when produced. Thus the inquiry on which I desired to enter was twofold, for I had to consider — 1st. Sleepwaking, as mesmerically induced. 2d. As possessing, when so induced, its own class of phenomena. Before relating with what success I pursued the above objects, it is necessary that I should say a few words as to the plan to which I shall adhere in the detail of my " proofs by experiments." Each branch of my inquiry ought, perhaps, to be treated sepa- rately ; but, in that case, I should have, in the first 7 74 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. •s instance, only to draw up a barren statement of the number of different persons, in whom I had seen sleep- waking induced ; and then I should have to return to these same cases for an elucidation of the constancy of the phenomena. This would be at once cumbrous and useless, and I therefore take the simpler course of detailing my mesmeric cases just as they occurred, strengthening my cause at once by their number and by their iden- tity of feature. That I should thus let the two argu- ments run parallel has this advantage also, — I present a portrait of mesmeric sleepwaking from the outset — a very needful preliminary. So at least will they who differ from me in opinion be sure that they and I are speaking of the same thing. It may be also that to paint mesmerism as it is will remove objections to its validity more surely than a method more elaborate. It should never be forgot- ten that in all states there is a spurious and a true ; and of our unfortunate subject it may especially be affirmed that there exist many counterfeit presenta- tions. It has been drawn by its enemies, and even in early times by its friends, as a convulsed and de- crepit hag, with Superstition on her right hand and Spleen upon her left ; but the influence whereof I treat is of a tranquil brow, and has Truth and Reason for her handmaids. Should I become tedious by presenting again and again the same features to view. I have at least thus much to urge in my defence : each successive copy of the original type strengthens the evidence that the thing is ; while, if the picture once drawn be faithfully adhered to, there will be MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 75 every reason to conclude that the thing is such as represented, and no other. Facts, unaccompanied by deductions, may, indeed, be wearisome ; but, at present, the great point is to portray phenomena as they occurred ; for a discussion upon mesmerism is not like a discussion upon any known science, which men are at least agreed to treat as a reality. The inquiry is not merely into its nature but its very ex- istence. I must further observe that, with regard to the great characteristics of mesmerism, I have never had occasion to change my opinion from the beginning. I trusted to my impressions then, on the ground that the first view of a subject often seizes its character the best, and that a fresh eye will !i.\ upon the salient points of phenomena, to which habit may afterwards blunt the perceptions. Thus reasoning, I have not since been convicted of erroneous views. The pro- duction of a bodily sleep through another's influence, while the mind continued waking — the community of motion and sensation with the mesmeriser — the development of the perceptions, — these were the phenomena which, from the first, struck me in mesmerism as the most important, the most replete with interest; and they seem so still. I have beheld them often enough repeated to fix in my mind a con- viction of their truth ; and, believing, as I do, that they may be brought home to every man's business and bosom, I am anxious to impart to others the belief which I possess myself. Thus, then, it is my intention plainly to narrate that which I have witnessed, leaving it in general to 76 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. my reader to refer to their separate tracts of inquiry the phenomena which I shall detail, and to mark their correspondence with others previously observed. Nor shall I confine myself altogether to a descrip- tion of the completed state of mesmerism, since I conceive it to be interesting in its dawn also ; and it is instructive to see in certain cases the same phenom- ena, indicated in their rise, which were, in others, developed during their progress. At any rate the beginnings of mesmeric sleepwaking, even if they go no further, tend to prove that there is an influence which one human being can exert over another, — hitherto but partially observed, yet more general than is usually supposed. By such cases my first lemma is advantaged, even if the second is not benefited by it. It may be even that the imperfect cases of mesmer- ism present the strongest testimony to its truth. As a force confessedly acting on the nervous system, the strong and the insusceptible should be altogether sub- tracted from its influence, so that the circumstance of such persons being subdued at all is more con- vincing than the entire subjugation of the weaker and more sensitive. That a healthy, unimaginative man should be reduced to a sort of spell-bound slumber in five or ten minutes, by the agency of another, under circumstances the most unfavorable to sleep, strikes the mind, perhaps, as much as any of the mightier miracles of mesmerism. It is a fact, of which the senses are clearly cognizant, and it has made its converts accordingly. It is true that, in the physical sciences, the detail of an imperfect experi- MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 77 ment is altogether futile ; but it is not so in respect of the investigation of mind. Relative to this, the merest trifle is important, the slightest indication interesting. Besides, every state has a beginning, a middle, and an end ; and the first is surely best ex- amined when it remains stationary, instead of merging rapidly in the others. Let my reader, then, keep in mind that I divide mesmeric sleepwaking into imper- fect and perfect ; the former being altogether in har- mony with and elucidating the latter. In all the subsequent experiments, I was myself the operator, having, through the kindness of Mr. K , received such instructions as put it in my own power to practise the mesmeric art ; for it is plain that the course on which I was desirous of entering, required that I should be independent of the extra- neous assistance which I could by no means always have at hand, and demanded the full force of the most careful and personal experience, CASE I. The first person whom I succeeded in mesmerising was Theodore. The phenomena of the third sitting were repeated — with this additional proof of the patient's community of sensation with the mesmer- iser : — A member of our party, having heard it asserted that mesmerised persons could feel any injury that was inflicted on the mesmeriser, standing behind me, pulled my hair, without warning, and without a pos- sibility of my patient being made aware of the cir- cumstance in any usual way ; — for, first, his eyes 78 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING.-> were closed ; secondly, his head was bent down and drooping, as frequently happens in the mesmeric sleepwaking; thirdly, the position in which I stood completely screened from him the person who tried the experiment. Nevertheless, Theodore immediately winced as if he himself had felt the injury, and put up his hand to that part of the back of my head where my hair had been pulled, throwing his arm round my neck, as if to defend me from any other attacks that might be made upon me. I observed that when he exerted himself to play at dominos he was more particularly affected by those slight convulsive twitchings which I had remarked on a former occasion. CASE II. A. L , a Belgian gentleman of our acquaint- ance, who thoroughly laughed at mesmerism, con- sented, mockingly, one evening, to let me mesmerise him. He was twenty-three years of age — in good health; — in character imaginative, but of a scoffing turn, and lively even to boisterousness. On first sitting down, while I held his hands in the usual mesmeric manner, he laughed much and made ridi- culous faces, opening his eyes, and pretending, in his turn, to mesmerise me. Shortly, however, the same drowsy expression which I had remarked in Made- moiselle M stole over his countenance. He be- came serious, and seemed to struggle against the torpor which was evidently coming over him. At length, as if disliking to be vanquished, he got up from his chair with evident effort, and walked about MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 79 the room, but soon, complaining of an irresistible drowsiness, lay down, as if he did not at all know what he was doing, on the sofa, in the presence of ladies, before whom, under other circumstances, he never would have dreamed of committing such a breach of etiquette. 1 came to him, and, curious to know how far my influence over him might extend, made the usual mesmeric passes in front of him. Upon this, his upper eyelids, with a motion almost as slow and imperceptible as that of the hour hand of a watch, began to fall, while his eyeballs seemed drawn upwards. After a time, the lids became stationary and remained a little open, showing only the whites of the eye. His head began to follow the motions of my hand. 1 now asked him if he slept, to which he replied, in a very low voice, "Not altogether; 1 wish 1 could." " Do you sutler in any way ? " 1 inquired. " Ves. 1 have a pain in the back of my head." Upon this, I made mesmeric passes over the part affected, and soon after asked — Q. — Do you feel better now? A. — Yes. the pain is quite gone. Q. — Do you wish to be awakened? A. — No, I wish to sleep more soundly. Q. — Why do you not open your eyes wider? A. — I cannot; it is as if lead were on them (lis sont comme plombes). Q,. — Can you see any thing ? A. — I see you. Q,. — Nothing else ? A. — Nothing whatever. 80 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. I now made a motion as if I were going away, when suddenly the patient seized my hands, one in each of his, and exclaimed, " You must not go away, on any account." After this, he grasped my hands so tightly that it would have been no easy matter for me to liberate them. Fearing to irritate him, I re- mained quiet, and as long as I did so he lay perfectly motionless, but always with his eyes a little open. His complexion, which was naturally pale, was changed to a ghastly hue, and his whole appearance was so death-like that the spectators in the room be- came alarmed, and I own that I was myself uneasy. To my questions, however, he replied that he did not wish to wake, — that he was very well, but that I must not leave him. Thus circumstanced, I scarcely knew what course to take. That he should be awak- ened was desirable, for it was late ; but every effort that I made to free my hands only made him grasp them more firmly. My position was sufficiently ridiculous. I had raised a spirit which I could not quell, and the work of my own hands had become as unmanageable as the creation of Frankenstein. At length, after matters had remained in this state a full hour, I so strongly insisted upon his awaking, that he reluctantly permitted me to take the necessary measures for arousing him. I then made before the patient the motions which are usually employed for dispersing the mesmeric slumber ; and it was curious to observe how quickly, by means (as it seemed) of these few and simple gestures, the torpor passed away. At the same time, the natural color and ap- pearance returned to the countenance of my patient. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 81 who got up, rubbed his eyes, looked much confused at having slept in the company of ladies (a circum- stance that shocked his foreign politeness), and, with many apologies, bade us hastily good night. The next day, when I called to inquire after him, he seemed to be half ashamed of his mesmeric exploits, but owned that the way in which he had been affected was at least a convincing proof to him of the influ- ence he had denied. A drowsiness, he said, and slight confusion of head were still felt by him ; and these, he declared, were relieved by my moving my hand across his forehead. When I asked him what he remembered of his mesmeric state, he said that it seemed to him as if he had always retained in it a sort of twilight consciousness, and that he recollected having been very anxious to exchange these " twink lings of oblivion ,? for a deeper slumber. Of my having spoken to him, however, or of his having an- swered me, he remembered nothing ; and when I told him how forcibly he had kept me near him, he was much surprised. Shortly after making the foregoing experiments, I returned to England, it being the spring of 1837. Like a person full of a new subject, I discoursed, amongst my friends, upon what I had witnessed of the mesmeric influence. The result may be ima- gined. Those who knew me well were forced to be- lieve that I had really beheld the phenomena I de- scribed ; but here they were content to stop. It was all very extraordinary, they declared, and they would rather not think about it. Some swore — u 'Twas strange — 't was passing strange." 82 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. And others that — " 'Twas pitiful— 't was wondrous pitiful." A few, more sagacious than the rest, surmised that it savored of the black art ; and the ladies thought, indeed, that u the naughty man might have some- thing to do with it." One or two confessed that they were too old for the introduction of new ideas into their brains, — and I fully believed them when they said so. More distant acquaintances listened to my story with a look of polite incredulity ; — others yawned. The practice of the Baron Dupotet, and the ef- forts of Mr. Mayo and Dr. Lardner in promulgating Dr. Elliotson's experiments, had not yet familiarized the London world with, at least, the name of mes- merism ; — so, in the great thinking, unthinking me- tropolis, I met with scarce any disciples of the new creed. The only experiment, therefore, which I had any opportunity of making was upon a young cousin of my own, — a lad of about fifteen. He, however, proved at that time insensible to the mesmeric influ- ence ; but he took an interest in the subject of mes- merism, and actually tried to mesmerize a younger brother of his, who was not more than twelve years old. The results of his attempt are sufiicientlv cu- rious to tempt me to swerve from my usual rule of only recording that which I have personally observed. Besides, the actors in the little drama are so well known to me, that it almost appears as if I had been eye-witness to the scene, the circumstances of which were related to me by the mother of the two boys. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 83 The elder, in her presence, sat down, partly in joke, to mesmerise his brother, who was wholly ig- norant of the process and effects of mesmerism ; and, taking the hands of his patient, went through the forms of which he had seen me make use when mesmerising. Be it remarked that the time was middav, when the light, the noise in the streets, and the natural liveliness of youth, would particularly in- dispose a boy to slumber. Nevertheless, in about ten minutes, a manifest effect was produced. The patient's eyes closed as by a spell, and his head fol- lowed the mesmeriser's hand in the usual manner. Charles, the elder brother, now got up from his chair, when Edward rose also. The former raised his right arm; the latter immediately raised his; — his left arm — the same result. Charles walked forward — Edward advanced also. Charles stopped, and Ed- ward stood still on the instant ; — in short, all the gestures of the one were faithfully imitated by the other. But the mother became now alarmed, and insisted upon the young mesmeriser awaking his pa- tient. This was soon effected, and Edward, open- ing his eyes, and staring about like one just startled from slumber, expressed the greatest astonishment at finding himself standing in the middle of the room, declaring, at the same time, that his unconsciousness had been complete. In one point of view the above relation lays claim to a peculiar interest. The effects of a new influ- ence, when manifested by the young, are especially to be relied upon ; they can be neither prompted nor impeded by those prepossessions which are the growth 84 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. of maturer years : nor can they be attributed to those nervous imaginings which spring from infirmity. Youth, moreover, is the season of candor, when all is bold, healthy, unsophisticated ; and the phenom- ena which it exhibits are valuable in proportion as they are exempt from the suspicion which attaches to the doings of the older inhabitants of this crafty world. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 85 SECTION II. SHOWING THE CLAIMS OF MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING TO BE CONSIDERED A PECULIAR CONDITION OF MAN. In the spring of 1837, I went to Cambridge, on a visit to some friends. That I should have succeeded in interesting them, and others of the University, upon the subject nearest my thoughts, will not sur- prise those who have observed that, where science is most studied, new statements respecting natural phe- nomena obtain the most patient bearing. 1 did, in fact, at Cambridge, meet with many persons really desirous of witnessing experiments in mesmerism. and even of submitting themselves to the mesmeric influence. CASE in. In my first essay of mesmerism, at Cambridge, I ex- perimented — before seven or eight persons — upon a servant, whom I had brought from Belgium, a man of about twenty-seven years of age, in good health, lively and quick-tempered ; able also to speak English. I had attempted to mesmerise him once before, but, at that time, he had advanced no further than imperfect sleepwaking, during which he retained his conscious- ness, but could neither move nor open his eyes. On the present occasion, after a quarter of an hour's mesmerisation, he closed his eyes, but seemed restless, 8 86 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. and, in answer to a question I made him, declared that it was impossible for him to sleep on account of noises in the street and the constraint caused by the presence of so many persons. Scarcely, however, had he said this, when I perceived that his head followed my hand ; and, continuing the mesmeric passes for about five minutes more, I again asked him if he felt disposed to sleep. To my surprise, (for I had not expected a perfect result so soon) he replied, — " I am asleep." " Can you rise from your chair r H I inquired. " Yes ? but I had rather stay quiet. ' ? When, however, I got up and removed to a short distance from the patient, he also rose and moved a step or two towards me, but tottered and would have fallen, had I not hastened to his assistance. He leaned heavily against rne, and seemed unable to stand without my support ; I therefore placed him in a chair, when he complained of a pain at the chest, and begged me earnestly to wake him. " Can you not awake of yourself ? " I asked ; to which he replied, " By no means — but I beg of you to awake me." Reluctant to do so without exhibiting to the party present some of the marked phenomena of mesmerism, I soothed my patient as well as I could, and persuaded him to remain a little while longer in the state of sleepwaking. As he, however, mani- festly suffered, I was unwilling to fatigue him by many experiments. The following were the princi- pal : — wine, water, and coffee were handed to me, and I tasted them, successively, in such a way as to prevent the patient from perceiving, by any usual means, what the liquids were. He, however, cor- MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 87 rectly named them in their order. The order was then changed, and the results of the experiment were the same. Flowers were given me to smell : I was holding the patient by one hand, at the time, but turning altogether away from him to a table, over which I bent, so as to interpose myself between him and any thing that might be handed to me. He, however, when I smelt to the flowers, imitated the action, and on my asking him what he perceived, replied, without hesitation, " flowers." Upon this, one of the party silently changed the flowers for a bottle of can de cologne, when he observed, " That is not the same smell; it is eon de cologne" With the manner of conducting this experiment, and it> results, all who were present declared themselves perfectly satisfied. The patient, on being awakened, declared that he remembered nothing of what had pa8Sed sinee the moment when he complained of the noise in the street. His mesmeric sleepwaking had been com- plete. CASE IV. T. B.j an undergraduate of Trinity College, con- sented to try how far I could influence him mes- merically. He possessed abilities of no common or- der, was extremely lively, by no means of a wonder- seeking nature, and altogether seemed the last per- son in the world who could be worked upon by ner- vous apprehensions. He sat down to be mesmer- ised, laughingly, and with perfect calmness. In about tan minutes his eyelids drooped, and closed gradually ; 88 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. his head followed my hand ; his features became fixed and rigid ; his color fled, and a dead stillness came over his countenance : the change was the more striking on account of the usually animated and mobile character of his physiognomy. It painfully resembled the alteration caused by death. Never- theless, on being interrogated as to his state, he de- clared that he was well, with the exception of a slight pain in the back of his head, ] which was shortly re- lieved by the mesmeric passes. To other questions he replied that he did not sleep, but was unable to move, or to open his eyes. As, after long mesmer- isation, I saw no probability of his advancing further into sleepwaking, I awoke him in the usual manner, when his countenance resumed its accustomed ex- pression. On attempting, however, to rise, he com- plained of feeling extremely weak and dizzy, and. for a short time, he was unable to stand with any firm- ness. He was convinced that he had experienced the effects of an influence independent of the ima- gination. case v. C. M., a bachelor of Trinity, aged about twenty- five, submitted to be mesmerised ; lie was clever, thoughtful, and rather grave in character. On first sitting down, he seemed very wakeful, and declared that it would be strange, if, under circumstances the most unfavorable to sleep, he could be charmed into any thing like drowsiness. In about a quarter of an 1 See Case ii. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 89 hour, during which a perfect silence was by no means observed, some force seemed to close his eyes as ir- resistibly as if they had been touched by Mercury's wand of slumbrous notoriety, and he passed into a state of imperfect sleepwaking, in which his h^ad followed my hand and he answered my questions. On my removing to a short distance from him, he leant forward towards me, and would have fallen, had I not resumed my former position. I awoke him in about half an hour ; he had not been in any wav, unpleasantly affected, and retained a vague re- collection of an agreeable state of reverie, similar to that which precedes slumber. C VSK VI. On this occasion sonic ten or twelve persons were assembled to witness my experiments ; and amongst them was a man of luminous intellect and varied ac- quirements, whom I was naturally desirous of inter- esting in the question of mesmerism. He was de- cidedly skeptical on the subject, but I knew that his was a mind which, if once fairly convinced, would be firmest in faith and foremost in investigation. I was therefore vexed when, after long inesmerisation, my servant, whom, from his having once passed into perfect sleepwaking, I had chosen as the subject of our experiments, remained uninfluenced. Two or three of the party, tired of waiting for a result that came not, went away, and the person whom I was chiefly anxious to convince, and whom I will call V , having an engagement, was about to follow their example, when I urged him to stay a very short 8* 90 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. *» time longer, while I tried another patient, D. C, an undergraduate of Trinity, who wished, as he said, to try the effects of mesmerism, in order to prove their nothingness. After this, I need not add that he was very incredulous on the subject ; every circumstance seemed to diminish the probability of my success. The man I had agreed to mesmerise was in the strength of three and twenty years of age, six feet in height, and muscular in proportion. The stillness of the meeting, once broken, could not be restored. Persons were talking, and moving about the room, and my recent failure had thrown an air of ridicule about the proceedings of the evening, which, if the mesmeric influence were dependent on imagination, would have been sufficient to annihilate it at once. V looked hopeless of seeing any thing remark- able, and had taken up a book. The following facts then occurred : — I had not held the hands of D. C. more than five minutes, when I remarked a dizzy look about his eyes, which is peculiarly indicative of the incipient stage of mesmeric sleepwaking. Encouraged by this success, I had recourse to the mesmeric passes, when by degrees the eyes of the patient closed, and shortly after the head followed every motion of my hand. V , at this moment looking up from his book, was surprised to see what had been effected. I beck- oned him to come near, and, by reiterated trials, convinced him that my hand had an attractive power over the patient. I now spoke to D. C, and asked him if he wore asleep; to which he replied, -Not precisely.' 3 I MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 91 then, at V 's request said, " How do you feel ?" " Very strangely," he said, " as I never felt before." Shortly afterwards, V himself spoke to the pa- tient, and I called him by his name, but he seemed to pay no attention to the circumstance. When V happened to lay his hand upon his shoulder, the effect of the touch was like that of an electric shock. The patient's whole body quivered, his fea- tures were convulsed, his countenance became deadly pale, and he seemed to gasp for breath, like a person who has been suddenly immersed in cold water. Nevertheless, he did not awake, and the affection, whatever it was, seemed entirely physical (as if his mind had no longer its usual partnership with the body.) Hfe himself appeared to be unaware of it ; and, when I asked him what had disturbed him — what was the matter with him, lie said that lie felt nothing whatever. Still, however, he continued to tremble, until by the application of my hand to his forehead, and by mesmeric passes from the head downwards, I restored him to tranquillity. V , whom, since he touched him, the patient seemed to hear equally with myself, now recommenced speak- ing, and asked D. C. if he knew him. He replied in the affirmative, and named him. " Dou you see at all ?" V inquired. " Not much ; I see a red light about so large ;" and D. C. made a circular motion with his hands to express the size of the light. I then asked him, " Do you see me ?" to which he answered, " Yes, I see you always." " Well," I said, " I wish you now to get up from your chair." " Oh no, no ! I prefer staying where I am ; but you 92 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. must stay with me." u No !" I replied, " I am going :" whereupon, he seized both my hands, and exclaimed, " You must, on no account, leave me." I, however, rose up, when the patient also rose ; I walked forward, and he walked also, but unsteadily, and leaning upon me. As he seemed to dislike remaining in an upright position, I placed him in a chair in a part of the room opposite to where he had been. I then proceeded to show V some of the characteristic phenomena of mesmerism. I drank wine, water, coffee, with the usual precautions, and the patient distinguished them all, going through the motions of tasting simultaneously with myself. There were various articles of food upon the table, amongst others some sandwiches. These last were given me, and he said directly, "You are eating sandwich." This may seem strange — it is so to myself ; but I state the fact as it occurred. Some snuff that I took from the chimney-piece behind me, turning my back, and suppressing, as much as possible, the usual indi- cations of smelling, was named directly ; this being exchanged for flowers, the result was equally satis- factory. Remembering with what acuteness of perception Mademoiselle M had distinguished between objects that did or did not belong to her mesmerist, I asked for the pocket-handkerchiefs of all the party, twisted up my own in the midst of them, and laid them on the knee of D. C. He was immediately affected with slight shuddering ; and tossed away very quickly all the pocket-handkerchiefs but mine. The experiment, repeated, gave the same result ; but MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. 93 the second time he grasped and firmly held my handkerchief, until the time of his awaking. At a yard's distance his hand rose up to meet mine, as iron flies to the magnet. From the ap- proach of other hands he recoiled. These experiments concluded, V said to me — "I am now satisfied that all you asserted to me respecting the mesmeric state is correctly true. I do not know that we are liable to elicit any new fact by keeping D. C. any longer asleep. He looks ill ^jid suffering, and I think you had better wake him." Upon this, I asked the patient if he desired to wake, and he replied " Yes ; I feel much fatigued." I awoke him, by the usual mesmeric passes, when he expressed the utmost astonishment at finding him- self in a different part of the room from that where he had first been mesmerised. The last half-hour had been a blank to him, with this single exception — he thought that he remembered hearing V 's voice, asking him if he knew him. Faithful, how- ever, to his character, he refused to believe that he had exhibited the phenomena to which we bore witness. The next day, as may be supposed, I talked over with V the circumstances of our mesmeric even- ing. I found him entirely persuaded that mesmeric sleepwaking was a distinct state, worthy to be inves- tigated as a part of man. His concluding words were these : — " I thank you for having enlarged my experience by facts perfectly new to it. I have seen a some- thing which is not sleep, which is not delirium, but a 94 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. tertium quid, for which, as, yet, we have no accurate name. The thing is most interesting, but should, I see, be exercised with caution. The effect of my touching D. C. was fearful. You have verified many phenomena. It has occurred to me that you might try, when you have an opportunity, whether the sense of touch in the mesmerised sympathizes with that in the mesmeriser, as do the senses of smell and taste. Try whether, through you, the mesmerised person m^y have a cognizance of form — - whether he can ascertain, by means of your perceptions, if you are handling square objects or round — rough or smooth." To this suggestion I promised to attend. CASE VII. On this occasion my patient was G. T , aged 19, the son of a gentleman at whose house in the country I spent a few days after quitting Cambridge. He was strong and healthy, and possessed good sound sense, with but a trifling infusion of imagination. After a quarter of an hour's mesmerisation he passed into imperfect sleepwaking, in which state his corpo- real powers were held in complete and singular en- thralment, while those of his mind remained unaltered. Unlike my other sleepwakers, he was utterly incapa- ble of speaking during the mesmeric trance, though as he told me subsequently, he heard every question I put to him, and was desirous of answering me. He was also unable to open his eyes, or to move, except so far as regarded the involuntary tendency of his head towards my hand. Another time, being curious to ascertain how far the influence (whatever MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. 95 it might be) which I exercised over the patient was dependent upon physical causes, I made the experi- ment of mesmerising him in the open air, on a fine June day. when the weather was warm, but refreshed by partial breezes. The following were the differ- ences between this mesmerisation and the last: — The patient did not close his eves so soon as on the preceding occasion, nor pass into the imperfect crisis by so regular a progression. In the beginning of his sleep, the power to move and to open his eyes seemed slightly restored when- ever the gust came by. He told me afterwards, that when I commenced mesmerism-, the action of the air produced a decided difference in his sensations. When the wind swept across his forehead it was. he said, as if there were a disturbance of some drowsy weight that was gather- ing over it. By degrees, however, he became insen- sible to this apparent remission of the sleeping influ- ence. Nothing, he declared, could be more singular than the feeling of utter inability to speak, move, or open his eyes. He heard me command him, urge him, in every way, to answer my questions, but his organs of speech seemed to be as completely paralyz- ed as those of vision. In fact, the only external indication that he had given of his desire to reply to me was the slightest possible motion of his lips. CASE VIII. The family with whom I was staying having but few prejudices on the subject of mesmerism, I was permitted — in consideration, I suppose, of my years 96 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. and gravity — to mesmerise the sister of my preced- ing patient, a young lady of most amiable temper, cheerful, and by no means of a nervous temperament. Of the experiment to be tried she had no apprehen- sion, as she had already seen her brother support mesmerisation without injury ; and it should be espe- cially kept in mind that her ideas of the mesmeric state were limited to what she herself had witnessed of it ; for I had expressly abstained from describing the higher phenomena of sleepwaking to herself or to any member of her family, in order that their minds might be uninfluenced on the subject. Under these circumstances, to ascribe the curious results which I am about to detail to imagination or to imitation, would be absurd. I sat down to mesmerise my patient about nine o'clock in the evening. In about seven minutes her eyes closed, and in three minutes more her head followed my hand. I asked several times, " Do you sleep ? " but no answer was given, and I began to fear that this incapacity of speech under mesmerism was a family failing. At length, however, on a repe- tition of my question, Miss T answered in a very low voice, " Yes." From this time she replied to all I said, and displayed the higher characteristics of mesmeric sleepwaking in a pefection which I never saw evinced upon a first essay. The effects of mes- merisation upon the patient seemed to be altogether of an agreeable nature. She felt no pain of any kind, and her color did not vary, or, if any thing, was slightly heightened. Her appearance only dif- fered from the natural in these respects ; — her eyes MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. 97 were entirely closed, and her head, drooping as if with the heaviness of slumber, swayed dizzily from side to side, except when I strongly commanded her attention, and desired her to raise her head, at which times she seemed with an effort to resume the power over her organization. In this state, the phenomena manifested by Miss T may he ranged under the llSUal head-, a- follows : — l-t. Attraction towards tin mesmeriser. — Though indisposed at fir8t 3 like other- in the mesmeric sleep, to motion. Miss T . when 1 arose from my chair, rose also. Without touching her. I mOved onwards, and she seemed Compelled to follow me. At one time 1 ran quickly to a distance from her, when she remained standing where 1 had left her. but bent towards me. and wavered as if -he would fall. I made a motion with my Bimfl a- if I would draw her tome. when, recovering herself^ she -lowly, and as it were reluctantly, came to where I stood. When her hands were lying <»n her lap. if I held mine above them they were attracted upward, more quickly as they drew Q< arer my own. It was much like the effect which a piece of rubbed sealing-wax has on a bit of paper. In proportion to the attrac- tion towards her mesmerisei seemed the patient's repulsion from others. If any but myself presented their hands to her. she drew back her own with a slow but singularly repugnant shrinking, her fingers becoming rigid and curved inwards. This experi- ment was often repeated with the same results. Re- membering how painfully one of my patients had been affected by an unadvised touch, I was careful not to 98 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. allow any one to come into actual contact with Miss T ; until I had established what mesmerisers call a " rapport " between the parties, and which is effected by the mesmeriser taking, at the same mo- ment, the patient's hand and that of a third person, 2dly. Community of sensation with the mesmeriser. — Wine, water, and a stand of liqueurs were on a side table. Placing the patient as far from me as was consistent with my still touching her hand, turning also away from her, I tasted alternately water and wine, between which she distinguished correctly, moving her lips as if she herself were drinking. Some brandy and water, already mixed, was in a tumbler on the table ; for this I suddenly changed the first-mentioned liquids, when the moment I had taken it into my mouth the patient made wry faces, and exclaimed, " Nasty, nasty." " Why do not you like it?" I asked. " Because it is too strong." " Have you ever tasted it before ? " " Yes, once, when I had a sore throat." " You know then what it is ? " Yes ; it is brandy and water." A member of the party gave me, from behind, some wild flowers, which the young people had gathered that day. " Do you know what I am smel- ling ? " I inquired. " Something that comes from the fields," was the reply. The flowers were silently changed for snuff, when the patient again exhibited symptoms of dislike. On being asked the reason, she said, "I smell tobacco." It now occurred to me to try the experiment which V had suggested with respect to the cog- nizance of form. With every precaution, I took up MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. 99 from a table, on which were many other articles, a small square box, and passed my finger over the edges; I, at the same time, asked the patient, "Can you tell me what sort of thing I am touching?" Upon this Misa T made motions with her fingers, as if she had the object under her own hand, and replied. *-It is something with edges, like a box." I next took into my hand a chess-man, some parts of which were carved in points, and fell alternately the carved and uncarved portions of the piece. Between these she discriminated correct]), saying, "Now it feels rough ; now smooth ; " and always before speak- in- she went through the same motion* of touching with myself. One of the patient's sisters, without giving notice of her intention, went out of the room and fetched an egg, which she concealed can-fully in her hand and gave me from behind. The patient now said, " I feel something smooth and round*" Being urged to tell what it was. she said. " I think it i< a ball.' 1 Stretching out my hand behind me, I whispered to one of the party, to hurt me in some way; I was pricked with a pin, when my patient started and shook her hand as it' she felt the injury. On being asked what she felt, she answered, " As if they pricked my hand." At another time, w lien I inquired if she suffered in any way. six* replied, " No, only my feet are very cold/' My own feet being exceedingly cold at the moment, I suspected that her feeling was sympa- thetic : I conjectured rightly, for, awaking soon after, she assured me that her feet were perfectly warm. 100 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 3dly. Isolation from every one hut the rnesmeriser. — Even after having been placed "en rapport" with all present, the patient seemed incapable of hearing any voice but mine, unless the person who spoke were in actual contact with me and with herself at the same time. On one occasion, when I was asking her if she knew what some object was that I held before her, her father told her very loudly that it was a wine-glass (which it actually was), but the patient did not profit by the intelligence, for on being again questioned she said impatiently, " I do not know ; I cannot tell." Her name shouted close to her ear by different members of her family seemed to make no impression whatever upon her organs of hearing ; — while, on the contrary, she attended to the slightest word that I addressed to her. 4thly. Development of vision. — The patient's i were, to all appearance, firmly shut during the whole period of the mesmeric sleep. When I first asked her if she saw any thing, she answered in the negative ; but added, after a pause, " I see yew." After this, she seemed by degrees to acquire a more general vision. She recognised, on being led up to them, the several members of her family, consisting of nine persons, and could not be deceived by any change in their position. At length, I held a book before her on a level with her eyes, when she. with- out hesitation named what the object was. Upon this I opened the book at the title-page, and pressed her to try if she could distinguish any words. She at first begged me not to trouble her to do this ; but at length, as if making a great effort, she made out MESMERIC SLEEPWAKINC 101 the word ••London/* ;it the bottom of the page. This \\a> the first time I had seen any sleepwaker read any written of printed word. The experiment, however, though curious, was not strictly enough conducted to serve as the basis of any theory on the mysterious subject of radon through the closed lids. The book, at the moment when the word was dis- tinguished, was resting noon the patient's lap. below the level of hei eyes. Those, however, who wore observant of the circumstance, could detect not the smallest opening of the eyelids. Holding my watch before the patient, in the usual line of vision, I asked her the hour, when she cor«« recti] told that it was five minutes to eleven. Directly after this last experiment, I awoke my patient, who testified great surprise at finding herself on a chair instead of the sofa, where she last re- membered to have hem seated. Mr. T now came up to her and said, •• II . do ypo know what o'clock it is.?" to which she replied. ••! sup- pose about ten, or perhaps half-past nine. I am sine I cannot tell." Mr. T , then said, M Why. it is not five minutes since yon told us the hour/' Upon this Miss T seemed much astonished, but de- clared her utter ignorance of the circumstance, and indeed of all that had occurred during her sleepwalk- ing. The last thing which she recollected was hear- ing me ask whether she slept, when she desired to answer me but could not. A moment after, she be- came unconscious. Her feelings after the mesmer- isation was over were those of pleasurable excite- ment and she felt none of the heaviness which some- 102 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. times succeeds sleepwaking. The next morning she declared that she had not been able to close her eyes all night, but had felt no want of sleep, nor subse- quently did she experience any of the lassitude usu- ally resulting from a wakeful night. On a second mesmerisation Miss T confirmed by repetition the results of most of the preceding experiments. A cambric pocket-handkerchief tied over her eyes made no difference whatever in her powers of vision. She did not even seem to be aware when I put on the bandage, or when I took it off. While bandaged, she read the words u Edinburgh Guide," and " Travels in Russia," from the title-pages of two books, which I took up at random from amongst others lying about the room, and held before her, in about the usual position a person holds a book in reading. The effort to distinguish these words seemed to be great, and subsequently Miss T refused to make any more exertions. I urged her to look at my watch, but she remained silent, and soon after large tears forced their way through her closed lids. Having tranquillized my patient by such motions of the hands as I have ever found beneficial and sooth- ing to mesmerised persons, I awoke her, when she at once resumed her cheerfulness, and began laughingly to ask her sisters what she had been doing, and how long she had slept. She was not in the least aware that she had been crying, and I begged that she might not be told of it. I might here, perhaps, close my series of proofs relating to mesmeric sleepwaking and its phenomena ; but, as regards this argument, numbers are strength. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKIXG. 103 and each additional instance of the mesmeric sleep, accompanied by the -nine characteristics; is a step towards that firm and decisive,* conclusion on the sub- ject, which can only be attained, on any. by a repe- tition of the same fact under the same circumstances. At the risk, therefore, of wearying my readers, I add the following cases, which occurred after 1 bad re- turned to the Continent in 1831 : — 9E i\. J. G , of Antwerp, aged twenty-two, not very strong, but having no particular ailment, was brought by me into imperfect mesmeric sleepwaking. His head followed my hand, and he was unable to move or open hi- eyes, though he replied to my questions. II* fell a drowsiness dtiring the whole <»t the day succeeding to the mesmerisation. ( LSI W , of Aix-la-Chapelle, aged fort} -five, in delicate health, of a calm, reflective mind, and skep- tical as well as uninformed on the subject of mes- merism, was thrown into perfect sleepwaking at the first Bitting. He displayed the usual characteristics of the state. There were ctocumstancea relating to this patient which I shall have occasion hereafter to detail, and which are therefore omitted here. CASE XI. T. B , (English) aged nine, an extremely lively boy, and full of the restlessness natural to his age, consented to be mesmerised, but observed that he 104 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. thought he never should be able to sit still while I tried my experiments. Notwithstanding this, and the time of day (two o'clock), his eyes closed after about ten minutes' mesmerisation, and shortly after he gave every token of having passed into perfect sleepwaking. He answered all my questions, heard no other voice than mine, was attracted towards me in the usual manner, and, with his eyes to all appear- ance shut, saw me, and indicated the position of my hands and the number of fingers which I held up before him. In about half an hour he begged me to awake him, and, on returning to the natural state, declared that his unconsciousness had been complete. CASE XII. Mrs. O , a married English lady, clever and firm-minded, was thrown by me into imperfect sleep- waking in about a quarter of an hour. In this state her countenance was pale, her head moved towards my hand involuntarily, and she was unable to get up, or to open her eyes, until I had de-mesmerised her. CASE XIII. R. V , a young Belgian, of the medical pro- fession, was so far susceptible of the effects of mes- merism as to display the usual symptoms of imper- fect sleepwaking. Having an engagement on the evening that he was mesmerised, and rather ashamed of having slept, he hurried away before the mesmeric drowsiness had been entirely dispersed. The conse- quence was that he nearly fell down in the street, MESMERIC SLEEPWAKIXG. 105 and was obliged to have recourse to the support of a fellow student. On the following day. he still felt a confusion in his head. This is not the only occasion on which 1 have remarked that the sensations which attend and follow an imperfect crisis are l>y no means so agreeable as those which result from complete deepwaking. In the oik- case, there is an apparent disturbance of the system, accompanied by feelings of drowsiness and fatigue — in the other, the frame ii- to he invigorated, and a wakefulness and vi- vacity are the after Bymptoms. CAST. \i\. At the time when this occurred, F was staying at a country house in Switzerland, and my friends, the intess <>f and Lord were passings few days al the town which was nearest our residence. Having heard from me some interesting details re- specting mesmerism, they were desirous of \\ itnesding it- phenomena: but, ;i- no patient was forthcoming, it seemed unlikely that the wishes of my noble friends would he gratified. However, late one evening, the Countess sent her carriage and a note, pressing me to come to her immediately, a- she had met with some friends, amongst whom I should find one at least willing to be m ismerised. On arriving at the town of I was introduced, for the hist time, to a most agreeable English family, the friends of whom the Countess had spoken ; and after some conversa- tion, in the course of which I ascertained that the newly-arrived visiters had but a very vague notion of what they were to witness or to experience, it was 106 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. decided that I should mesmerise Miss , a young lady, who might have seen some eighteen summers, of a lively disposition, and not in the least timid or nervous with regard to the experiment about to be made. Lady took down a kind of proces verbal during the proceedings of the evening, and from this I extract the following details : " Mr. T began to mesmerise Miss at ten o'clock. Five minutes after her eyes closed, her head followed the mesmeriser's hand wherever he moved it. The mesmeriser then asked — Are you asleep ? Patient. — No ; I am not asleep. Mesmeriser. — Do you like being mesmerised ? P. — No. (On repetition) Yes. The apparently mesmerised person here started from her seat, opened her eyes, and said. " I 'm not in the least mesmerised." All present thought she had been feigning, and were preparing to join in a laugh against the mesmeriser, when, to the surprise of every one, the patient fell back into her chair, her eyes at the same time closing with a sleepy expres- sion. The mesmeriser continued his passes. The head, as before, followed the hand. The mesmeriser then said — - Do you feel sleepy ? P. — Yes. M. — Why then do not you sleep ? P. — I do. M. — Are you quite asleep ? The mesmeriser here drank some wine, turning his head away, and asked — a MESMERIC SLEET WAKING. 107 Do you taste any thing? P. — No, but I snail wine. (The wine was. how- ever, too tar off from the patient to have been distin- guished by her. in any way. under ordinary circum- stances.) M. — Do you know where inv hand is : P. — (her hand going duvcilv to where the mes- meriser's was | JTes. M. — I 'an \ <»u see me ? I\ — Yes, but not very distinctly. (Her eyes ap- peared to be closely shut*) M. — (smelling to a oosegay which he took from the table) What is this? P. — Flowers. The mesmeriser now urged the patient to rise from her chair, but she expressed the strongest reluctance to move : at the same time she Untreated the mes- merise? not to teave ber. He, howevef, went to a little distance, when Miss seemed to be forced to get up and follow him. Supported by the mes- meriser, she walked balf across the room, but begged that she might be permitted to sit down again. The mesmeriser then placed her in a chair in the middle of the apartment, and held up various objects (not belonging to him) before her eyes. These die de- clared she could not ><•<•. but whenever the mesmi ri- ser held before her any thing which belonged to him- self, she named the object directly. In this way she told rightly when the mesmeriser successively pre- sented his pocket-handkerchief, purse, and watch, also a letter which he took from his pocket. On being asked if she could distinguish the hour on the 108 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. mesmeriser's watch, she held it before her closed eyes, and said, " It is a quarter to something." In effect it was a quarter to eleven. The mesmeriser now asked — What am I now tasting ? P. — (seeming to swallow something.) Cold water. (Right.) M. — What am I eating ? P. — (seeming also to eat) Something like bread, but sweeter. (It was cake.) M. — Do you like it? P. — Yes. M. — What am I smelling ? P. — Eau de Cologne. (Right.) Miss 's father and mother now approached her, and would have taken her hand, but she drew it back with a shudder. To the mesmeriser's hand, on the contrary, her own seemed always attracted, and rose up to meet it when held at a considerable dis- tance. She distinguished between her father's and the mesmeriser's handkerchiefs, by throwing the former away, and retaining the latter in her posses- sion. She also refused to part with a small piece of coin on which the mesmeriser had breathed, and which she held fast grasped in her hand. The patient being now asked if she was tired, repli- ed that she did indeed feel much fatigued, and seem- ed pleased to rest her head, leaning forward, upon the mesmeriser's hand : at this moment she seemed to sleep very deeply. Her countenance was ex- tremely pale. She seemed to hear no one speak but the mesmeriser, but always answered his questions. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 109 On his asking if she felt well and comfortable, she replied. -Oh, so comfortable! " nevertheless the position of the patient, as she bent forward, with her Deck stretched out, was the most uneasy that could well be imagined. M. — Would you not be more at your ease on the B ? I\ — ( )li DO ! 1 am BO WeH here ! but you are not going awaj 1 The mesmeriser hew rose and went to the sofa, when Miss seemed obliged to do bo likewise. M. — Are you not better here l\ — Yes. so — Bitting quiet The me8meriser no*i asked hi- patient if she would awake, but >\\r Baid she would rather remain oua she was, and begged of him to allow her to deep some time longer. At length, however, th< i mesmer- iser said, " 1 must wake you," and passed his hands rapidly over the patient- eye8, when they partially opened, but she shut them again directly, exclaim- ing, u I had rather sleep." The inesmeriser however continued to use the same motions as before, when the patient again opened her eyes, and to the question " Are you quite awak :" answered in the affirma- tive. She then looked about with an air of Surprise and asked how she cam* to be sitting on the sofa i Then she laid up her hand, which still remained closed upon the piece of money that the mesmeriser had f passing; and surely I have said enough to remove from it the reproach of being limited to a few nervous and fanciful persons, chiefly of the weaker sex. ( hit of three and twenty indi- viduals in whom 1 induced deepwaking, more or less perfectly, six only were women, one only a de- cided invalid. Let me, however, hasten to anticipate an objection which may have been forming in my reader's mind. 1 ought, it may be Urged, to have noticed my casefl of failure as well as of success. This objection shall not long be valid — I have already Stated that a COUSin of mine could not he in- fluenced by me mesmerically. The trial was how- ever scarcely serious or protracted enough to be considered as decisive one way ot the other. At Cambridge two persons experienced no effects from me-merisation. The one was determined to resist the influence, and to that end was solving an abstruse mathematical problem all the time that I was mes- merising him, The other disliked being mesmerised and was afraid of it j — and fear I have always found to be in mesmerism a most disturbing force. Sub- sequently among those whom 1 have essayed to mes- merise, I have met with but four persons who mani- fested either no symptoms of being affected, or those so slight and equivocal that they may not be relied upon. Of these, two were ladies, who ought (accord- ing to the received notion of mesmerism) to have 112 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. been more easily influenced than persons of the other sex, especially as they allowed me a fair and sufficient trial, while, on the contrary, the two other individuals alluded to jumped up from their seats after a mes- merisation of a few minutes, one of them exclaiming, " I feel nothing ; and now believe in mesmerism less than ever ! " However, allowing these cases to pass as absolute failures, it appears that in the space of less than two years, the number of persons mesmerised by one single individual was in the proportion of twenty- three to eight. Striking off even the imperfect cases, there will remain fourteen persons out of thirty-one in whom sleepwaking was fully developed with all its attendant train of characteristic phenomena, — these too, not being selected by myself as likely subjects for mesmerism, but offering themselves accidentally : and surely they who consider how difficult it is, first, to prevail on persons to submit to mesmerisation at all, and, secondly, to secure an adequate trial, will wonder that the cases are so many rather than so few. The great argument, therefore, against mes- merism, of infrequency and irregularity, falls to the ground. Nor can any one rationally demand a uni- versality of mesmeric sleepwaking, before he will ad- mit that it is one of the states into which man gene- rally has the capacity of passing. The exceptions forbid not the existence of the rule. All persons are not, it is to be hoped, mad ; yet we pronounce mad- ness to be an affliction to which any man whatever is liable. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 113 H Perhaps some doctor of tremendous paunch, Burly and big — a black abyss of drink," — may see all his fellow topers under the table, himself sober the while : yet this by no means affects the proposition, that drunkenness is a state into which man generally has the capacity of passing. But there yet remain two important questions to ask and to answer, n ipecting the phenomena which I have detailed. 1st. Have 1 been deceived J 2d. Have 1 been mistaken ? The first implies that my patients feigned; the se- cond that in\ senses were incompetent to discern the objects presented to them. The wilful and determined opposers of mesmerism (carefully to be separated from the mass of honest objectors) are very ready, in judging of mesmeric state- ments, to have recourse to one or both of the above suppositions, not perceiving, that in so doing, they decide abstract questions which can never be limited to the single subject of mesmerism, but which bear largely upon the whole conduct of life. In their blind zeal to overthrow the particular object of their dislike, they would strike away universally the two great props of humanity, namely. — belief in our neighbor, whereby we greatly regulate the moral part of our nature; and confidence in the sufficiency of our senses, whereby alone we judge of any thing external to ourselves. Allow that a large proportion of per- sons deceive, (as we must do, if We suppose all whom we mesmerise to be feigning,) and what becomes of our faith in the founders of our holy religion, even 10* 114 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. in the credibility of human testimony on which we ground our present actions and our future hopes ? Again, grant that we are deluded by our senses to the extent we must be when we are mistaken in a multitude of cases, and what remains in the universe but dreams and uncertainties ? The splendid labors of Galileo and Herschel, based as they are on the competency of the human senses, are but as a vapor, and the discoveries of Newton, sublime as they ap- pear, must be as illusory as the organs through which they were transmitted. But it may be replied, — We are not to distrust our senses generally, but only in those particular cases when they appear to bear testimony incompat- ible with former experience. This manner of view- ing the question is plausible, and has accordingly been much adopted by those who would make short work of mesmerism and banish it a blow. On these grounds some have even gone so far as to say — Should we even see the imputed wonders of mesmer- ism with our own eyes, we should not credit our senses. Whether such determination be as wise as it is magnanimous, remains to be proved. There is unfortunately just that mixture of good in it which makes evil dangerous. Every reasonable man will grant that we should examine with becoming caution any appearances that may seem to contradict our former experience ; — but to reject, when we should only distrust — to be positive when we ought to be merely skeptical — is certainly not the part of reason. The mistake seems to have originated, as so many other misconceptions on important points have done, MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 115 not so much in a false idea as in the misplacement of a truth — in taking that as a basis which is only superstructure. The maxim, " Doubt all that does not harmonize with previous knowledge," is just in itself, but, in this case, becomes, by its position, erro- neous. It is e\< -client as a monitor, but insufficient as a guide — an admirable servant, but a miserable master. Were the ultra ante-mesmerists consistent, and should they carry through their principle, what groundwork would they have for any belief whatso- ever ? I may be answered, "Experience!" Yes; but should it be forgotten that experience itself is the fruit of the senses ? What becomes of the product, if the parent itself be found so very fallible? If we grant that we are the fools erf our Bensei in oik 4 im- portant branch of their observation, why not in all? The absurdity is this : we arc to trust our general ex- perience, but allow that it may err in the particular, as if the general were not composed of the particular ! It is as if we were to talk of a good form of govern- ment under which every individual was grossly wronged. Now. trust in the testimony of our senses, or rather of our consciousness. i*> not only the ground- work of all we believe, but is the cement of each fact that makes up the whole fabric of our certain knowledge. Of the external world we can ascertain nothing but through the faculties by which we ob- serve it; and of the external world we can believe nothing but by our trust in the accuracy of those fa- culties — our organ of information is either competent or incompetent. If it be competent, there is no rea- son why we should distrust it, ceteris paribus, in one 116 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. case more than another. If incompetent, there is no reason why we should trust it, cceteris paribus, at one time more than another. There is no alternative: either we must place confidence in our sole medium of knowl- dge, or take refuge in universal skepticism. Grant that every anomaly presented to us be a reason for temporary doubt ; still, when it is often enough presented to us, our doubts as to its existence cannot but cease. Allow that to accept facts on insufficient grounds is folly ; still, to reject them when properly demonstrated is equally absurd ; nay, the greater dan- ger waits upon unfounded hesitation. A too great rashness may correct itself; but distrust in the evi- dence of our senses is a radical defect, which, as it annihilates all things, so does it preclude the possi- bility of a remedy ; — not that any w r ise man would attempt to deny that, though our senses are compe- tent, we ourselves may be in fault ; and that, through a careless use of our means of knowledge, we may sometimes err in our estimate of things. But though this may happen once or twice, the most slovenly ob- server can scarcely be deceived as to the actuality of facts which occur before him again and again. Moreover, in witnessing aught so remarkable as an exhibition of the mesmeric phenomena, the gazer's mind is in the attitude of roused attention ; a state the most opposite imaginable to the careless mood, in which we are apt to be deceived. Thev who would represent mesmerism as the cheat of our own eyes should remember, that the worst mistakes of our senses are but transient, even momentary, and that their very errors tend to correct themselves. For MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 117 instance, when alone in my apartment at the witching time of night, I may suppose I see a face gazing at me from out the window curtains. But my imme- diate impulse is to look again, and to bend a stricter scrutiny upon the delusive appearance, which I dis- cover forthwith to have arisen from certain fortuitous arrangements of light and shade. It might, indeed. have happened that, ov e rcome by sudden panic, I should have tied from the room, while still under a de- lusion, and have proclaimed ever after I had seen a ghost. But such conduct is. happily, the exception to, and not the rule of. that of mankind in general. Besides, there is plainly no analogy whatever be- tween a momentary and fear-engendered delusion of this sort, and a persistence in error, with regard to objects which we behold very frequently and in the calmest frame of mind. Other apparent inaccuracies there are in the action of the senses; but these are well known, and deceive no one: and exceptions, when known and invariable, become themselves a part of the original law from which they seem to deviate. Allowances are made lor them ; and on every subject to which they relate our judgments are quite as exact as if no such limitations were enjoin- ed. Thus, when we apparently see a Bash of light from bringing into contact zinc and silver in our mouths, we soon come to know that there is no such thing; and when a juggler by the rapidity of his movements bewilders our apprehension-, we admire his dexterity, but are not deceived by it in the least. But the phenomena of mesmerism come not within the category of these transient illusions. The pa- 118 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. tients who exhibit them are not jugglers, but per- sons of good faith, unpractised in sleight of hand or dexterity of any kind. Even supposing them to be adepts in deception, they manifestly cannot play a part of which they know nothing ; and I have shown that those whom I have mesmerised were generally unaware what was to be felt or done in mesmeric sleepwaking. Am I to entertain a thought so mon- strous, as that a number of respectable individuals whom I casually met at different times and in dif- ferent places were united in a conspiracy to deceive me ? I cannot think so, even if I would. He, who observes a state frequently, attains at length to a cer- tain experience in its minute symptoms, which, like IthuriePs spear, detects falsehood at once. Now, in mesmerism, there are a thousand such trifling but decisive tests of authenticity. To instance only clockwork lowering of the eyelids, and the remark- able manner of their closing — it may be affirmed that these phenomena are not imitable ; for they are out of the reach of human muscular power, as long as it remains under its usual conditions. Perceiving, then, that imposition on the part of my mesmeric patients is not only in the highest degree unlikely, but actually impossible, and confiding in the testimony of my own senses, I am assured that I have witnessed a state of man which is peculiar and distinctive, 1st, as induced ; 2dly, as possessing its own characteristics when induced. Nor are these conclusions at all invalidated by the common argument so often adduced by the ante-mes- merists, that the whole of what are called the mes- MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 119 meric conditions are brought about through the agency of the patient's imagination, and are there- fore self-induced. This is plainly quibbling ; for, granting that imagination be the proximate cause, or immediate antecedent of mesmeric sleepwaking, still we require a moving cause, or a prior antecedent whereby the imagination itself La set in action ; and this moving cause is indisputably external, and to be referred to certain looks or gestures or mere prox- imity of the mesmeriser. Equally futile is the at- tempt to nullify the fact of external influence by as- sertions " that some individuals on whom the effects of mesmerism have repeatedly been produced may exhibit like effects, without being mesmerised afresh, provided they are led to believe that the process is carried on as usual and that they are under its in- fluence." This proves nothing more than the usual law of our nature, whereby trains of Bensations grow into habits, and occur in certain series when the idea that is linked with them can be raised in the mind. But then they must always owe their origin in the first place to some exciting cause, which remains the true basis of their production ; since but for it they would never have existed. Thus the peculiar sensa- tion called tickling was in the first instance made known to us through the contact of something exter- nal (it being a curious fact that no one can tickle himself so as to fall into that convulsive laughter which characterizes the sensation ;) yet if any one presents his finger to susceptible persons, as if with an intention of tickling, the feeling will be excited, and those on whom the experiment is tried will 120 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. shrink and laugh, as if actually touched by the finger. The idea, then, of the primary cause of a sensation confessedly precedes the sensation itself ; and, when mesmeric patients obey this law, they appear to me, instead of disproving the influence which primarily affected them, to establish it altogether. In sup- posing the actions of the mesmeriser to be present, the patient owns them as the primary cause of his sensations ; and the reproduction of the accompany- ing phenomena, under certain convictions, is a per- petual recognition of that force which first set the hidden springs in play. In mesmerism, then, the influence of man is al- ways the proper antecedent; — the state of mesmeric sleepwaking the proper consequent. Will any one declare that external causes have nothing whatever to do with the production of the mesmeric state ? Yet this he must affirm before he can consistently class mesmerism with self-originating states of mind or body. In vain, therefore, is the mesmeric sleep likened to, or identified with, natural sleepwaking. hypo- chondriasis, catalepsy, &c, for it differs in one most important particular, from any of these states : it is consequent upon external influence ; it is induced, and that (whatever intermediate machinery may be set in motion) by the agency of man. We should consider also how utterly distinct from constitutional disorders like the above is mesmeric sleepwaking, which may be produced, almost at will, in all kinds of temperaments. Catalepsy, which it in some re- spects resembles, is a disease ; but the mesmeric j MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 121 sleep is not a disease. Surely every event has its adequate cause, and, if mesmeric patients are not sleepwakers either from malady or by constitution, how ifl it that they become so? It has been shown that not only the healthy and the strong are suscep- tible of the memneric slumber, but individuals ad- vanced in life, who cannot be suj>po>ed to have that restlessness of the blood which sometimes atllicts younger persons with steepwaking. How then can we confound mesmeric with natural sleepwaking ? The causes which are explanatory of the one have nothing in common with the other. Besides, the sleepwaking we are considering is guided and wield- ed by external agency ; — and this alone, exclusive of other considerations winch we have before sug- itedj is a sufficient answer to those who allege that the so-called iiicsiiii lie State can be produced apart from the mesmeriser; since, when genuine, k pre- supposes the exhibition of phenomena that spring from the mesmeriser** actual presence. Another fliatingiiighing feature of mesmeric sleep- waking which stamps it with an individuality the most remarkable, is (as far as my own observation of the state extends) the extreme clearness and truth of its perceptions. Mesmeric patients act upon real impressions, and in perfect conformity with external circumstances. They retain all their sense of local- ity, all their cognition of time, and their knowledge of the persons who may be around them. Now natural sleepwakers are generally acting under some delusion. They will get astride upon a chair and fancy that they have mounted a horse, and, advanc- 11 122 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. ing still further into hallucination, will whip and spur their imaginary steed, supposing that they are per- forming twelve miles within the hour. Like Lady Macbeth, they will see what is not, and, their waking thoughts continuing to influence their slumbers, they will suppose themselves still engaged in deeds which have been long numbered with the shadows past. I do not say that this is always the case ; — but facts will bear me out in the assertion that auto-sleepwak- ing can never be characterized as an unillusive state. Again, mesmeric sleepwaking, in some respects, resembles the exaltation produced by opium ; but we have only to read the celebrated Confessions of an Opium-eater, to be convinced that the votaries of that drug live in a fantastic and ideal world. With natural sleep mesmeric sleepwaking can least of all be identified. That it is as different from this as natural sleep itself is from waking, may be judged from the following circumstance : E. A., re- turning with me and two other persons from an evening party, fell asleep in the carriage. I made the mesmeric passes over him without contact and in silence. After about the usual time required for mesmerising him when awake, he began to stir and testify uneasiness. Soon after, he spoke, and up- braided me for taking him at a disadvantage, and for changing his natural sleep into the mesmeric. There was as marked a change in his condition as if he had actually shaken off slumber. A lady l , whose daugh- ter was sometimes singularly affected by a species of 1 See note relating to Madlle. Estelle PH., in Book II. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 123 auto-sleepwaking. presenting many of the features of the mesmeric state, told me that the patient would occasionally go to bed. while in what she called the "crise," fall into a natural sleep, rest well, yet rise the next morning, still, as it were, self-mesmerised. Chardel also, a French writer on mesmerism, gives an interesting account of two sisters whom he mes- merised, as a physician, with the hope of checking a tendency to consumption which they had both evinced. One evening, being in sleepwaking, they, as if prompted by a natural instinct, entreated their mesmeriser to leave them in that state, only so far demesmerising them as to enable them to open their eye- and to he committed to their own self-guidance. Day after day they renewed then- petition — for day after day they fell health returning under the mes- meric influence. In other respects they pursued their usual habits, and their mesmeric existence had its alternate periods of sleep and of waking, as regu- lar as those of the natural life. At the end of three months, their cure appearing to be complete, M. Chardel conducted the sisters, accompanied by their mother, to a beautiful spot in the country. Where he restored them to a knowledge of themselves. He describes, in lively terms, their surprise and joy on returning to consciousness. It was winter when they entered the mesmeric state — it was now spring. The ground was then covered with snow, but now with flowers. They were then looking forward to an early grave; but now the feeling of renewed health tinged every thing with hope and life — almost doubting if they did not dream, they threw them- 124 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. selves into their mother's arms, gathered flowers, and smelt to them, and endeavored, by the exercise of their senses, to convince themselves that it was all a blessed reality. Not a circumstance of the three past months survived in their memory. And this leads me further to remark, that the ab- solute forgetfulness which severs the mysterious state of mesmeric sleepwaking from the cognizance of or- dinary consciousness, sets a peculiar seal upon this very remarkable condition of man. The drunkard has his glimpses of remembrance ; the opium-eater can recount his visions ; the natural sleepwaker may sometimes recall the dreams that influenced his sleeping actions : but he who emerges from the mesmeric state, when it is true and perfect, has shaken hands with memory on the threshold. It is true that reverie shares this complete oblivion ; but then reverie is a state of illusion and of incoherent thinking. Darwin, who has treated of it at length, characterizes it as such, and mentions a young lady (in whom reverie had become a malady), who, when under a paroxysm of this complaint, would converse with imaginary visiters. On one occasion, while thus afflicted, she took off her shoe, looked at it, and said " A little longer and a little wider, even this would make me a coffin ! " With reverie, then, mesmeric sleepwaking cannot be identified, and in every point of view we seem justified in considering it as a state apart from all others — a distinct and peculiar condition of man. I do not, however, forget that these deductions are founded on the proceeds of my individual observa- i MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. 125 tion, nor that it is essential that the experiments which are their base should be capable of repetition, in order that each man may. if lit 4 so pleases, bring my accuracy to the tesfl of his own senses. Convin- ced that persona] observation, if sincere, will establish all that 1 have advanced, 1 urge every one to inquire and to judge tor himself. And this peculiar advan- tage attends upon mesmerism, — the proof of it, by experiment. i< in the hands of all. The mesineriser makes no mysterious monopoly of his art. but con- tends that the power to mesmerise and the capacity of being mesmerised, however modified by circumstances, may be developed in every human being. More- over, for that repetition of the mesmeric phenomena which is necessary to produce a conviction of their reality there is not needed, as m chemistry or optics, an assemblage of substances, or a complicated appa? ratus which few can command. The follies of the b&quet and of the magnetic rod have perished with Mesmer, and at the present day the mesineriser\s eye and hand are his sole " conjuration and mighty magic." But here it may be asked, " Why then, if the proof be so easy, is the world so hard of belief?" The answer is obvious : because there are few who will take the trouble to prove facts, which, from causes already numbered, men had rather not believe. Besides, though I do not hesitate to say that all who are really desirous to obtain proofs of mesmerism may, with comparative ease, obtain them ; still, in searching for these, a virtue is required, which is by no means a general attribute of mankind ; namely, per- severance. Nothing, indeed, is easier than for a man 11* 126 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. who dislikes being troubled with the new ideas which the subject of mesmerism introduces into the mind, to make a hasty trial of the alleged power, and failing to elicit or to experience any of its effects, to say, " I have proved it and found it nought." But he who adopts this facile mode of dismissing a trouble- some question can scarcely be called an inquirer, nor can his verdict have much weight. To examine a phenomenon is not sufficient : we must examine it also adequately ; and if it be recognised as a princi- ple that a fact is not to be admitted till after a re- peated scrutiny, neither, in common justice, should it be rejected till after the same deliberate investigation. But whether the difficulties attendant upon a verifica- tion of those phenomena which I have witnessed and carefully noted have been under or overstated, I must, as a principle, inculcate a dependence upon the ob- server who makes the subject his study, rather than on the captious opponent or indifferent idler who ap- proaches the same theme with a want of temper or a want of patience, which equally disqualify a man from judging rightly. Putting myself wholly out of the question, and speaking as if I were only justifying, and claiming belief for, the first discoverer of mesmer- ism, I cannot but assert that there was a much greater chance of his being in the right than all who have subsequently proclaimed him in the wrong. In every case, the boldness and acuteness which lead a man to take new views of a subject and to combat ancient prejudices are in his favor. There is an innate con- sciousness attendant upon correct observation which upholds him and encourages him to war with the MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 127 world. The sudden light that has struck him is like a light from heaven and brings conviction to his breast. His eyes are not deluded, but sharpened by desire. No other person can have that intimate zeal — that interest in the inquiry which urges him on- ward. His all is at stake, and consequently no one is so strict with him as he is with himself. Who can compare the cursory and partial views of the great body of mankind with his; We may call him a visionary or a heretic* but, remembering the slow but certain triumph of Harvey and Galileo, we should be cautious how we brand him with epithets which may only recoil upon ourselves. How abundant are the proofs that all which is most opposed to the passions and prejudices of men is most likely to be true! Again, in the history of all observational science there are precedents to show that the accuracy of the most genuine experiments has been called in ques- tion by those who were unable to repeat them. Of this the reception which the Newtonian doctrine of light and colors met with from the world is a familiar instance, the more to be noted on account of New- ton's reputation as a strict investigator. Abjuring all hypothesis and cautiously pursuing the method of in- duction which Bacon had substituted for the worth- less dogmatism of the schools, the great philosopher, one might have thought, could have had nothing to apprehend from the petulance of opposition. His theorems were facts which every man might verify to himself by the aid of his own senses. And yet in many cases Newton appealed in vain to the common testimony of our common nature. The correctness 128 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. of his experiments was doubted by many scientific men both of his and other countries ; a host of enemies impeached the soundness of his conclusions ; and even in a later age, after the general voice had ratified his theory, the celebrated Goethe, quitting his domain of high imagination, undertook to expose its errors in a work which will ever remain a monument of perverted genius. A certain dependence, then, upon the first observer of new phenomena is inculcated both by reason and by experience, and appears to be requisite, when we would ourselves examine the phenomena, to guard us from impatience and to support us through deceptive appearances. But, I would ask, is this the course pursued by the opponents of mesmerism ? Certainly not : they bring forward the defective trial of an experiment as a complete refutation of the experiment itself, and se- lect, with curious partiality, the one failure amongst innumerable instances of success, as an illustration of the nullity of mesmerism. Yet what would be said of a man who, going to see some well-known chemi- cal or other effect exhibited, and finding it fail through unforeseen circumstances, were to return home con- vinced that no such thing had ever existed ? What, again, would be thought of this man's state of intel- lect, were he to write a book to prove that certain phenomena, because he had not witnessed them, had never been seen by thousands who could support them by their testimony ? Yet, cannot even such an original skeptic as this be considered a whit more ab- surd than they who fondly fancy that by eoopartt MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 129 statements and scattered histories of failure, collected from men as prejudiced as themselves, they can put down mesmerism ? Do they forget that all which ap- pears to be a mass of negative evidence is but air in the scale when weighed igainst one positive fact ? "It is a very obvious principle*" says Chalmers, "although often forgotten in the pride of prejudice, and of controversy, thai what has been seen by one pair of human eyes is of force to countervail all that has been reasoned or guessed at by a thousand hu- man understandings." Let, then, body alter body of learned men deny the phenomena of mesmerism and Logically disprove their existence, an appeal may evei and at any mo- ment be made to the " proof by experiment;" and* even should experiment itself fail a thousand times, the success of the thousandth and find trial would justify further examination. Till the authority of observation can be wholly set aside, the subject of our inquiry can never be said to have undergone its final ostracism. 130 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING, SECTION III. SHOWING CERTAIN OF THE PHYSICAL AND METAPHY- SICAL CONDITIONS OF MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. Hitherto I have exhibited to my reader a succes- sion of patients, the greater part of whom I had no opportunity of mesmerising again. I may have been considered as trying an experiment upon a great scale, as to the mesmerisibility of mankind in general. Such a mode of proceeding has this advantage : — persons, who have been frequently mesmerised may be charged with having been well practised in their parts ; but they who exhibit for the first time the mesmeric char- acteristics, without even having heard them previously described, stand aloof from all suspicions of the kind. There is neither habit nor imitation nor duplicity to be charged upon them ; and therefore the phenom- ena they display may be regarded as eminently gen- uine. But, on the other hand, it should be consid- ered that such phenomena, if more to be relied on, are also humbler in decree than those belonoino: to a more advanced stage of sleepwaking : and this, I think, may be owned without prejudice to mesmer- ism ; for, as I have before observed, we cannot liken it to those purely mechanical agencies which affect persons as forcibly the first time as in all succeeding trials. Many of the phenomena are of such a kind MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 131 as to be obviously capable of development ; and in demanding a certain license on this account we ask no more for mesmerism than is conceded in every case where man's intellect is concerned. Let it be always kept in mind that mesmeric sleepwaking is more than an exhibition of involuntary motions or mere physical changes. It is a state which appears to possess its own laws of perception and of action ; and, in this point of view, a mesmerised person may be considered as learning a new language in which he cannot express himself with eloquence or with ease until he lias mastered its idioms and possessed himself of its copiousness. When we reflect upon the difficulty we all find in acting in any unusual way, we cannot but perceive that time must be re- quisite to the development of a mode of existence which seems to be abnormal in the highest degree. It is evident then, that, in order to study the phe- nomena of mesmeric sleepwaking in their maturer development, it was necessary for me to mesmerise the same person frequently. This I have done in more than one instance, and the following has been the result of my observations : — In accordance with what has been suggested above, it is to be remarked that each successive time a per- son is mesmerised he becomes more easy of mesmer- isation, and more at home in his new capacities. Hence without effort he exhibits many phenomena which may be called spontaneous, in distinction to those which result more clearly from the peculiar re- lationship in which the mesmeriser, pro tempore, stands to his patient. The two classes of phenomena should 132 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. be accurately distinguished, and their difference borne in mind. At present, I have chiefly given instances of the latter ; as was natural, considering that my earlier patients were more dependent upon myself than those whom I subsequently treated, and that in consequence my attention was chiefly turned to the mesmeric processes necessary for producing or direct- ing their sleepwaking. It was not till later, and till the task of guiding my patients could be, in a degree, remitted, that I was able to add some remarks, (which indeed appear essential to complete our view of mes- merism as a separate condition of man), upon the state of the bodily organs, and of the mental facul- ties, in the mesmeric sleepwaker. Beginning with the former, and dividing the corporeal functions into the sensitive, the vital, and the motory, we first in- quire — What is the state of the actual apparatus of the senses during mesmeric sleepwaking ? And first, Of the Eye. This is a part of the body which is earliest affected under that which we may call, without theory, the human influence. One of the first tokens a person gives of passing into mesmeric sleepwaking is a look of stupor in the eyes, and an apparent lack of power in the eyelids to perform the usual office of nictation. The upper lid, as I have before observed, falls very gradually over the organ of sight, and sometimes. ceasing to move altogether, remains suspended, as it were, in such a manner as that the eye appears to be three quarters closed. When this continues to be the case, the patient rarely falls into sleepwaking. the MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 133 exceptions occurring commonly amongst those who sleep with their eyes partly open and who keep them in the same state during the whole period of their sleepwaking. The patient, when interrogated as to his sensationSj will declare, (retaining his conscious- ness at the time) that he feels prickings in his eyelids, and. as far as outward actions can he proof, the same uneasy sensation remains 01 recurs at intervals during the sleepwaking. For all thesleepwakers 'at I have seen rub their eyes frequently, so that any one would think they were about to awake; but their slumber remains undisturbed, and the action alluded to seems simply automatic, as when in natural sleep we brush oil' a fly from the face without being con- scious of the movement I once asked a sleepwaker why she rubbed her eyes, and she replied." Did 1 do so? [ suppose if i- a tuck I have" ("je suppose que c'est une habitude"). I have before remarked that many persons in semi-sleepwaking retain their con- sciousness, yet are wholly unable to open their eyes. A scientific man, accustomed to investigation, being in this state, assured me that he experienced a gra- dual paralysis of the nerve connected with the eye, and with the motive powers of the eye-lid. and that at length his utmost efforts of volition were insuffi- cient to make the orbicular muscles obey him as usual. Sleepwaking being complete, the eye is gene- rally first closed, yet not exactly as in sleep. The following differences may be noted : — 1st. The place where the eye-lids meet, in a natural way, is much below the level of the transverse diameter of the eye ; but I have observed that in sleepwaking the line of V2 134 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. contact is often thrown so high above its ordinary situation as to coincide with what Haller calls the equator oculi. 2dly. There is a compressed look about the lids, as if they were rather held down by force than quietly and naturally closed. 3dly. The ball of the eye is in frequent and violent motion , which, in those who have prominent eyes especially, can be plainly discerned beneath the skin of the eye- lids. All these circumstances, it should be remem- bered, are actually distinctive of the mesmeric sleep ; for many persons who form a wrong notion concern- ing it suppose, before assisting (as the French say) at a seance of mesmerism, that they are to see a some- thing precisely like natural slumber, and exclaim, when the reality is before them, u This must be all a trick," only because their erroneous ideas are contradicted. With regard to the internal state of the eye during mesmeric sleepwaking, it is, of course, difficult to judge. No force, short of that which would seriously injure the sleepwaker, can wrench asunder the eyelids. I have tried this and made others try it, and the resistance to such efforts was so great that, to be appreciated, it must be felt. But that which violence cannot accomplish, the command of the mesmeriser can ordinarily effect, though that he should use this power with great dis- cretion the following occurrence will show. I once asked Mademoiselle Anna M , (whom.' after re- turning to the Continent in 1837. I frequently mes- merised) whether she could open her eyes, which, at the time, were fast shut in mesmeric sleepwaking. Her reply was, " I can do it, if you insist that I MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 135 should ; but I warn you that you will see something very disagreeable, and. besides, the effort will do me no good.' 1 Notwithstanding this warning, I commanded my metmeri$ii t<> open her eyes. She did so. It was really a fearful sight. The eye- balls were turned up, and converged towards the nose, the white of the eye waa bloodshot, and the whole organ quivering and convulsed. As may be supposed, I did not long keep my sleepwakcfr in what appeared to me 8 painful state, and. at my command, she again closed her eyes- On awaking her shortly after, what was mv alarm to hear her declare that she saw nothing whatever! She appeared to be much agitated, and my thoughts may be conceived; as long as I had the least reason to tear that my rash experiment might end in her being blind for life. The exigence of the moment, hpwever, roused me to rtion, and the idea occurred to me that the best thing I could do was to re-mesmerise my patient as quickly as possible. This I did. As soon as she had passed into the tnesmeiiC state, she became calm and begged me not to be alarmed, as the blindness she had just experienced was but the momentary effect of the fatigue to her eyes, caused by the effort to open them. She then requested me to breathe on her eyes, and to lay my hand on them, after which, she assured me that I might awake her with- out any further apprehension. In effect, the tran- sient but fearful attack of blindness was passed away. After this, as may be supposed. I was not very ready to bid my sleepwakers open their eyes. I have also found in them all, when consulted on the subject, an 136 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. extreme dislike to the idea. I have, however, reason to think that the position of the eyeball is, in most sleepwakers, the same as it appeared in Mademoiselle M- . I once asked one of my patients, while in the waking state, if he knew in what position the eyes were during sleepwaking, and he replied, " I do not at all know, but I should suppose just the same as now. Why should there be any difference VI Having thus ascertained that he had no preconcep- tions on the subject, I again asked him, when in sleepwaking, " In what position are your eyes ?" " I will show you," he replied ; and without a mo- ment's hesitation, seized a pencil and a paper that lay on the table, and drew an eye, with the ball turned up to one corner, and only partly seen. [I should observe that this sleepwaker had an extraordi- nary power of vision in the mesmeric state, to which I shall hereafter have occasion more particularly to allude.] Another time, I had an opportunity of making further remarks on the state of the eye, under mes- meric sleepwaking, through the kindness of Mr. Berckmans, architect of the province of Antwerp — a man whom I have pleasure in naming, as one who utilizes mesmerism by employing it (and success- fully) in the relief of maladies. This gentleman permitted me to see one of* his sleepwakers, who, from a natural predisposition, often kept her eves open during sleepwaking. During twenty minutes or half an hour that I saw 7 her thus, I could most truly affirm that, though her eyes were open, their " sense w r as shut." A dull film seemed to over- MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 137 spread them ; the pupil was dilated, and did not contract with light. A candle brought near, or a hand waved suddenly and quickly before the pa- tient's eyes, produced no perceptible alteration or motion either in the lid or in the apparatus of vision. Altogether, there seems to be every reason to con- clude that the eye in mesmeric sleepwaking is either so disordered or so paralyzed in its functions as to cease to convey impressions to the mind — in any mode at least that can be termed ordinary. Secondly. I now proceed to show that a similar derangement of function seems to take place as re- gards the sense of hearing. In proportion ;i^ persons sink deeper into mesmeric Bleepwaking, their external senses se< m blunted, one by one. and so far there is certainly a relation be- tween the mesmeric and the natural sleep* The eye. as we have seen, yields fust to the slum- brous influence. Long after tins organ has ceased to act, the hearing retains all its acuteness. and the sleepwaker is able to indicate w hat sounds are going on around ; but at length tin; " porches of the ear" are closed as well as the M curtain of the eye," and the patient, though still alive to feeling, is dead to every sound save that of the (nesmeriser's voice. I have proved this times innumerable — so frequently, indeed, that it is better to give the genera] results of the experiments I have witnessed than to state one in particular. Often have the members of my family, or visiters, who perhaps were but little inclined to believe in mesmerism, tried to awaken Mademoiselle M , or to startle her by sudden noises. Logs of Y4* 138 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. wood have been dashed against the floor; plates have been suddenly broken ; her name has been shouted out, close to her ear ; in vain. Other per- sons present have shown that they were startled — but not the sleepwaker. Once or twice, indeed, on such occasions, when asked if she heard any thing, she has replied, u No, I heard nothing ; but I thought, just now, something pushed against my chair ; " a mode of expression which deserves to be remarked, as analogous to that used by deaf persons to describe the sensations given them by the concussion of the air produced by great sounds. I once met a young lady, perfectly deaf and dumb from her birth, who was, in this way, remarkably sensitive to the undula- tions of the air. I have frequently seen her start when a door was opened, or when any thing fell sud- denly, and the account she gave to me of this, in writing, was that she felt as if some one had pushed against her. So susceptible indeed was she to aerial vibrations that she could distinguish a certain mea- sure and rhythm in harmonious chords which gave her a marked degree of pleasure. She would take a stick, and, putting one end of it in her mouth, would place the other in contact with the piano, while any one was playing on it. Discords struck upon the instrument made her shudder, and convulsed her fea- tures with all that pantomimic exaggeration so usual in the dumb ; but soft and pleasing sequences of sound soothed her and brought a satisfied smile over her countenance. It has appeared to me that the mesmerised possess similar perceptions of sound apart from the natural MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. 139 sense of hearing, and that, like the young lady above alluded to, they require certain conductors, in order to make them apprehend a regular series of aerial vibrations. Be it however remarked that the degree of this isolation from sounds, considered as sounds, depends on the intensity of the mesmeric sleep ; for it should ever be kept in mind that mesmeric sleep- waking has its shades and graduations, varying from consciousness fully retained to its faintest twilight or utter extinction. A due recollection of this truth will prevent many mistakes and unfounded expecta- tions relative to our subject. In the case of Mademoiselle M , as being a perfect sleepwaker. the insulation from all sounds to which I did not serve as conductor was complete. This phenomenon, u indeed most of the others I have mentioned. was rather accidentally offered to my remark than looked for or expected. A lady, present when Mademoiselle M had been mes- merised by me. went up to the sleepwaker and spoke to her for some time. She however did not seem to hear what was said, and indeed held her head down with every sign of inattention. By mere ac- cident the speaker touched me. Then suddenly the sleepwaker lifted Up her head, and assumed the ex- pression of listening. A slight movement drew me away from contact with the speaker, when the sleep- waker said — "I hear nothing now." She then herself took the lady's hand, placed it in mine, and laid her own upon both so as to be in contact with each, saying, " Now I hear well." We subsequently found that it was under such an arrangement as this 140 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. that the sleepwaker could best hear any one speak, though did a person talking merely touch me she manifested some perceptions of sound. On one oc- casion, when a musician was singing and playing during her mesmeric trance, she, seeing him at the piano, expressed a desire to hear the performance, and, to accomplish this, requested me to lay one hand on the musician's shoulder, while she herself laid a hand upon mine. So placed, she heard the singing well, but the piano indistinctly. Others of my sleepwakers manifested similar phe- nomena, some even the first time of being mesmer- ised, when they knew nothing of the characteristics of mesmeric sleepwaking. The scientific person to whom I have once before alluded, and whose testi- mony is valuable, inasmuch as his habits of mind led him ever to separate illusion from truth, assured me, when in the mesmeric state, that he could hear no sound whatever except my voice. I made another person speak who was in the room on that occasion, and the sleepwaker was unaware that any thing had been said. Another patient (E. A , to whom I shall have occasion to allude hereafter) said, when I was sing- ing, " You should ask Mr. V " (a musician who was in the room) " to accompany you." I did so ; but, though Mr. V made a loud accompaniment to voice, E. A. kept calling out, " Why does he not play ? " 3dly. State of the nerves of touch. — Every one has heard of the insensibility of sleepwakers to exter- nal stimuli. Even in the present crisis of hostility to MESMERIC SLEEPWAKIKG. 141 mesmerism, the world seems agreed to go the length of believing, with Mr. Edwin Lee. that, " in the states of partial torpor, not unfrequently occurring in ner- vous persons," (so does the cautious doctor define mesmeric deepwaking,) "the individuals are, to a certain extent, insensible to mechanical stimulants." This being granted, the evidence which 1 can bring forward to confirm the alleged phenomenon is, fortu- nately, hut little ii'' ded : and. in truth, I was too little inclined to try such cruellies upon my sleep- walkers, as plunging in pina and applying inoxas, to be able to offer numerous proofs upon the subject. Such experiments, however unfell at the time, cannot but produce effects <>f which the patients \\ ill become Sensible afterward-: and. when tiny are smarting under the pain occasioned by the burning away of half an inch of skin, they will be but ill consoled by the glory of having suffered in the iiise of science. On these grounds, 1 have refused either to torment my sleepwakers or to allow them to be tormented. However, a friend of mine was once determined to try an experiment of this kind: and, without giving me any notice of his intentions, he suddenly plunged a large pin into the back of the hand of Anna M , so that the blood came when it was withdrawn. She neither moved her hand nor started, nor seemed in any way sensible of the injury. About half an hour after, being still in the mesmeric state, she looked at her hand, as if by accident, and, seeing the congealed blood on it, asked, " What in the world is this ? " At another time, being lightly touched with the end of a feather about the lips and nostrils, (a proceeding 142 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. which few can endure,) she gave no token of sensa- tion, and once, while I was mesmerising her, she said, " I feel now quite comfortable," at the very moment when some one, fond of experiment, was pulling her ear till it became scarlet. [This inflam- ing of the cuticle seems to show, by the way, that the skin, in sleepwaking, loses none of its functions, though it no longer transmits sensations to the mind.] Other little circumstances, naturally presenting them- selves, have confirmed to me the physical insensibil- ity of sleepwakers. Anna M had once a swollen and very painful finger. In her waking state she complained bitterly of the torment she endured from this, and was constantly breathing on the disordered part. Once, in sleepwaking, she seemed to forget her finger altogether ; and, on being interrogated, declared that she felt no pain. Another of my sleepwakers (E. A ) watched his sensations, while he was entering into the mes- meric state, up to the last moment, when conscious- ness became extinguished. He told me that he could distinctly perceive a gradual deadening of sensation ; that at length he no longer felt his limbs : but that all his life and feeling seemed to rally towards the brain. In the mesmeric state, he continued to assure me that he was corporeally insensible ; and anxious. as it seemed, to try experiments upon himself, lie would bite his own hand till he drew blood, without, as he affirmed, exciting sensation. 4thly. State of the organs of taste. — That these also share the insensibility of the other senses I have had every reason to believe. Anna INI could MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 143 never distinguish one substance, that was placed, with precaution, in her mouth, from another. I have told her that cfa ese was very good Orange, or water wine : and >iie. trusting to my veracity, has impli- citly believed me : her faith in my assertions being uncorrected by the exercise of her usual faculties, and preponderating manifestly over these. 1 have tried upon her. when in sleepwakinir. the well-known experiment of placing a piece of einc and a piece of silver, the one above, the other below, the tongue, and then bringing them suddenly in contact ; but no metallic taste was peiceiwd by her. The same ex- periment, repeated in her waking Mate, produced its usual result, 5thly. Thi itncU $eem$ equoUy unaffected by exter- nal stimuhu. — 1 have held, for a considerable time, strong ammonia, which made my own e\es water, even at a distance, clove under the nose of a sleep- waker. while the mouth was shut and respiration carried on only through the nostrils. The breathing proceeded as regularly as before ; then' was no watering of the eve : in short, the patient (a sister of Theodore) gave no token whatever of sensibility in the olfactory nerves, or those of common sensation or touch. Having finished our review of the sensitive organs, we now proceed to consider the state of those which may be called vital, viz.. the respiratory, the circula- tory, and the digestive. In those mesmerised persons who have fallen under my observation, the respiration has been slower and more regular than usual, resembling what 144 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. it is in sleep. Occasionally, when the sleepwaker has been permitted to repose, either in a sitting or cumbent posture, the breathing has become louder, almost approaching to stertorous. Any one seeing the mesmerised at such times would pronounce them to be really asleep ; but the proof that this cannot be the case is, that they still hear and answer the mes- meriser's voice. I have found, also, that, in mesmeric sleepwaking, the heart beats more slowly and evenly than in the normal state, and that the pulse indicates a corres- ponding change in the circulation. On one occasion, two medical men, by no means favorable to mesmerism, were present when I was about to mesmerise Mademoiselle M . It was during the festivities of the Antwerp carnival ; and my fair patient, having been at a ball for two nights running, was fatigued, and feverish — complaining much of pains and stiffness in her limbs. Before beginning to mesmerise, I requested the medical men to feel her pulse. On doing this, their exclamation was, " You ought to be in your bed, Mademoiselle, for you have a great deal of fever." In fact, her pulse was one hundred and twenty, her skin hot and dry, and her tongue white. I then threw my patient into sleepwaking ; and after she had continued in that state, reposing on a chair, for about a quarter of an hour, I again asked the doctors to feel her pulse. Each took a wrist, as before, with due professional gravity, and with a stop-watch counted the pulsa- tions. u Marvellous ! " they both exclaimed. " The pulse beats quite other than when we last felt it. The MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 145 sharp wiry rebound of fever is gone, and the pulsa- tions, besides being soft, full, and regular, are not more than eighty in a minute." After this I made my patient rise from her chair, and during the hour that she remained in sleepwaking, she was in almost constant motion ; vet she neither complained of, nor betrayed in her gestures, the fatigue and stillness from which she had previously been suffering. On awaking. Hie doctors again inspected her state, and assured me that every symptom of malady had dis- appeared. The patient's pulse had sunk to seventy- four in the minute : her skin was cool; her tongue no longer indicative of lever. When asked for an account of her own personal sensations, she declared that she i« Il so renovated] and so entirely free from pain and uneasiness, that she should have thought that the sleep of two nights had heen put together in the single hour of her sleepwaking. Hearing this, the doctors were inclined to exclaim, with him of the fraternity in Macbeth, " A great perturbation in na- ture ! To receive at once the benefit of sleep, and do the effects of watching." The effect of the Mesmeric Sleep on the Digestive Or gans seems equally reparatory, and indicative of in- creased Power. E. A , a youth aged fifteen, whom I frequently mesmerised, and whose general health was excellent, was suffering one day from an accidental attack of indigestion, accompanied by slight sickness. During an hour's sleepwaking his uneasy feelings were sus- 13 146 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKIN&. pended, and, when he awoke, were found to be com- pletely removed. At another time — not with a view to any particular experiment, but in the way of a plea- santry — I kept the same sleepwaker in the mesmeric state for a longer period than usual, so as to make him eat his supper with our family party, while still in sleepwaking. Our evening meal was brought in ; and the patient, at my request, (for otherwise he did not seem to care about taking anything,) ate what- ever was given him ; and as our object was to make him feel, on awaking, that he had had his supper, and to wonder how this had come to pass, we sup- plied him plentifully with food, so that he actually made a fuller meal than was usual with him at the same hour. We then had the supper things remov- ed ; and, in about a quarter of an hour afterwards I awoke the patient. His first question was, " Have I been long asleep ?" " How long should you sup- pose ?" we inquired. " I cannot imagine," he re- plied ; " but I hope we shall soon have supper, for I am very hungry I" At this we all laughed, and assured him that he had just made a capital meal — a piece of information which he at first refused to believe. The bell was rung, and the servant called in to depose to the fact, before he could credit it ; and then he appeared by no means disposed to rest contentedwith what seemed in his idea a refection as visionary as that wherewith the Barmecide in the Arabian nights regaled the beggar. He begged to have if it were only a crust of bread, to appease the cravings of hunger ; and, the wherewithal being afforded, soon made a second repast as substantial MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. 147 as that which we had forced upon him during his sleepwaking. 1 Again, before the above occurrence had taken place, I mesmerised the same person near the hour of luncheon ; he having previously observed that he was very hungry, and therefore hoped I should wake him soon, in order that he might eat his accus- tomed meal. When in mesmeric sleepwaking, he complained no more of hunger ; and, indeed, assured me that he felt nothing whatever of the powerful appetite which had so recently tormented him. He 1 At the time that the above phenomenon presented itself, I had not met with an interesting account of an extraordinary cure by mesmerism, written by M. Despine, physician at Aix-en-Savoie. Subsequently, on reading the Doctor's pamphlet, I was struck with the following passages and their relation to the subject we have been considering : — " Estelle a l'appetence de tout ce qui lui convenait, et de ce qu'elle aimait dans ses premiers ans. De plus, elle en mange, pendant sa crise, arte abandonee ct impuniment, sans jamais en eentir le moindre mal-aise ; pendant que, dans son etat naturel, elle ne saurait s'ecarter de son regime vegetal habituel, sans en eprouver des crampes, &c. " On dirait que notre malade semblait avoir deux estomacs— - Tun pour l'etat de crise, l'autre pour celui de veille. " Mais ce qui paraitra plus singulier encore, e'est que les alimens, pris en abondancc dans la crise, ne paraissaient pas, le moins du inonde, la rassasier pour le temps de veille, etvice versa." Since reading the above, I have had an opportunity of seeing the young person mentioned — a most interesting little girl of thir- teen years of age, living at Neufchatel, in Switzerland. Her mo- ther certified to me all the above particulars, and told me that mes- merism alone had cured her daughter Estelle of paralysis and spine complaint, after all other means had been tried in vain. Of the degree of the patient's previous illness of course I can only speak from the testimony of others ; but this I can certify, that, when I saw Mademoiselle Estelle 1H , she was apparently in perfect health and enjoying the activity natural to her age. 148 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. had no desire to awake ; and, as I was engaged in trying upon him some interesting experiments relating to vision, I did not think of demesmerising him till late in the day — about half an hour before dinner. The moment he was restored to the normal state, he declared that he was almost mad with hunger ; and when I told him how long he had been in sleep- waking, was quite angry that I had not waked him sooner. Though told that dinner would soon be on the table, he begged to eat something immediately. This and the preceding anecdotes seem to indicate that the digestive functions are by no means disor- dered or suspended during mesmeric sleepwaking ; but, on the contrary, that they act more powerfully : while, on the other hand, they do not, as usual, con- vey intimations of their condition to the mind ; for, in the first instance, we have seen indigestion re- moved during sleepwaking — a proof that the appa- ratus of digestion is strengthened in the mesmeric slumber. Secondly, we have been made aware of digestion having been rapidly performed in the mes- meric state : a full meal having been so quickly assimilated to the juices of the body as to cause the sensation of hunger to recur almost immediately after it was taken. Thirdly, we have been shown hunger progressing as usual, but unfelt, during the whole period of the mesmeric sleep. I may add that the increased energy given to the digestive functions during mesmeric sleepwaking has seemed, in some cases to confer a lasting benefit. Mademoiselle M , though in other respects strong and healthy, suffered, when I first saw her, from MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 149 indigestion, which manifested itself in painful fits of colic. Subsequently she thus wrote to me : — " With regard to my complaints of the stomach, I have not felt the least symptoms since my last mesmerising. My malady has been too severe, and the relief I have experienced too effectual, for me to doubt of the good effects of mesmerism. 91 Again, that the human influence is reparatory of the vital functions generally, I had a proof in the case of a gentleman (already mentioned in Sect. II.) who allowed me to mesmerise him when he was suf- fering from the fatigue of a long journey and night- travelling. He remained in the mesmeric state half an hour only, yet, on awaking, he exclaimed, " Je me sens comme nouveau-n£." All sense of lassi- tude was gone. From the vital we proceed to a consideration of the motive powers. Any one who has attended to the cases of mesme- ric sleepwaking. which I have detailed elsewhere, must have remarked that the natural inclination of mesmeric patients is to remain perfectly still. It is only by the mesmeriser's persuasion that they are induced to move ; and their first attempts at walking are, like those of an infant learning to use its limbs, weak and tottering. After a time, however, by a sort of education from the mesmeriser, the sleepwaker is enabled to move freely and firmly. The mind has evidently resumed its empire over the nerves of mo- tion, yet still is disconnected from the nerves of sense; — a circumstance which strongly illustrates Sir Charles Bell's valuable discovery respecting the 13* 150 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. absolute distinctness of these two sets of nerves ; and which confirms the thesis, that motion is ever propa- gated downward, from the brain to the exterior of the body ; while sensation is conveyed upward, from the extremities of the nerves to the brain. I think, also, that the power which sleepwakers possess over their motory system proves satisfactorily that, according to the ingenious suggestion of Sir C. Bell, there exists a distinct muscular sense ; for we see it here insulated, and acting at a time when all the other senses have ceased their functions. Nor does the muscular sense merely act under mesmeric sleepwaking, but it acts (from the time that the patient is habituated to his new existence) in a very perfect manner. I have seen displayed by sleepwakers an activity which they did not possess awake. Availing myself of the attraction which draws the patient after the mesmeriser, I have made Made- moiselle M follow me, when mounting upon chairs or wardrobes. Another of my mesmerisees, when I got upon a chair, leapt lightly up after me ; and, there being scarcely room for her to stand, re- mained poised in a very extraordinary manner, on the extreme edge of the chair, exhibiting, in that po- sition, an ease and graceful firmness, quite remote from the characteristics of her usually reserved de- meanor. Additional strength as well as agility of body seems to accompany the more advanced periods of the mes- meric state. E. A , in sleepwaking, could throw, in wrestling, a person he could not master when awake ; and once he burst a locked door open with MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. 151 an ease that was extraordinary. The same phenom- ena, which occur with respect to the motor muscles in general, take place also as regards the muscles of the larynx. On firs! inesmerisation, the voice of the patient is weak, and it is evidently an exertion for him to speak at all ; hut subsequently he resumes his powers of speech] and, if musical, can sing as well as in the waking state. I should, however, observe, that the tone to which he pitches his voice in con- versation depends much upon that in which the nies- meriser addresses him: should the former whisper, he whispers too, or the contrary. This is the gen- eral rule ; but Anna M offered an exception to this. Her voice in deepwaking was generally very feeble, and she used to complain of its extinction. Though hitherto treating of the patient separately from the mesmeri>er. it appear- to me that this branch of my subject would be incomplete, did 1 not add to such phenomena of motion as are proper to the sleep- waker others which are caused by the niesnieriser's influence over his patient. I have already remarked that the sleepwaker exhib- its an occasional community of motion with the mes- meriser, and adopts something of his general deport- ment. Some additional instances of these phenom- ena mav be interesting. Anna M , in her mesmeric state, mounted a staircase with me, in order to visit an invalid lady of our party. I observed that she ascended two stairs at a time, after a manner that had become habitual to me. At another time, when I had a cold, she, though free from such an affection in her natural 153 MESMERIC ILEEPWAKING. state, coughed, in her sleepwakirig, whenever 1 did. I extract the following from a register of our mesmeric proceedings, <>n<<^ kept by one of our family. January 2, L838. tc The mesmerister rubs his hands, and Anna M immediately does the same. When the mesmeriser blows his nose, the patient puis her hand up to hers, as if doing the same thing. When the former began to dance, the latter did so too, imitating exactly ih< 4 movements of her mesmer- iser, and snapping her fingers as he did. The mes- meriser, having tinned from the patient, who was silting at a table, took up a pencil, and, without her seeing him, made some strokes upon paper. The patient took up another pencil which lay at hand, and made similar strokes.*' With respect to the times when these phenomena were exhibited, I remarked that they occurred espe- cially when any more violent muscular motion took place on my part, such as in the act of blowing my nose, of dancing, Ac; — also, when m\ attention was particularly directed to the production of the phenomena. When such was the case, I have turned my back, and made gestures in perfect silence, (so as to prevent any suspicion of the patient being in- fluenced by sight or sound,) and they have been per- fectly imitated by her. Once, 1 agreed witha friend of mini 4 to put my hand into my coat pocket at a certain signal from him. The sleepwaker, though standing where she could know nothing of the cir- cumstance, thrust back her hand immediately into a similar position with my own. 'The same friend, who was determined to try everything to put the MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 153 sleepwaker at fault, used to imitate my rubbing my hands, coughing, or blowing my nose, in order to in- duce Anna M to do the same ; and thus to prove that she was guided by sound, not by sympathy of motion. The patient, however, was never influenced in the slightest degree by these artifices. Whether such correspondences of motion result from purely mechanical causes may be much doubted: — but there is another class of motory phenomena in which the body of the inesmeri>er must clearly be consid- ered as the depository of some attractive force, en- tirely independent of his will : for they result simply from the position in winch the patient maybe placed relatively to tlie mesmeriser. 1 Having frequently remarked that the head of a mesmerised person follows the hand of the mesmer* iser, as iron does the load-tone. I. in order to submit the phenomenon to the surest proof, bandaged the eyes of E. A previously to mesmerising him, and filled with cotton every possible interstice that might be left between the cheek and the handkerchief, in such a manner as to convince every person, who 1 This mechanical attraction appears to have been first noticed by M. De Lausanno, who observed it in a patient of his own — a female, whose sensitiveness was remarkably developed. In a work on mesmerism, published at Paris, this author, who still, 1 believe, is living, gives a particular account of some interesting experi- ments relative to the subject. When M. De Lausanne was in an- other room, or even outside the house, the sleepwaker, above al- luded to, turned her head in the exact direction of her mesmeriser. This was established by repeated trials, before witnesses. It should be remembered that the development of similar phenomena, in so striking a degree, presupposes always a rare and advanced stage of sleep waking. 154 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. witnessed the experiment, that for the patient to perceive by sight the motions of my hand was en- tirely out of the question. As soon, however, as E. A had entered into sleepwaking, his head followed my hand, at the distance of at least two feet, with unerring certainty. Did I place it on the left of his head, his head instantly inclined to that side ; was it in front, he bent forward to meet it ; was it behind him, he leant back towards it with what would seem a painful and unnatural effort. Again, I held my hand above his leg ; immediately the limb was attracted upwards. I continued to withdraw my hand ; and the leg was so much ele- vated as to form an acute angle with the body of the patient. Finally, I ran quickly away to the other end of the room; and the sleepwaker followed me quickly and unerringly. At another time, being in one of the folds of a screen, and Anna M in another, I put out my hand (but not beyond the projection of the screen), when instantly the patient's hand came round to meet mine. One evening, when I had mesmerised the same sleepwaker, and I was sitting near her, it occurred to me to inquire, " If my hand possesses so singular a property of attraction, what power of a similar kind may reside in my foot?" With this thought, I raised my foot, not in any unusual manner, but as if I were laying one leg over the other. The sole of my foot was then presented to the patient. In a very short time she began to turn round upon her chair. so as nearly to fall into the fire. Struck with this MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. 155 oddity. I made the sleepwaker rise, and again pre- sented my foot, when she commenced a series of reg- ular revolutions, from right to left, stopping always, when she had half completed the circle, with a bend and a dip, like that of the magnetic needle. The experiment repeated always produced the same re- sults. Again, when standing opposite to my patient, who was in an upright position, 1 began to turn round. She also seemed forced to revolve, hut in a direction contrary to mine. If I turned from left to right, she turned from right to loft, and vice versa* I tried the same experiments on other sieepw ;ikers. They also turned round when I did. and inversely to myself; but my foot, when presented to them, in- stead of making them revolve (a phenomenon ap- parently confined to Anna M ), seemed simply to repel them. I tried this with the sister of 'Theo- dore. Every time that I held OUt my hand she was attracted towards me : whenever I held out my foot, she was repelled ; and, by the alternate exercise of these two influences, she was kept oscillating to and fro like the pendulum of a clock. That the mesmeriser can create motion in the sleepwaker is not the only proof of the power that he possesses over the organization of the latter. He is also capable of paralyzing those motory agencies which he so much sways. But experiments of this kind should be undertaken with the greatest caution. Puysegur relates that, having tried, from curiosity, to paralyze the respiratory organs of a sleepwaker, he threw the patient into a state resembling death, 156 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. which lasted for several hours. Dr. Sigmond has also reported the case of a lady whom., without in- tending it, he threw into an alarming state of insen- sibility, — a circumstance which (if I may venture to say so) is explained by the Doctor's own statement of his mesmeric principles. His words are — " It is upon the respiration that my efforts are directed ; and the principle is precisely that which is called ' steal- ing the breath away. 5 " The account is in "The Lancet " for Dec. 1837, and I have since had no opportunity of learning any of Dr. Sigmond's subsequent experiments. I do not, however, doubt but that experience has brought him to the same conclusion as myself ; — namely, that those motions and intentions of the mesmeriser which are most directed towards equalizing the influence he wields are the best ; and that we should above all avoid concentrating the action upon any vital part. Being fully persuaded of this, I have seldom ventured upon paralyzing the nerves of motion, save in the less important parts of the body, — as in the hand or arm, for instance. What led me to try such experiments at all w T as this : — Mr. K . of Antwerp, my first instructer in mesmerism, had ex- hibited to me a curious phenomenon which occurred whenever he closed the hand of one of his sleep- walkers over a piece of coin (silver or copper). The hand remained rigidly shut, and the patient seemed utterly incapable of opening it, until after the dis- persion of the mesmeric sleep. From a train of analogous reasoning, I was much inclined to believe that the coin had no more to do with the phenome- MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 157 non in question than the magnet and the baquet with the effects which Mesmer produced upon his early patients. I accordingly closed the hand of Mademoiselle M without the coin, and again with it. As I had anticipated, the result in both cases was the same. Moreover, I discovered that, by breathing on the patient's hand, I could always, and under any circumstances, restore it to its func- tions — in fact, that myself, and not the metal, was the depository of the paralyzing power, whatever it might be. I relate this in the hope that it may warn others, as it did me, against attributing, in mesmerism, effects to wrong causes. In all that regards mes- meric sleepwaking there is especial danger of falling into such an error, from the curious blending that it exhibits of human and of ineehaiiieal action; and never can we adjust the; balance properly, until the mesmeriser's influence over his patient be fully taken into account. A curious circumstance, attending the mesmeriser's power over the patient's organization is this : — When the two are in frequent mesmeric relationship, the phenomenon is carried forward into the natural state. This I found to be the case after I had often mesmerised Anna M and E. A . I could, at any time, fix the hand or arm of either of these persons in any position I pleased, and in all the rigidness of catalepsy. The means I used to pro- duce this effect were as follows : — I first placed the limb as I wished it to remain, and then brought the fingers of both hands into contact with it, at oppo- 14 158 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. site poles, as it were, and pointing to each other, so that, supposing they emanated a stream of galvanic or other influence, it would pass exactly through the part to be affected. The desired result did not ensue immediately, but in two or three minutes; and its intensity was proportioned to the length of time I acted on the limb. The patients described a sensation of gradual paralysis, and a deadness. as when a leg or arm, in common parlance, goes to sleep. At length a spasmodic contraction of the muscles took place : the hand looked white and bloodless, and the fingers unnaturally rigid. To the touch they seemed as chords that are pulled tight; and, if the numbness continued, they lost all feeling. No force, short of what would have produced me- chanical injury, could undo them. On one occasion, I placed the arm of E. A. in a position so twisted and constrained, that it was not possible for him to oppose much voluntary force to any one's efforts to pull it down ; yet, when once paralyzed, there was not a person present who could stir it. It offered the re- sistance of marble. Moreover, this patient was not in the least imaginative, and ridiculed the idea that fancy could produce the phenomenon in question. When I wished to restore motion to a limb thus paralyzed I breathed on it, and made some magnetic passes down it, accompanied sometimes by slight friction. The re- turn of life and feeling was gradual as their loss, and w T as accompanied by those tinglings called pins and needles. A slight numbness was generally felt for some time after the experiment. Once I persuaded E. A to permit me to try whether, in his waking state. I MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 159 could prevent him from opening his eyes. The ex- periment was perfectly successful. By pressing down the upper eyelid with a finger of one hand, and plac- ing a finger of the other upon the lower lid, 1 eould so influence the levator muscle as (after withdrawing m\ hands; to keep either eye closed while the other was wide open. The patient could not, in general, shut his light eye without also shutting the left. I have now taken a review 6f the condition of the bodily organs, and of the motive powers, under mesmeric sleepwaking, being at the same time fully aware how much is left to he performed by abler hands than mine. I am no physician : and a very minute inquiry into the physical state of mesmeric patients is not my province. I. however, seriously recommend to all who study medicine as a profes- sion, especiallj to the younger aspirants in this branch of science, (since fAey, at least, are not around'd and rooted in antique prejudices,) to pay attention to mesmerism, after the plan that I have laid down ; i. c. to ascertain, during its operation, the exact and peculiar state of every organ and func- tion of the human body. By mesmerism we best dissect man. whether men- tally or physically ; and. if ever the vital influences are to be understood, it is not by anatomizing the dead, or by torturing the living, but by observation of our fellow-beings when in the state we call mes- meric. I now proceed to offer some remarks upon the mental condition of patients under mesmeric sleep- waking, considering the soul in its moral, intellectual, and sensitive capacities. 160 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. First, as regards our moral being : — That the state of mesmeric sleepwaking is a rise in man's nature, no one, who has been conversant with it, can doubt. Separated from the usual action of the senses, the mind appears to gain juster notions, to have quite a new sense of spiritual things, and to be lifted nearer to the fountain of all good and of all truth. The great indication of this elevated state of feeling is a horror of falsehood, which I have found common to all sleepwakers. Sincerity is their especial charac- teristics; they cannot feign or flatter: they seem to be taken out of common life, with all its heartless forms and plausible conventions. I proceed, by one or two instances, to show how forcibly sleepwakers are impelled to speak the thing that is, and to clear their consciences of that dissimu- lation which clings so much to man in his natural state. During the Antwerp carnival, a lady, who took a sincere interest in Anna M.'s welfare, advised her not to go to the masked ball, which is usually given at that season. The night after the ball. Anna came to be mesmerised, and, though complaining of fatigue, would not own that she had acted in opposition to the advice that she had received. When, however, in sleepwaking, she acknowledged, of her own accord, that she had been at the masked ball, and said that she felt she had done wrong in practising con- cealment, though her motive had been to avoid giv- ing pain to her kind monitress. A similar instance of candid confession occurred MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 161 in E. A. I had given him a bottle of lotion for his eyes, which were weak at the time: he took it home with him ; and a day or two afterwards, in reply to my inquiries as to the benefit received, answered in some prevaricating way. bo as to make me suppose that he had used the lotion to advantage. Subsequently, however, being in ipesm* ric sleepwaking, he said. quite voluntarily, " There is something that 1 wish to tell yon. In going home the other night 1 broke that bottle which you gave me, 1 feared von would be angT] if you knew this, and 1 dared not own it when awake : but now 1 feel that J did not act rightly." In the mesmeric state, the character of this sleep- waker presented generally a strong contrast to its waking exhibition. Good talents and a good dispo- sition had. in him, been warped by an unfortunate education : and. young as he was, he had imbibed at Pans certain infidel opinions, of the worst kind, which he scarcely studied to conceal. 1 asked him once, in his waking state, what he thought became of ns after death ; and his answer was, u DeS qu'on est mort, on n'e-t phis rien du tout." This extreme ignorance on most subjects was ac- companied by a vain belief that he knew a irood deal: and if one stated to him the commonest facts of philosophy, (the distance of the sun from the earth, for example,) he suspected a design of playing upon his credulity, and entrenched himself in abso- lute unbelief. In sleepwaking all this was changed. His ideas of the mind were correct, and singularly opposed to the material views he took of all ques- 14* 162 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. lions when in the waking state. He once chided me for calling the soul " une chose ; " and said, " Ce n'est pas une chose, — c'est une pensee." " Can the soul ever die ? " I asked. "Certainly not. It is the soul, which is the only true existence, and which gives existence to all we apprehend." " Whence came the soul ? " " From God, who, by his thoughts, created the universe." His words were, " L'ame provient de Dieu, qui a crce Funivers par sa pensee." "Is there a future punishment for evil-doers:'' " Undoubtedly, a great one." "In what will it con- sist? " "In seeing themselves as they are, and God as he is." On another occasion, I mesmerised E. A., when a lady of great talents and feeling, and an author, well known to English literature, were present. The latter was suffering under a severe domestic affliction. He had recently lost a beloved daughter ; and the tone of mind, induced by that bereavement, naturally inclined him to question the sleepwaker on subjects relative to a future state. In order that Mr. might speak with the greater freedom, I placed him " en rapport," as it is called, with E. A., and took but little part in the conversation that ensued. The conversation itself I cannot accurately detail ; but the general impression that it left upon my mind can never be effaced. The sleepwaker rose into elo- quence which seemed unearthly. It was simple — it was beautiful — it was like an inspiration. He spoke of the never-dying nature of the soul : of its ransomed beatitude ; of its progress through various eras of existence, during which he asserted (for here MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 163 I remember his very words), " Elle conserve la me- moire du passe, et des amities faites sur la terre ; et el e a 1'envie de revoir oeuxqu'ellea cheris autrefois. Tout le bien de Tame s*en va avec elle, et dure aprse la mort ; et le> justefl qui se sont plena's ici bas seront relink devant Dieu." Every one present was affected — some even to tears. It was, in- deed, beautiful to see the young, prophet — whose countenance had retaken an expression of candor and of childish innocence — speaking so calmly the words of holiness and of comfort, and the older lis- tener humbly stooping to drink of the waters of re- freshment from so lowly a source. The same aleepwaker, thoroughly unsentimental in his natural state seemed always, when mesmerised, to take a pleasure in losing himself in imaginations of another world. Beautiful are the things he has said to me respecting the soul's recognition of those it loved on earth, and of the privilege of departed friends to watch over the objects of their solicitude while toiling through the pilgrimage of life ; but were I particularly to record these speculations, as they would be called, I should probably be deemed a vis- ionary, or branded as an enthusiast. It is enough to say that, under mesmeric sleep waking, all the hard incredulity which characterized E. A. when awake, was gone. His wilfulness was become submission ; his pride, humility ; and, in precise proportion as he seemed to know more, he appeared to esteem himself less. Often would he regret the errors of his waking hours, and speak of his natural state as of an exist- ence apart. Often would he exclaim, in sleepwak- 164 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. ing, " How I wish I could always see things as I do now ! " There is not a person who saw him in the mesmeric state but remarked the change for the bet- ter that his physiognomy underwent. His affections also were enlarged. Egotistical in general, and dis- playing but little sensibility, he, in the mesmeric state, showed all the warmth of a kind-hearted nature. Shortly before leaving me I mesmerised him. Im- mediately on passing into sleepwaking his counte- nance assumed an expression of the deepest sorrow, and he seemed scarcely able to speak. When askec the cause of his sadness, he said, " I am going away : how deeply I feel it ! " Restored to his waking state, he laughed, and talked, and seemed as unconcernec as usual. That in the mesmeric state the mind's sensibility is exalted and refined, I had also a proof, when one day I was reading to Mademoiselle M (then in sleepwaking) Wordsworth's touching poem of Lucy Gray. Utterly insensible to poetry in her waking state, she at that time felt all its charms : her coun- tenance varied with emotion ; she watched the pro- gress of the little story with the deepest interest ; and when I arrived at the stanza — " The storm came on before its time ; She wandered up and down; And many a hill did Lucy climb, But never reached the town." she burst into a passion of tears, and cried out. " Oh ! cease, cease ! I can bear it no longer." Yet, that this increased sensibility was regulated by considerable self-control appeared manifestly on a MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 165 certain occasion, when some one, placed " en rap- port " with her in sleepwaking, made an unfortunate allusion to the death of a person to whom Mademoi- selle M. had been strongly attached. She w r ept much, but, seeing me uneasy, said, " Do not mind, sir, I will control myself:** which she accordingly did, and by a moral effort she resumed her tran- quillity. Another feature of the moral state in mesmerism is a tendency to replace the conventional forms of the world by a frank exhibition of general good will and cordial regard to all men. Justinus Kerner (in his u Leherin von Prevorst," published at Stutgart and Tubingen, 1832,) relates that the sleepwaker, to whom he has given the above high-sounding appella- tion, would never, in the ine>merie state, address any one in the third person plural, which is the ceremo- nial manner of speaking in Germany ; but always in the second person singular, which the Germans con- sider as expressive of intimacy and affection. I have observed something of the same kind in those sleep- wakers who have come under my notice. E. A. was once thrown into the mesmeric state in the presence of a gentleman whom, as his superior in age and station in society, he regarded with the greatest respect. Having written, as requested, some music for this gentleman, he inscribed it thus : — " A mon cher V. O." It is curious to compare this familiar dedication with those which were written in his waking state, where every title was given its due weight, and nothing was presented save " avec les hommages les plus respectueuses." 166 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. A state of mind so simple, so religious, so tender, yet so pure, is in itself a refutation of the charge of immorality, which they who lack the charity that hopes and believes the best have attempted to bring against mesmerism. If to this be added the absolute deadness of corporeal sensation which Ihave shown to accompany mesmeric sleepwaking, there will be a manifest absurdity in the supposition that it is (as some one called it) a mere " voluptuous juggle," — an affair of the senses and of sexual feeling. The attraction towards the mesmeriser, testified by the patient, which has, perhaps, contributed to give birth to this monstrous idea, is of a nature totally distinct from the promptings of passion. If compared to any love, it must be likened to self-love; for it seems to result from that identification of the vital and nervous system of the two parties of which I have already given many examples, and which admits of still further illustration. For instance, a gentle- man, whom I was mesmerising for the first time, asked me, when I had laid my hand on his forehead, whether he felt his own hand or mine placed there, declaring himself wholly unable to decide. Anna M , when I have been suffering from a sensation of cold, has not only complained of being chilly, but has said, u Will you warm yourself for me V Once when (unknown to her) I had a blister on my side, I observed that, during sleepwaking, she constantly carried her hand to her own side. I asked her why she did this, and she said, " There is something there that pains me, as if the skin were torn off." At another time, when I was thirsty, a sleepwaker com- MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 167 plained also of thirst. I offered to give her some water, but she said, " No ; you must drink for me" My thirst being quenched, the sleepwaker's uneasi- ness was removed. The patient, also, during mes- merism, adopts, to a certain extent, the mesmeriser's likings and dislikings. E. A , in his natural state, was very fond of the smell of heliotrope, which I found too sickly for my taste ; but in sleep waking, when, through me, he was made to smell it, he found the odor unpleasing. When we consider these and other proofs dis- played by sleepwakers of sensitive and motive sym- pathy with their mesmeriser ; when we reflect that they are actually heedless of injuries inflicted on themselves, but tremblingly alive to all that he is made to suffer ; we may well imagine that he stands to them in a very peculiar and vital relation : nor can it seem wonderful that, when severed from him, they should acknowledge a schism in their being, and seem out of all unity with themselves. Besides, several circumstances prove how remote from sexual feeling is the one in question. In the first place, it is exhibited equally by every mesmerised person, with- out respeet of age, sex or character. The cold and the stubborn are subjugated by it as effectually as the warm and the yielding : the pride of talent exempts not from this despotism, neither does the simple innocence of childhood. Never have I seen its force more strongly exemplified than in the case of a sister of Anna M , a child of nine or ten years of age. Having once left her on a sofa in the mesmeric state, while I went to take some tea at a 168 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. table which stood near, I heard, after I had been away about five minutes, low stifled sobs proceeding from my little patient. I hastened to her and found her crying. Being asked by me the cause of this distress, she replied, " Because you staid so long away. It makes me suffer so much." Again, the attraction manifested by patients to- wards their mesmeriser is not in the least modified by circumstances, or by the relation of the parties to each other ; and it is openly exhibited by those whom I have shown to be in a state of high moral feeling. Nothing can be more evident than that it is an instinct, not a passion : the springs of life are touched, and the powerful impulse of self-preservation is set in play. So, also, the repulsion from all others than the mesmeriser is but a measure of the attractive force which draws the patient there, where he exists even more than in himself. Illustrative of this phy- sical necessity, I may bring forward a circumstance which was related to me by an eye-witness, whose word I have never had reason to doubt. A young man, mesmerised for the first time, became unwell under the extraordinary stimulus of mesmerism, which sometimes, if unskilfully applied, does affect persons unpleasantly. His mesmeriser, was, in fact, inexperienced in his art ; and, becoming alarmed at the result of his operations, attempted to quit the room. The consequences of this injudicious conduct were fearful. The patient became furious, and actually tore his own clothes and the hangings of the apartment. Had his mesmeriser succeeded in leaving him, he might have suffered seriously ; but MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 169 by good fortune, a more experienced mesmeriser, who was present, forced back the inexpert practitioner, and instructed him how to allay the tempest of mental and bodily agitation which he had so unwit- tingly provoked. This may serve as a general type of the Kind of feeling exhibited by patients towards their mesmerisers ; and with this the language of sleepwakers themselves is in exact accordance. A gentleman, who saw K. A mesmerised by me, said to him, " Vous aimer bien d'etre avec Monsieur." To which the sleepwaker replied, " Oui, mais pas tou- jours comme a. present. IXaiitreibis, je peux le quit- ter, et je ne sens rien ; maintenanl je ne pouvais pas le quitter, quand m'me je le voudrais." In the same manner. Anna M , who vraa exceedingly fond of my wife, could not quit me to go to her. when in the mesmeric state Being good-humoredly rallied upon this. >\u> said. " Vou know, dear lady, how much I love you, and that the feeling I have tor my mesmer- iser is sincere respect. That which keeps me near him now is quite different from any affection : it is not that I would not wish to come to you, but ab- solutely I cannot, unless my mesmeriser comes too." When seated between us both she declared herself quite happy. Nevertheless, it was necessary even for my wife to approach her, when mesmerised, with caution. Touching her once suddenly, without having been placed properly " en rapport " with her, she produced in the patient a violent fit of shiv- ering. But it may still be objected, that the mesmeriser, if so disposed, may make a wrong use of the influ- 15 170 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. ence which he possesses over the patient. Possibly : for, as I have once before remarked, all power is ca- pable of abuse. A bad physician may employ his knowledge of drugs to the worst purposes ; but are we therefore to have no physicians ? And is mes- merism, because dangerous in evil hands, not to be consigned to any hands at all ? There are some who wrest the Scriptures to their own destruction and that of others ; but shall the Scriptures not be preached ? A pursuit, too, like mesmerism, which, so far from conducting to gain or glory, subjects its votaries to a species of martyrdom, holds out but few temptations to the base minded. Besides, the fault rests with mesmeric patients themselves, if they give up their powers of self-control to evil, or even doubtful, guid- ance, or, indeed, to any foreign guidance whatever, unless before proper witnesses. Exercised judiciously, there is not a doubt that mesmerism might be made an important instrument of moral good to man, since it not only tends natur- ally to elevate the mind above sensual desires and material objects for the time being, but even after its immediate influence has passed away. A mes- meriser can always so strengthen the virtuous ten- dencies developed by his patient in sleepwaking, as to prolong them, as it were, into the waking state. Often has E. A entreated me, when I have given him good advice in the mesmeric sleep, to impress it in such a manner upon his mind as that it might in- fluence him, even though imperceptibly, when awake. Moreover, it is a curious fact that, if the mesmeriser tells his patient to abstain from any thing at a certain MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. 171 time — even from that of which he may be most fond — the latter acts upon the injunction, in his natural state, without being aware of the springs that impel his conduct. To what beneficial uses this peculiar influence might be rendered subservient I need not suggest ; nor how effectually it might wean persons from bad habits, by rendering them positively averse to the sins that most easily beset them. That a proportionable increase of the intellectual powers should accompany so marked a development of the moral will not seem surprising, if we reflect that every faculty of our being plays, as it were, into the hands of the other; and that a rise in moral feeling almost presupposes a rise in intellectual dig- nity. If it be granted that "want of decency is want of sense/' it may also be conceded that a want of moral perceptions generally is the produce and ac- companiment of a degraded intellect. The increased sincerity which persons manifest in the mesmeric state would alone pronounce it the parent of a quickened reason. They perceive all the irrationality of false- hood. Other proofs, however, of the sleepwaker's advance in intellect are by no means wanting. He can discuss subjects which, in the waking state, are far beyond the scope of his capacity, and solve questions which, at other times, are to him as an un- known tongue. I observed this especially in the case of E. A . His habitual confusion of thought was changed, during sleepwaking, into justness of apprehension ; to indulge in abstract speculations seemed almost a feature of his condition ; and he displayed, in this development of his nature, a pecu- 172 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. liar acuteness of remark which looked like intuitive sagacity. He apprehended with ease, and learnt with quickness. A hint was sufficient to put him in possession of a subject. But it is especially by the improved condition of the memory, in the mesmeric state, that the general strengthening of the intellectual powers may be esti- mated. For is not, in truth, memory the life and breath of the mind, without whose quickening inspi- ration all the elements of thinking were but as so much dry dust ? Is it not our identity which links every event wherein we have been concerned, every fragment of knowledge and of moral feeling which has come to us either from the external world or the universe of our own minds, into one harmonious and intelligible whole ? It is true that memory, without the reasoning faculties, were but a vain gift ; but it is equally true that, without memory, all the faculties in which we glory were entirely worthless. Their simplest exercise presupposes its abiding presence. It is the measure of our attention, as attention itself is the measure of the mind's strength or weakness. That this important power is largely developed under mesmeric sleepwaking is a fact to which par- ticular attention should be given ; since it explains. in a natural way, certain phenomena which too many of the friends of mesmerism wonder over as miracu- lous, and which, consequently, too many of its ad- versaries reject as false. How much injury this pre- sentation of startling circumstances, unaccompanied by any rational solution, has caused to mesmerism may be estimated by a comparison of the reception MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 173 given to a fact, when rationally set forth by a philos- opher, with that which it receives when wildly stated by an enthusiast. Many of the stories told by the judicious, and frankly accepted by the world in gen- eral, are every whit aa wonderful as the tales of mes- meric dair-voyance which so shock the incredulous; — but then they are otherwise presented^ and charm us by being seen through the cleat glass of nature, instead of coming to us colored bj the Claude Lor- raine medium of the imagination. A proof of this assertion may be found in the high estimation which Dr. Abercrombie's work on the Intellectual Powers so justly enjoys. The work itself is lull of interest- ing and remarkable anecdotes, many of them espe- cially relating to auto-sleepwajking — yet who dreams of doubting these! And \\h\ ? They are naturally and philosophically treated. For in>tance : — the author relates that a girl, who was constitutionally a sleepwalker, ignorant, and of the lowest rank, " has been known to conjugate correctly Latin verbs, which she had probably /ward in the school room of the family ; and she was once heard to speak several sentences very correctly in French ; at the same time stating that she heard them from a foreign gentleman, whom she had met accidentally in a shop." Now, conceive the story to have been told without the sentences which I have marked by italics, and the mere work- ings of memory are forthwith magnified into a mirac- ulous gift of tongues, which we regard with quite other feelings than the present cautious and instruc- tive statement. We cannot, then, be too guarded in our views of the faculties displayed by sleepwakers. 15* 174 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. The least hint of a thing, previously heard and for- gotten while awake, will serve them, in the mesmeric state, as a clue to knowledge that shall seem super- natural ; but a little investigation will often clear up the apparent miracle ; and the principle, once ascer- tained, may be extended even to cases which baffle our most accurate research. The memory of Anna M was much developed during mesmeric sleepwaking. All the reminiscences of her childish years seemed to recur to her mind ; and thence she was enabled to show an acquaintance with the past histories of the inhabitants of her native town, which, in primitive times, would have been by no means to her advantage. Under James the First she would infallibly have been burnt for a witch. Often, in her mesmeric state, she recalled to the minds of persons, who had perhaps forgotten that they had ever seen her, particular circumstances, with which they imagined none but themselves could be acquainted. On one occasion especially, I remember a person entering the room while she was in mesmeric sleepwaking and had her eyes perfectly closed. His name was not mentioned ; but, having been placed " en rapport " with him, she recognised him, by the voice alone, as an individual whom she had known in her very early childhood, but had not met with since. She named him, and brought back to his recollection many minute particulars relating to his family and to himself. On awaking, she was much surprised to see another person added to our party, and could by no effort of memory (even after he had spoken") make him appear other than a perfect stranger to her. It MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 175 was not until he had declared himself, and, on his part, recalled to her sundry circumstances, that she could remember ever to have seen him. Yet, even then, the greater part of the particulars, with which in mesmerism she seemed so fully acquainted, could by no means be restored to her remembrance. Another time, the same sleepwaker. being asked to write some Flemish poetry from memory, noted down with a pencil two lines, which, on awaking, (though we told her the first words of the distich), she could not repeat. Being shown the lines, she at length recognised, by their general sense, something which she had heard as a child. In mesmeric sleep- waking, Anna M displayed a greater aptitude to learn than in her waking state. I had only recited to her a little poem of Goldsmith's, beginning, " Oh, memory ! thou loud deceiver/' twice over, when she was already able to repeat it correctly. E. A manifested a similar increase of mental retentiveness, more remarkable perhaps, inasmuch as his memory (more from neglect, I imagine, than from natural incapacity) was singularly defective. We have tried him in mesmeric sleepwaking with the hardest phrases and technical expressions which the English tongue (of which he knew very little) could furnish ; and, on one occasion, a gentleman, who had traveled in the East, supplied him with a long and strange Turkish word, which he caught directly with the greatest ease. This sleepwaker played beautifully on the flute, and was accustomed often to improvise upon that in- strument with all the musical genius that he possess- 176 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. ed ; but the charming strain, once uttered, was lost for ever. He could not repeat one of his extempore compositions. One day, I had been forced to reprove him for some fault, when, taking his flute, he poured forth some melancholy notes which seemed to express regret and penitence. I begged him to repeat the touching air, but it had wholly passed from his re- membrance. Subsequently, when he was in mes- meric sleepwaking, it occurred to me to ask him if he could then write down the composition that so much pleased me. Instantly he seized music-paper and a pen, and wrote down the air which I here sub- join, and which, as far as my own memory can deter- mine, is precisely the same as that which I had heard two days before. POUR LA FLUTE. t^^B m ppp echo ~-*0 a fes^w o=P=pg= MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 177 *=mm Bi . '.gT i ftfr rttenuto Another proof of increased memory given by this sleepwaker was his comprehending and speaking English (which otherwise he was remarkably slow to learn) far better in the mesmeric than in the natural state. A circumstance to be remarked, as showing a con- nection between the mesmeric and the common sleep, is this — sleepwakers will remember those nocturnal dreams which they can by no means recall when waking. I once asked Anna M if she could recollect any thing in sleepwaking which, out of it, she had forgotten. She replied. "-Certainly, many things; and just now I clearly remember something which I wished to recollect when I was awake, but could not. It is a dream which I had on Sunday night. (She said this on Wednesday, 14th Februa- ry, 1838.) I screamed out in my sleep, and alarmed my mother ; but I could not call to mind what I had been dreaming about : now, however, I know what 178 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. it was. I thought that a very frightful old woman entered the room : she was dressed in scarlet, and had a white fillet bound across her forehead. She came slowly in, and, coming up to me in bed, laid her hand upon my chest. I tried to scream, but could not : at last, however, I screamed, and woke my mother." Afterwards, when the sleepwaker had returned to her natural state, she was questioned about the dream ; but it had again past from her memory. Wishing to establish the circumstance by as much evidence as possible, I took an opportunity of speaking to her mother on the subject, when the latter corroborated all that Anna had affirmed, and added, that her daughter was in the habit of relating her dreams to her family at breakfast ; but of this particular one she had been able to give no account. E. A. could also, in sleepwaking, recall the visions of the night, which had gone from him as the dream from the Babylonian monarch. Moreover, he had been, as a child, a natural sleepwaker, and he assur- ed me, when in the mesmeric state, that all the minutest circumstances of his early sleepwaking recurred to him. When asked if the mind ever ceased to think in slumber, he replied, " Never for an instant ; the soul is wise, and learns much during sleep. It reflects on all it has seen and heard, and profits more by this than in the daytime. We can- not, indeed, be aware of this, because we are in a different state when waking, and forget what we think of by night. Yet, he continued, have you not remarked that, if you read a thing over-night, you remember it better on awaking the next morning ? MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 179 This is the fruit of the soul's labor (c'est le fruit du travail de Tame), though we do not know whence it comes." Asked again about dreams, he replied, " In general they are a kind of recreation of the soul, an exercise of ita inventive faculty ; but we are only acquainted with the results. As a carpenter takes a tree, and saws it into boards, and then from those boards constructs something which he had previously determined, so the soul arranges the meehanisni of the brain to form a dream : — and the dream itself, which we imagine to last a longtime, passes, in fact, with inconceivable rapidity. It only occupies the moment immediately previous to our waking. Other dreams, Bgain, are, as it were, forced upon the soul by something disordered in the brain : but they all agree in this — they immediately precede our waking." I relate the above, as curiously consonant with a circumstance in the life of Lavalette. He had in prison a horrible dream, in which he saw an infernal procession pass by his cell. Whole armies seemed to defile before him ; but the riders were all skeletons, and the horses, stripped of their skins, presented a mass of raw and bleeding flesh. A clanking of chains accompanied the terrific vision, which seemed to be of infinite duration. He was awakened by the gaoler entering his dungeon, when he found that the dream, which had been an " eternity to thought," was, in reality, the impression of a moment, caused by the dropping of the chains in unfastening his door. The last phenomenon of memory, which may here 180 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. be mentioned as regarding the sleepwaker alone, is that, when the mesmeric sleep is perfect, the subse- quent oblivion is perfect too. Of the truth of this fact, it has been generally asserted that there is no other assurance than the allegations of the sleep- wakers themselves. I cannot concede this point. Place a mesmeric patient under circumstances differ- ent to those in which he went to sleep, but without hinting that you expect any display of surprise on his part, and he must be shrewd indeed, as well as a consummate actor, if he can counterfeit to the life such an astonishment on waking as he must exhibit naturally, supposing him really to have forgotten the events of his sleepwaking. Mademoiselle M , under circumstances the more remarkable, because not at all arranged for the specific purpose, was once evidently almost alarmed into illness by finding her- self in a different apartment (whither, it may be remembered, she had been brought to see an invalid lady) from that in which she had been mesmerised. She started, shuddered, looked wildly around her, exclaiming, " Good God ! what is this ? How did I come here? This is too much;" and was thrown into a fit of trembling which we had much difficulty to allay. Again, supposing a sleepwaker to be under the same roof with yourself, his mesmeriser, and exposed to your constant observation, the chances are that, if he feigns, he will sometimes be caught tripping. A deceiver cannot be always on his guard : and what a power of memory does it presuppose in the fictitious sleepwaker to imagine that he can arrange and MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 181 separate in his own mind those circumstances of which he may or may not speak ! Passing a great portion of his time in sleepwaking, will it not be difficult, nay impossible, for him never to advert to that which has engaged his attention so much and has formed, indeed, half his life ? I conceive, then, that when I assert that, during four months, E. A. was staying in my house, and constantly mesmerised by myself, with the eyes of a whole family placed in guard upon him, yet that never, in a single instance, he was known to mingle his mesmeric with his ordinary existence by word or action, I do, in fact, show that the assertions of sleepwakers, are not the sole evidence that they actually forget the occurren- ces of their mesmeric state. We have tried in every possible way to put this to the test ; we have plotted against the sleepwaker. as if. indeed, we had wished to convict him of imposition on this point ; we have laid traps for him in conversation ; but the most searching ordeal only served to convince us of his sincerity. Be it observed, moreover, that, in his mesmeric state, I conversed with him frequently on subjects which he was incapable of discussing in his waking hours, and that, after the sleepwaking was past, I found him, with respect to the same subjects, as unenlightened as ever. Now I know from his character that, had he retained any little piece of information acquired in his mesmeric state, he could not have resisted the temptation of displaying it, at some time or other, for our edification and astonish- ment. What adds to the probability of this is that, his memory being in some respects defective, he 16 182 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. would often retail to persons the very story, or the very bit of knowledge, which he had learned from themselves, with a perfect unconsciousness that he was only giving back a man his own. Besides, he talked much and reflected little ; so that, had he wished to feign oblivion of his mesmeric state, every chance was against the success of his attempt. Surely all these proofs presumptive (on which I have dwelt the more, because arguments of this nature seem hitherto to have been withheld) amount nearly to proof positive that sleepwaking has its own memo- ry and its own consciousness, which do not overpass the boundaries of its duration. The fact that, under peculiar conditions, we may enjoy the exercise of all our faculties, yet retain no recollection of having done so, may be applied, as I imagine, to the solution of many curious questions in metaphysics — such as that one of Locke's," Whether the soul thinks always?" which that great philosopher has decided in the negative, on the ground that after- consciousness is the sole testimony we can have of the mind's activity; and that, since we are by no means conscious that we think always, we ought not to assume that we do think always. But in some cases, and most especially in that of mesmeric sleep- waking, we are forced to admit, for the activity of our minds, an evidence which Locke has omitted to notice ; namely, the testimony of our fellow-beings (a testimony, indeed, on which we build half our knowledge), assuring us that the state which, once ended, appears a blank to us, was marked by energy and activity of the highest order. Hence, setting i MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 183 aside our own want of memory of our past intelli- gence, as an inadequate proof that such intelligence never existed, we manifestly arrive at a presumption that what we have forgotten in one case we may have forgotten in many more : and that the mind is probably always active, though we cannot always assure ourselves of its activity. Such a probability will be peculiarly grateful to those who deem that ideas are constitutive of the mind, and that Locke was fundamentally wrong when he called "thinking the action and not the essence of the soul ;" being so far misled, by a false analogy between things material and things spiritual, as to conceive " that the per- ception of ideas is to the soul what motion is to the body." They who would not " 1.. Though full of pain, this intellectual being, TheM tli >nghta tint vrandex through eternity," yet who believe that to cease to think is to cease to be, must rejoice in all that tends to prove the con- tinuity of thought, its unceasing and inexpressible activity. It is also remarkable that the state; of mes- meric Bleepwaking, though one of oblivion, leaves always, as I have observed, a sort of agreeable savor on the mind, which renders persons of every age, sex, and temperament, desirous to enter it again. It has appeared to me as if the soul rejoiced in it, as in an element to which it was " native and endued," and eagerly pursued it, as a foretaste of its develop- ment through eternity. We might also enter upon some curious speculations, suggested by this severing 184 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. of existences ; this forgetfulness in one state of that which we have done in another. It is an answer to our inquiry, whether Lazarus, when restored to the body, brought back with him the secrets of another world ; it leads us to conjecture that they, who have seemed dead, yet have been recalled to this morbid existence, may have visited the world of shadows, although they know it not. 1 It makes the river Lethe seem no fable, and half realizes to us the inspired words of the poet : — u Our birth is but a sleep and a forgetting; The soul, that rises with us, our life's star, Hath had elsewhere its setting, And cometh from afar." In a practically religious point of view, also, the phenomena regarding memory, under mesmeric sleep- waking, are full of instruction. The prodigious in- crease in this state of the recollective powers seems to indicate that, in our normal existence, they are but partially developed ; and that hence the moral- ist's suggestion, that all our lives, with all their good and evil, will, in some future era of being, be spread before us as an open scroll, is not to be slighted as a fiction, but to be duly regarded as a probability, of which we have the presumptive evidence in our own hands. I proceed to speak of phenomena of memo- ry in the sleepwaker, resulting from the mesmeriser's influence. 1st. Strange and inexplicable as the fact may seem, it is undoubtedly true that the mesmeriser has the 1 I have a relation who lay for twenty-four hours in a state of seeming death, and who was wept for as dead. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 185 power of impressing some things upon the memory of his patient, in such a manner as that the latter shall retain them, and them alone, on awaking. Thus, at my desire, E. A. used to remember English words which 1 had taught him during his sleepwaking. Persons who were present when he was mesmerised would amuse themselves by proposing to him, through me. words the most difficult for a foreigner to pro- nounce : such, for instance, as "boatswain's whis- tle/' which a gentleman one day gave him as a puzzle, yet which lie repeated correctly, and retained after his sleepwakklg. Anna M. when mesmerised, if asked to remember anything, used to tap her fore- head on either side, jusl where she bad two singular prominences, and say, " I will do my best to fi.\ it in my brain/ 5 After this she always recollected what she had been desired to retain. I did not find, how- ever, this faculty extend to circumstances connected with the unusual mode of sensation apparently opened to sleepwakers, Even if so requested, neither E.'A. nor Anna M. could give nny account, on awaking, of their perceptions during mesmerism, nor how objects were presented to their minds. The subjects adapted to their after-memory seemed to be chiefly of a verbal nature, such as a few line- of poetry, or the particu- lar day fixed lor a subsequent mesmerisation. This possibility of making sleepwakers remember what they have learned in the mesmeric state (and learned, too. with superior ease and quickness) might, I imagine, be turned to important uses. I have read, though where I have forgotten, of a lady who ac- quired a new language through mesmeric recollec- 1G* 186 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. tion ; and my experience inclines me to believe tha. such might be the case. 2dly. The mesmeriser, by the expression of his desire, can make the patient remember certain things at a particular time, subsequent to sleepwaking, and not till the very moment fixed beforehand for the recurrence of the suspended recollection. Thus E. A., in mesmerism, was told to remember, at nine the following morning, and not till then, that he should come to fetch one of our party to hear a beautiful mass that was to be performed in a church at Antwerp. The person with whom he lodged, and in whose room he slept, informed me subsequently that, when the clock struck nine, E. A. was in bed, when suddenly he started up, saying, " It is very odd ; but I seem to remember that I am to take Mrs. to church." He then dressed quickly, and came to fulfil his engagement. I asked him in what manner the idea had recurred to his mind, if it was like the recollection of something heard in a dream? He replied, that it did not resemble this in the least, but was a very curious and indescribable sensation, as if a thought flitted past him from he knew not where, and fled again so rapidly that to trace its origin was impossible. In sleepwaking he could not give me a much better account of the phe- nomenon. It was, he said, a something pre-arranged in the mechanism of the brain, and which, like the spring of a watch, was set in motion at a given mo- ment. There was nothing very satisfactory in this explanation. As to the phenomenon itself. I and the members of my family have witnessed it again MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 187 and again. We have tried it in minute circum- stances, difficult of remembrance, such as (on the day succeeding the sleepwaking) to sit in a particular chair, or begin with a particular dish at dinner ; to cut a potato, when first taken on the plate, into four pieces, &c. ; and the result was always satisfactory. I have also tried if the circumstances, desired to be remembered, could be recalled to the sleepwaker before the proper hour; but there was evidently no means of doing so. The very first time I told Anna M. to remember any thing at a fixed hour, I desired her to call to mind, at three the following day, that she must ask one of our party to take a walk. After her awaking, some one inadvertently said. u Do you remember any thing about coming to-morrow to walk with us! " She said, alter reflection, "No, indeed, I remember nothing about that ; and besides I have an engagement lor to-morrow. " Soon after three. however, the next day. Anna appeared out of breath, and with a face of wonder, exclaiming, " Do tell me; was I to come here or not : n She then related that she had been out to dinner, and that, in the midst of that meal, something seemed to tell her that she had promised to come to us; and that, such was the force of the impression, she cduld not help leaving her party and hastening to ascertain the truth from ourselves. Having now described in what manner the memory is affected in the mesmeric sleep, both as regards its spontaneous exercise and its direction through the mesmeriser, I proceed to state other remarkable peculiarities in the metaphysical condition of mes- 188 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. meric patients, without adverting to which my view of mesmeric sleepwaking, as a condition of man, would be incomplete. The peculiarities alluded to regard the action of the whole mind of the sleepwaker, and not of any particular faculty. They may all be ranged under two heads : — 1st, With respect to the patient himself. These are peculiarities of consciousness. 2ndly, Of will, resulting from the patient's relation to the mesmeriser. The peculiarities of mesmeric consciousness will be treated of in the succeeding book, as being explan- atory of many circumstances connected with our subject. The peculiarities of mesmeric will may be expressed briefly thus : — That lower degree of will which we call volition, and which chiefly regulates the motive func- tions, is active, but will (in its freedom and absolute sense) is passive, in the sleepwaker, through the influ- ence of the mesmeriser. The motory adroitness of persons in the mesmeric state proves the first part of my assertion. The second branch of it susceptible of equal demonstration, as the following reflections must render evident. Common sleep, it will be granted, is the indication of an abjured will — voluntarily abjured, it is true, in some cases ; but, in others, suffering a forced abdica- tion, as when the sentinel, who knows that, if found slumbering on his post, his very life must pay the penalty, is vanquished by the slumber he would shun. In sleep itself, also, we are no longer our own masters, but at the mercy of our dreams. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 189 11 Reason then retires Into her private cell, when Nature rests. Oft, in her absence, mimic Fancy wakes To imitate her ; but misjoining shapes, Wild work produces oft." In this state we seem to commit crimes which, waking, we regard with abhorrence ; and often the impotence of our will is shown by an utter inability to throw off the yoke that oppresses us. We would wake — but cannot : we strive to cry — but we find no voice : we endeavor to move our limbs — but they remain idle. If common sleep, then be so manifestly the index of a suspended will, the mesmeric slumber is not less clearly an indication of a will that is over-ruled and held in abeyance by a force that is external to itself. The proof is simple. The mesmeric slecpwaker can- not awake without the mesmeriser's aid. The sub- jugation of his will is, therefore, even more complete than under the condition of common sleep : for, after certain efforts we often succeed in throwing off the latter when it becomes disagreeable to us, or the casual touch of any one who witnesses our perturbed slumber may recall us to ourselves ; but the mesmeric patient can neither throw off his bonds, nor be de- livered from them by any other than the mesmeriser. I have seen such efforts vainly made to arouse a sleepwaker otherwise than by the mesmeriser, that I have been led to conceive that he might be torn limb from limb (as certain animals may be in certain states of torpor) without awaking. As with the mes- meriser his sleep began, so, it appears, by the mes- 190 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. meriser alone it can end ; and thus the peculiar slum- ber, called mesmeric, is not only the proof of a sus- pended will, but of a will subdued, and actually held subject, by another. But it is not only the duration of the mesmeric sleep which proves this predominance of a foreign will : the conduct of the sleepwaker, while it lasts, is an additional warranty that the rudder of his being having changed masters, the whole vessel is also under another's direction. At the command of the mesmeriser he walks when he would naturally repose, and brings his faculties to bear upon any point, at a moment when otherwise he seems powerless to exer- cise them. Summing up the evidence, we find the argument run thus : — Natural sleep is the indication of a suspended will. A sleep that begins and ends by another must be allowed to show a will that is held in abeyance by external agency. A sleep, during which a person is made to act by another demonstrates a will that is swayed by that other in precise proportion as the obedience is prompt and absolute. The state of things resulting from this sway on the one side and submission on the other is most remark- able. We have the phenomenon before us of an ex- istence at once dual and single ; for, when the sleep- waker's capacities are acting under the immediate direction of the mesmeriser, the latter may be consi- dered as making up together with him the complement of one full being, whereof the mesmeriser supplies the MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 191 willing and the conscious portion, and the patient the intellectual part. The one impels, the other obeys im- pulsion : the one designs, the other executes : the one sets in motion a machine, (and what a machine ! the mind of man with all its complicated marvels !) the other is the machine itself, instinct with life, as was the fiery car of Kehama, innately active, yet guided by the volition of another ! This is no poetic fiction. The facts are before us. The volition of a sleepwaker is swayed in an arbitrary fashion, fully to conceive which, we have only to con- sider the difference between the mesmeric subjugation of the will, and any other that occurs in our ordinary state of existence. I may tell my servant to do such or such a thing. When he obeys, it may be said, in a certain sense, that his will is subject to mine; yet, all the time he does actually retain the functions of his own will in perfection. In truth, lie wills as much as I do, and on the same principles : good to be sought, uneasiness to be shunned, is the efficient cause of volition in either case. I command ; his mind, with rapidity, strikes a balance with itself, and finds it bet- ter to obey. If, however, the balance should incline to the other side, my servant has it in his power to disobey, and to manifest that his will is in free and unimpaired operation. Moreover, he may obey me from fear, and not by any means from desire, or iden- tity of his will with mine. I sway the outward and not the inward man. But, in mesmerism, it is not only the manifestation, but the very function of the will which is dominated. It cannot, if it would, rise to freedom : it is under a more than moral restraint. 192 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. Its motive force, desire, is evidently changed, since, as I have shown, the sleepwaker adopts, pro tempore,^ the likings and dislikings of the mesmeriser. Hence, when the patient is engaged in an act of obedience, there is an identification between the mesmeriser's will and his own ; a phenomenon which can never obtain in the case of simple obedience. The inner springs are touched, and not the mere mechanism swayed. Such a view of the state of mesmeric sleepwaking may seem unpleasing, and incompatible with its be- ing a rise in man's condition ; but, let it be remem- bered, we do not rob the soul of any one faculty, we only change its mode of action, and that mode of action has its own undeviating law. In order to sleep, we must abdicate our will ; yet, in order to enjoy in- tellectual activity, it is plain that we must substitute a presiding will ; for it is the absence of this which makes slumber a state of disorganized and inconse- quent thoughts. Thus the terms are absolute. If we desire to be freed from the thrall of the senses, yet to retain the mental faculties, we must abjure our own will, yet find an intellectual substitute. Again, we may have observed that the superior activity of any one power of the mind greatly depends on the non-action of certain others. With some in- dividuals fancy revels at the expense of reason ; with others, the cultivation of the exact sciences deadens the imagination ; and this inequality of power results naturally from the imperfection of our nature. AVere we strong throughout, we should be as gods. But, in mesmeric sleepwaking, the question is not whether MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. 193 we shall cancel one of our faculties in order to increase another ; but whether we shall, in a degree, change their directive force, in order to obtain a general and immense expansion of them all. Large advantages demand large sacrifices ; and the price to be paid for the increase of mental powers and of sensitive capa- bilities, which attends upon the state of mesmeric sleepwaking, is a certain forfeiture of the will. Does this seem a hard condition ? How many who have suffered from self-direction would be glad to place the government of their being in other hands ! How many a one, who " has felt the weight of too much liberty/' would gladly cease to be 11 Lord of himself — that heritage of woe — That doubtful empire, which the bam an breast But holds to rob the heart within of rest." This, at least, is my view of the limitations of the will in mesmeric sleepwaking ; it may be accepted or rejected, but the facts, on which it is founded, re- main the same. The power which the mesmeriser has over his pa- tient is, indeed, as great as it is undeniable, and in- volves, in my apprehension, an immense responsibility on the part of the former. Should he direct the patient's attention to frivolous or evil things, he might do harm, for which he would be justly answerable. But, fortunately, as I have before remarked, there is, in mesmeric sleepwaking, a natural elevation of the mind above what is base and sensual : and the pow- ers that appertain to reason, though the subjects on which they shall exercise themselves may be much 17 194 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. at the mesmeriser's disposal, are neither to be clouded nor controlled. Nor is this to be wondered at. The mesmeriser can hardly be expected to command in another that which he can by no means dispose of in himself. In him, in every one of us, Reason, though too often we would quench her voice, will speak as loudly as conscience, which, indeed, is but a more rapid reason ; and he who takes the evil path be- holds, and reluctantly approves, the better way. This shows a godlike capability in reason, apart from volition : it seems less to belong to ourselves than to be heaven speaking in us ; and, in proportion as we obey its dictates, we are exalted in the scale of crea- tion. Its peculiar luminousness, then, under the mesmeric conditions, is at once a safeguard to the sleepwaker, and a clear record of the most valuable birthright of man. Many persons, as I am aware, have disliked the idea of being mesmerised, from the fear of making wrong revelations, when deprived of their usual consciousness. But this is a vain appre- hension. It is true that mesmeric patients act from impulse, but then their impulses are good. They will say severe but wholesome truths to persons' faces ; but their instinctive sense of right forbids them to speak ill of any one behind his back. Anna M j with all her knowledge of circumstances relating to others, never seasoned her talk with scandalous dis- closures, never uttered a word that could injure a human being ; and once, being pressed to relate something which might have compromised another person, not only kept silence on that head, but re- proved the curiosity of the querist. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 195 Before proceeding to consider the mind under mesmerism, in its relation to external things, it seems necessary to notice a class of its intelligences which may be called instinctive, and which, as seem- ing to occupy the middle ground between mind and matter, may properly claim our consideration in this part of our inquiry. Instinct being the very reverse of artificial acquirement, a high degree of the one is, under ordinary circumstances, incompatible with the existence of the other. In proportion as we are edu- cated we recede from our intuitive perceptions. But, as in many instances, BO in this, mesmeric sleep- waking reconciles two seeming opposites, which co- exist not in any other known state of being. Re- taining the advantages acquired by art. the mesmeric patient i- restored to those which, in a more primi- tive condition, we might inherit from nature. The instinctive knowledge of sleep wakere appears to be chiefly 1. ( )f remedies. 2. Of all that relates to the mesmeric state. 3. Of the elapse of time. First, The instinct of remedies, evinced by sleep- wakers, has been frequently remarked and illus- trated. As I have never studied mesmerism in a medical point of view, I have naturally had but few opportunities of verifying allegations to this effect. The following instances, however, of the mesmeric powers of prescribing, fell under my notice, and will, perhaps, be the less suspected by the incredulous, as having presented themselves unsought to one who is not of the medical profession. 196 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. The first time that I succeeded in mesmerising E. A- , a gentleman present told me to ask him, while in sleepwaking, what remedy a lady of their mutual acquaintance should apply for the cure of a chronic sore throat with which she had been for some time afflicted. The question being put to the sleepwaker, he immediately replied, " Mademoiselle De should, on going to bed every night, enve- lope her throat in a linseed poultice, which should be kept moist the whole night through." He then added some very particular directions about the making and applying of the poultice, &c. When the reader reflects that this piece of medical advice came from a lively boy of fifteen, who was never ill in his life, and who hated every thing appertaining to disorders and their remedies, he will, I think, experience somewhat of the surprise with which I listened to the young sleepwaker. Conceiving that he might not be original in the remedy which he had proposed, I asked the gentleman, who had told me to consult him, whether Mademoiselle De had been recommended any thing of the kind. He assured me that such had not been the case, but that she had tried many other things with no effect. When E. A. awoke and we told him of his medical exploits, he was the first to laugh at his own oddity : however, it was an oddity at which Mademoiselle De had reason to rejoice ; for the remedy pre- scribed for her in sleepwaking removed the painful ailment from which she had so long suffered. The above circumstance gave me more confidence in the remedial instincts of sleepwakers, and induced MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 197 me, on one occasion, to ask a young lady whom I had mesmerised what measures she should recom- mend me to take for subduing a pain in my side, to which I had long been subject, in consequence of a blow received there in a fall from horseback. The jdeepwaker, without hesitation, told me that 1 ought to wear a perpetual blister on the part for some time, and gave the minutest directions about the size, ap- plication, &c. of the irritant. Yet I did not have recourse to it until I had consulted a medical man, who assured me that I could do no better than follow {£jgg 's advice, and that, had the lady in question taken out a diploma, she could not have counseled me more wisely. Yet the fair doctn BS was a shy and delicate girl of Sixteen, who. when awake, was shock- ed at herself for having touched on medical matters in her sleepwaking. The application which she recommended me was of great senrice 3 and subdued the chronic pain from which I had suffered inces- santly for many months. Under the head of Case X., mentioned in the preceding book, I have related that I mesmerised a gentleman who was not in good health ; and I pro- mised to detail some additional particulars respecting him. I now redeem that pledge. Mr. W. had long been in what is called an ailing state. Without be- ing precisely ill, he felt generally incommoded. He had no idea whatever of the cause of his indisposi- tion, and he had consulted no one respecting it ; having, as he said, a particular dislike to medicines of all kinds. While he was sleeping mesmerically, it occurred to me to ask him whether he was more 17* 198 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. cognisant of his malady than when in his natural state. He replied directly, " Yes. I see now ex- actly what is the matter with me ; and I am happy to say that there is no organic complaint. My dis- order is a weakness of the lower intestine, which proceeds from sedentary habits, and which can only be cured by alterative measures." He then pre- scribed for himself a course of the waters and baths of Aix-la-Chapelle, and a certain regimen (which I carefully noted ;) and finally pronounced with deci- sion that, in strictly following these rules, he should be radically cured before the end of the year. When the patient was awake, I told him all that he had been saying in sleepwaking, at which he was much astonished ; and assured me that the idea of taking baths, or drinking the waters of Aix had never en- tered his head while in his natural state. I urged him to pursue the curative plan which he had traced out for himself. This he promised to do ; and last autumn (I had mesmerised him in the spring of the same year) I received a letter from him, announcing that, by following my advice, or rather his own, he was nearly restored to health. Secondly, The instinct of sleepwakers, relating to all that concerns the mesmeric state, is one of the first that seems to awaken within them. As soon as they have passed into sleepwaking, they will indicate the best means whereby the mesmeriser may deepen their slumber, soothe them, or remove any slight un- easiness they may feel. Anna M , on one occasion, while I was mes- merising some water for her, took the glass from my MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 199 hand, and said, " You do not employ the best me- thod. I will show you what you must do." She then placed one hand on the top, the other at the bottom, of the tumbler, held it so for a short time, and then again applied her hands to the sides of the glass, in a very methodical manner. Another time, being asked, in sleepwaking, if she could say how a person present ought to be mesmerised for a pain from which she was suffering, she proceeded to show how the operation should be performed, and executed the mesmeric passes as if she had studied them all her life. Curious to see how far this kind of instinct would extend. I, one evening, requested her, while in the mesmeric state herself, to mesmerise a younger lister \n1io was present She did not hesitate to do this : and. placing her sister in a proper position, pro- eeeded to mesmerise her in the most skilful manner. The most singular thing is that she used gestures which were perfectly new to me, but which I at once perceived to be very effective. Frequently she breathed upon her own hand, and then laid it on her sister's forehead. In a short time the little girl began to be affected with sleep, when my sleepwaker told me that I must aid her to complete the work. She took one of my hands, and instructed me to mes- merise with the other, while she herself continued to mesmerise with one hand. The effect of this double operation upon our young patient seemed to be great. Her head was alternately attracted towards each of her mesmerisers, and she was soon in a profound sleep. Nothing could be more curious than to see the two sisters sitting opposite each other, both with 200 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. their eyes shut, and yet, by the expression of their countenances, appearing to look at each other. I now went away to another part of the room, when Anna M got up, and walked to just half-way between her sister and myself, but she seemed arrested there by the attraction of contending forces and so she remained, turning from me to her sister, and vice versa, as if she knew not to which she should go, till I put an end to this curious scene by return- ing to my sleepwaker, and begging her to awake her sister. This, however, she declared that she could not do ; but added, " The moment that you awake me, my sister will wake also." The event justified her assertion. Anna M seemed to possess, when in the mesmeric state, a curious power of divining which persons of the company, who might happen to be present during her mesmerisation, would be capable of mesmeric sleepwaking. In such particulars as these I have never known her err. It has also happened that, while she was mesmerised, some other person in the room has mesmerised another patient. At these times she would indicate, with exact precision, the degrees of sleep through which the other patient was passing ; and often, when every one else has sup- posed the slumber to be complete, she has declared it was not so, and was always right in her judgments. I should observe that in her natural state, she had none of this knowledge ; and once, when I asked her to mesmerise some one, declared her inability to do any thing of the kind. Thirdly, The appreciation of time displayed by per- sons in the mesmeric state is remarkable. I have never MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 201 known perfect sleepwakers overpass the exact moment at which they may have been told to remind the mes— > meriser to awaken them ; and yet, directly after re- turning to their natural state, they will, if questioned, make the vridesl guesses of the time. I extract the following from our mesmeric register; — Anna, on being asked the hour, says it is ten o'clock : the cathedral bell strike- fire seconds after. She did not know the time when the nie^ineriser began his operations, yet can now tell correctly that she has been sleeping an hour and five minutes. — On being asked when she would awake, she named half-past ten : and. before we had heard the first chime of the cathedral, she interrupted the conversation suddenly, saying with a start, "Ah! you ought to awake me DdW." I used to remark that, when this sleepwaker Was asked the time. Bhe did not reply so correctly as above; but when, a- vras often the cs spon- taneously called out the hour, she never erred. The least degree of effort on her part seemed to spoil the instinct. I now proceed to consider the mind under mesmer- ism, in relation to its susceptibility to external things. When it is remembered that the bodily senses, in the mesmeric sleep, have been shown to be as dead, an inquiry into the sensations of sleepwakers may seem inconsistent in the highest degree ; but we may perhaps discover, on reflection, that the apparent con- tradiction is only to be laid to the charge of our own erroneous notions. Did persons clearly perceive the simple fact, that sensation is not seated in the senses, but in the mind, they would be less astonished 202 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. at hearing of a means of sensation apart from the usual action of the senses; but there are few — very few — who discern this important truth (which, indeed, lies at the base of all metaphysical knowledge) with such perfection as to be wholly free from a certain confusion of thought respecting it. Thus, the pre- paratives of sensation have been studied as sensation itself; but, as Sir James Mackintosh has admirably observed, " All the changes in our organs, which can be likened to other material phenomena, are nothing more than antecedents and prerequisites of perception^ bearing not the faintest likeness to it : as much out- ward, in relation to the thinking principle, as if they occurred in any other part of matter ; and of which the entire comprehension, if it were attained, would not bring us a step nearer to the nature of thought," Nothing can be truer than this; but our minds and bodies are, in this life, so strongly identified, that it is a hard matter for us sufficiently to discern the huge gulf between mind and matter, and to perceive that we may throw in matter for ever, without rilling up the abyss of separation. God alone has solved that dilemma; and, by attaching the external sei to the soul, has built a bridge for us, arching the chasm across. He has thus brought us into conscious connection with matter and certain of its qualities, primary and secondary ; but, if we could be made aware of the same things in another way. is it not plain that the great end would be equally answered? If the soul be brought into relationship with matter and its properties, the means are but of small im- portance, either as regards their nature or their mini- MESMERIC SLEEPWAKIXG. "203 ber. So that the visible universe, which is but an expression of Goers ideas, be in some measure read and comprehended by as; so that there be a lan- guage established between man and his Creator ; the particular types and configurations of that language are of no more consequence than the forms of our written or printed alphabets. This is not the place to dwell further upon these reflections (to be resumed hereafter) ; but the mere sinatterer in metaphysics, who has learned that odor, color, savor, sound, are absolutely only known to us as sensations, and can be said to have no proper existence but in ourselves, should by no means be alarmed at my viewing sen- Bation in it< results, rather than in hs pre-recjnisites J while the truest metaphysician will be the best pie- pared to examine, without prejudice, a mode of per- ception differing from the normal. There are, how- ever, weaker numb, for whose sake 1 must here expose a fallacy which ha- prevented many well- meaning persons from even venturing to think upon mesmerism. It has been argued, with a show of plausibility, "God gave us our senses for such and such uses: is it not. then, an impiety to say that we can do as well without them? Is not their beautiful contrivance, their unrivaled mechanism, thus thrown into contempt J Shall God be -aid to create need- lessly, and to endow without wisdom?" Reasoning like this is an a priori condemnation of mesmerism; but is it just? A child iniirht refute it. It proceeds all along upon false assumptions. Does the advocate of mesmerism assert that we can do as well without 204 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. our senses in the normal state ? Certainly not. Does he any more deny that our present senses are exquis- itely adapted to that state in which, being our natu- ral, the greater proportion of our time must necessa- rily be passed ? Far from it : he acknowledges this and far more. He reaches a cause of gratitude to God which is beyond the scope of the narrow-mind- ed bigot. For what nobler purpose, he may ask, could a change in our mode of perception be per- mitted, than to show the necessitarian that the ar- rangements of the Almighty depend upon the almighty will alone ; that what is might easily have been other- wise ; and that infinite w r isdom can vary its resources infinitely ? Believing, thus, that to witness a change in our mode of perception may be allowed for the instruction of the skeptic, he may also conjecture that the privilege of beholding an improvement therein may be accorded for the encouragement of the be- liever. He can well imagine that the beneficent Be- ing, who ever in the present gives indications of the future, has placed within us a palpable proof of our high immortal destiny ; and will permit the soul, even in this restricted sphere, to view the temporary expansion of its yet folded wings. This may be deemed too vague ; but to the colder reasoner I should suggest, that, in truth, mesmerism does in no w T ay contradict our former experience : it merely enlarges it. We do not learn that our senses are not the organs of sensation to us in our usual state; but we learn an additional truth — namely, that, in another and anomalous condition, wo find MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 205 some unwonted medium of sensation. Nor by this are nature's established principles necessarily violated or even infringed. They who believe that the per- ceptive peculiarities of mesmerism proceed (as Cole- ridge seems to hint they may do) from " a metastasis of specific functions of the nervous energy/ 5 may still agree to that definition of sensation, which a great philosopher has pronounced the only one thai can be given, namely, ** A state or affection of the mind, arising immediately and solely from a state or affection of the body." ' It is important, also, to remark, that the informa- tion respecting external objects, obtained through the new action of the senses in mesmerism, though some- times exceeding* does qoI at all vary from, that which we receive by the usual channels. Thus we have a double witness to the truth and reality of the things around us: we feel, with Descartes, that God is not the author of a lie : and. far from being led to doubt or to undervalue our present organs of sensa- tion, are more than ever disposed to confide in them : skepticism itself allowing the potency of evidence which springs from two separate yet concurrent soun But, whether the preceding remarks be admitted to be just or not, the truth must be stated. Mes- meric sleepwaking has its own mode of perception ; the peculiarities of which I now proceed, to the best of my ability, to nt. 1 Brown's Philosophy of the Human Mind, 18 206 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKIN6. In the first place, the mode of sensation in mes- merised persons is (like their mode of motion) of a twofold nature : the one resulting, as it seems, from a species of nervous communication with the mes- meriser, the other, from the peculiar state of their own nervous system under an exciting and develop- ing stimulus. To discriminate between these two modes of sensation is important, but by no means easy. The intimate union between the patient and his mesmeriser, subsisting throughout the mesmeric trance, complicates the phenomena, and renders them hard to disentangle. Moreover there are deceptive appearances, which are calculated to perplex an in- quiry as to the exact medium through which sensa- tion is conveyed to the mesmerised person. For instance : — we will suppose the mesmeriser to place something in the patient's hand ; — after a time the latter can tell the form of the object, apparently by the usual sense of touch. Now this is in diametrical opposition to the fact, that pins thrust into the pa- tient's hand excite no sensation there. How shall we reconcile the seeming contradiction ? One mo- ment we see the nerves of sensation useless and dead ; the next, we see them apparently acting as usual. All this is very paradoxical ; but, if we cling to what we have proved, and take some evident principle, thence educed, to guide us through the darkling maze, we shall perhaps find that the oppo- site poles belong to one common orb of reasoning, and are, indeed, the axis upon which the whole re- volves. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 207 First We have established, by a series of experi- ments, that the nerves of sensation, in mesmeric pa- tients, are of themselves quite estranged from their usual modes of action. Secondly. We may deduce from this, that, if the patient experiences sensation, it must be, whatever appearances might lead one to suppose, by some other than the usual mode of nervous action. Thirdly. Facts come in aid of this deduction. Let us observe a mesmerised person holding any thing iA his hand, after a command to examine it. How unconscious, how unmeaning, is the action with which he turns the object about ! How palpable is his hesitation, as if the mere attempt to use the ac- customed channel of sensation were embarrassing ! Can we indeed affirm, should he correctly name that which he holds, that it is by touch he has formed his judgment ? Having once proved that his sense of touch is null, surely it is wiser to conjecture that his tactual perceptions now come to him in some other way. Agreeably to this conjecture, I may remark, that my sleepwakers have often failed to recognise by touch objects which they have at other times seemed to distinguish rather by a species of vision. Once Anna M- was for a time made to believe that a piece of wood, that had been given her to hold, was a piece of snow. Another time, an orange was placed in her hand. She told what it was ; but observed, " You may think I know this by feeling : it is not so. In the mesmeric state I have only one 208 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. method of knowing things ; and whether I see them, smell them, or feel them, it is all the same." * I explain, then, the circumstance, that mesmeric patients sometimes handle objects, by mere habits of motion ; — the circumstance that they occasionally recognise objects so handled, by the new perceptions which, as I shall hereafter show, are opened to them in their new condition. Should this be granted, our path to a comprehen- sion of the mystery will be at least smoothed and prepared ; and there will be no obstacle to our sub- scribing to a proposition, which goes far to explain and reconcile the antithetical phenomena of mes- merism namely, that the conditions of ordinary sen- sation are only restored to mesmeric sleepwakers through their mesmeriser. In demonstration of this, I need not re-urge the deadness of sleepwakers to ordinary sensation. I have only to bring forward some singular proofs, hitherto held back, that impressions of the external world not only reach the mesmeric patient, when transmitted through the mesmeriser, but, in such cases, are actually transmitted through the usual nervous channels. 1 This is curiously consonant with the account which the sleep- waker of Prevorst gave of her own sensations : "She was eating- some soup while her eyes were shut, and she said, * I can find whatever I will upon my plate with the spoon — I know well where it is ; but I cannot tell whether I see or feel it. And so with regard to all other objects : I know not whether I see or feel them.' " — Die Sclicrin von. Prevorst, vol. i. p. 15'2. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 209 Did any one strike or hurt me in any part of the body, when Anna M was in sleepwaking, she immediately carried her hand to a corresponding part of her own person. Thus, she would rub her own shoulder when mine was smarting with a blow, mani- festing that the actual nerves of that part were, j)ro tempore, restored to their functions. Once an incre- dulous person came near tine unawares, and trod upon my loot, which was quite hidden under a chair. The sleepwaker instantly darted down her hand, and rubbed her own foot, with an expression of pain, in. if my hair was pulled from behind, Anna directly raised her hand to the back of her head. A pin thrust into my hand elicited an equal demon- stration of sympathy. I have already remarked that, when the mesmeriser eats, or drinks, or smells anything, his patients go through th motions, as if the impact of the Substances were bn their own nerves. But this, it ma\ i. might be referred to the simultaneity of motion which I have shown to exist occasionally be- tween the sleepwaker and the mesmeriser. I have, however, a very strong proof that the former has really an impression on the nerves of taste, corres- ponding with that of the latter. Three of my sleep- Wakers (on whom alone 1 tried the experiment) could in no way distinguish substances when placed in their own mouths, nor discriminate between a piece of ap- ple and a piece of cheese ; but, the moment that I was eating, they, seeming to eat also, could tell me what I had in my mouth. Once I tried this, before many witnesses, on the sister of Theodore, with some 18* 210 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. pieces of fig which I had carefully concealed, and the experiment answered perfectly. Again, Anna M heard my watch ticking when I held it to my own ear, though not when she held it to her own. In the former case, she assured me that she heard the sound exactly as if the watch were close to her own ear. We are then, I think, justified in concluding that, in certain cases, the actual capacity of the nerves to convey impressions is restored to mesmeric sleep- wakers through the mesmeriser, but in no case spon- taneously. Indeed, the very thraldom of their will seems to forbid the latter supposition : and it is not extravagant to suppose that the mesmeriser, who, by facts, has been shown capable of paralyzing the nerves of his patient, should also have the power of restoring to them the conditions of sensation. It may not be amiss, however, to answer here an objection that has been raised by some who have not sufficiently considered the nature of mesmeric sleep- waking. It has been asked, why, if there be such a sympathy between the patient and the mesmeriser, the latter does not also share the sleepwakers sensa- tions ? For one plain reason ; the one is active, the other passive ; there is union, but not reciprocity. The mesmeriser is not in mesmeric sleepwaking, tire patient is ; and only he who is in the mesmeric state can appreciate sensations in the mesmeric manner. The mesmeriser must be considered as the bestower of a stimulus which exalts another to a particular pitch of feeling ; and the patient as the recipient of that stimulus, which if he were to re-bestow, he must MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 211 fall back into his old habitual state. Thus there can be no re-action on the mesmeriser. A proper view of the relationship between the parties will at once clear up the difficulty. I proceed to show what are the principal pheno- mena of sensation which more properly belong to the patient himself. First. In some cases, the class of perceptions, de- pendent upon a particular sense, are restricted in number only to be increased in degree. Anna M , in sleepwaking, ordinarily heard nothing but my voice and the voices of those who Were in a certain contact with me; but her appro* ciation of such musical sounds as she was made to hear w;is much greater than in the waking state. I Was in tl to her when mesmerised; and. though at ether times she cared little for mu- sic she then evinced a pleasure which indicated an to musical impressions. She ued with the deepest attention; as the measure changed, her countenance became animated or se- rious ; and she marked such parts of the perform- as were most pleasing to her by a motion of her head or by raising her finger. It was remarkable that my voice, when I was singing, acted, in relation to the sleepwaker, as a conductor to other sounds. Then, and then only, she appeared to be sensible of the most trifling noises in the apartment, and was impatient of them to the highest degree ; holding up her forefinger, as if to enjoin silence, and uttering prolonged hushes. On one occasion, a person joined me in singing, when Anna testified the strongest 212 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. disgust, making wry faces, and gestures of repug- nance. We then tried the experiment of making the person sing alone ; but the sleepwaker no longer showed dislike, and, on being questioned, said that she heard nothing. Occasionally this patient mani- fested a slight agitation or oppression in the mes- meric state ; but these uneasy feelings invariably passed away under the influence of music. When brought into " rapport " with other performers than her mesmeriser, she still exhibited an unusual degree of musical sensibility; marking the best passages of a composition with so much taste, and beating time so accurately, as once to make a musician suppose that she was intimately acquainted with his art. She always, however, heard a voice more distinctly than the piano. The conduction of the sound was thus accomplished: — I laid one hand upon the performer's shoulder, while she herself touched him with one hand and myself witli the other. We have often tried what effect music would have upon the patient when awake ; and it was evident that her musical feeling had passed away with her mes- meric state. Perhaps I ought here to record a phenomenon, re- lative to the sense of hearing, which spontaneously presented itself. Anna M , in sleepwaking. had my watch in her hand, in order to tell the hour : but. disregarding this, she seemed to be amusing herself with the watch, alternately carrying it from her ear to the pit of her stomach, when suddenly she ex- claimed, " This is wonderful ! I cannot hear the MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 213 watch tick when at my ear, but, placed below my chest, I hear it." Other experiments showed that she could also hear the ticking of the watch when it was held close tp her forehead, or to my own car. I should observe that, in her waking slate, she knew nothing whatever of the alleged transposition of the senses in mesmerism, and that 1 had not much taste for developments in the "cerebrum abdominale." \.. who, in sleepwaking, could hear nothing when persons shouted close to his oar. did yet evi- dently retain, in certain cases, a very delicate per- ception of sound. This was proved by his being able still to play the flute with his ordinary precision and even more than his usual brilliancy. Often, too, he composed original airs during his sleepwaking with a great fertility of invention ; and, though it \ tor him, accomplished musician as he more musical talent in his new state than be evinced commonly, y t, on some occasions! lie demonstrated that his discrimination of sounds had attained, under mesmerism, a higher develop- ment. First. Tie played on the piano, correctly, an air, which, awake, he played but imperfectly, not having the same power of execution on the piano as on the flute — his peculiar instrument. Secondly. Playing an air on the piano, in sleep- waking, he adapted to a particular note a new chord, which I at once perceived to be a great improvement on the original. Not willing, however, to trust to my own judgment, I consulted a musician on the point ; when he declared the chord played in sleep- 214 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. Waking to be the best, and indeed the very one which was required by the laws of harmony. Curious to observe whether E. A. would discover this of himself, in the waking state, I never mentioned the subject before him ; and I found that, unless sleeping mes- merically, he continued to play the air with the erro- neous chord. The second peculiarity of perception in the state of mesmeric sleepwaking, which it occurs to me to point out, is — A sensibility to influences which in no way affect persons in the waking condition. A prism, which I held in my hand, and turned with the point towards the patient, produced, in two several cases, startings and slight shudderin Again, I concealed a magnet in my hand, with such precautions that the patient could have no idea of any thing unusual, unless through some develop- ment of feeling. The patient (Anna M ) started each time that I extended towards her the band which held the magnet, and exhibited convulsive movements in the hands. When questioned respect- ing her sensations, she replied, " I feel as if I were beginning to be mesmerised, but not pleasantly — I feel all cold." Desirous to try if the different poles of the magnet would produce different effects, I held the south pole to the forehead of the sleepwaker. when she made sundry oscillations with her head, which at length slowly advanced towards the magnet. On present- ing the north pole, her head began to retreat gently, and with an unsteady motion, like that of the mag- MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 215 netic needle. The same experiments, tried upon two other sleepwakers, gave the same results. Sometimes, when I have presented the north pole of the magnet, the patient's head has retreated by jerks, as if driven backward by successive -hocks. The south pole, on the contrary, has always seemed to exercise a very powerful attractive force over sleepwakers ; yet, as far as L can judge, they dislike to be submitted to mineral magnetism, which, as they affirm, produces in them disagreeable sensations. 1 have known one individual, who was sensible to the action of a mag- net lying on a table at some distance and covered by a piece of paper, and who begged it might be re- moved. I once asked a slerpwaker whether she could perceive any analogy between animal and mineral magnetism, when she replied, "There is an analogy — but the latter ifl of a coarser nature.' 3 Minerals, in general, seem also disagreeable to Bleepwakers. Once. I gave a pair of scissors to Anna M (then in the mesmeric state), in order to eut some thread belonging to a work she was engaged in. Having cut the thread, sin.' shuddered and threw the scissors from her. When asked if she did this because of the old proverb, that •• scissors cut love/' she smiled, and said. " [n my present State, I have no such su- perstitions ; but I threw the scissors away, because, when mesmerised. I cannot bear to touch metal." ' 1 Caspar Ilauser, whose nervous sensibility had been exalted by an unnatural seclusion from the stimulus of external things, was extremely alive to metallic influences, and could tell, through ob- stacles, where a needle was placed ; pointing to the exact spot, and saying, li It draws me here.'' 216 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. The effects which precious stones produce upon sleepwakers are also curious. In three cases, where I had the opportunity of making experiments of the kind, I found a certain correspondence of sensation, which inclines me to believe that a more extended observation might lead to some certain and interest- ing results. The diamond, when presented to the forehead of a sleepwaker, seemed invariably to excite agreeable feelings : the opal had a soothing effect ; the emerald gave a slightly unpleasing sensation ; and the sapphire one that was positively painful. What is singular is that, if the last-named stone was applied to Anna M 's forehead, she complained of its roughness, though it was polished perfectly smooth, — while, on the contrary, on contact with the diamond, which was cut in facets, she experienced a sensation of smoothness. One sleepwaker loved the diamond so much as to lean forward after it, when I held it in my hand, and to rub her forehead against it. In general, however, I did not touch the patients with the gems, but held them, concealed in my hand, at a few inches distance from the forehead ; and I changed their order sufficiently often to prove that the sleep- waker's judgment of them was not accidental. 1 1 The following is extracted from our mesmeric diary : — ;; Being shown several precious stones, Anna put her forehead towards them. and started, more or less, at each. Some, she says, produce agree- able, others disagreeable feelings. Being asked if it is because they are cold, she answers, "Oh no ! far from it. Some are very hot, and others scratch me as if they would tear the skin off my face." After several experiments, she declared that the opal gave a so ft feeling, but was neither particularly agreeable nor disagreeable. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 217 Another proof of the increased sensibility of sleep- wakers is the ease and certainty with which they dis- tinguish water that has been breathed on or touched by the mesmeriser. I have somtimes thus mesmerised, as it is called, a gfaQM of water, half an hour before it was presented to the sleepwaker, amongst three others, ettctfy similar and tilled exactly to the same point. The result of one of these trials shall be given, as taken down at the time by an eye-witness of the experiment : — Four glasses of water being presented on a tray to Anna M , one of which was mesmerised, she passes her hands over them all, feeling the rims, and fixes on the mesmerised one. The order of the glasses being changed behind the mesm their respective r< without hesita- tion, though without knowing how or by what im- pulse, K. A. manifested similar faculties. On being asked how he distinguished the mesmerised water, he said, u J'y vois une esp< ce de lumii re."' All this demonstrates the truth of Laplace's asser- tion, that, of all the instruments by which the finer emanations of the natural world can be detected, the most delicate are the nerves ; especially when their sensibility has been developed through particu- lar causes 1 /* and I am thence led to suggest that, in- stead of quarreling about the exalted sensation of sleepwakers. we should endeavor to call it to ac- count. Even should we never succeed in fathoming its principle, there is an obvious probability that it 1 Theorie Analytique du Calcul des Probabilitcs. 220 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. may be rendered practically useful. If worthless as an object of analysis, it may at least be valuable as a test. But it is the nature of man to insist upon a thing being just as he would make it, or to have none of it. We reject the benefit that we cannot com- prehend ; and like children crying for the moon, are rendered unhappy by seeing an object, however beautiful, which cannot be brought down to our level and given us as a plaything. Yet, on the Continent, men of science have, in some instances, been wise enough to profit by the extraordinary perceptions of the mesmeric state. It is related, in " Die Seherin von Prevnrst.*' that the sleepwaker, so called, was able to detect in certain stones a certain ingredient which always affected her in a particular manner ; and that a mineralogist made much use of this discrimination; subsequent experi- ment completely establishing the capacity of his informer. 1 Thirdly. The organs of vision being under quite other than the normal conditions, a faculty analogous to sight is developed in mesmeric sleepwaking. In approaching the phenomena that result from such an overstepping of the ordinary limits of our nature, I deeply feel the difficulties that bar my way. That persons can hear and answer questions while in a kind of slumber may be conceived : but that they should see with their eyes shut comes not with- 1 The same sleepwaker distinguished between twelve different kinds of grapes, and their several degrees of excellence, astringen- cy, &c. — Seherin von Prcvorst, vol. i. p. 8|, published at Stutgart and Tabingen. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKIXG. 221 in the compass of our faith. It is contrary to nature — it is utterly incredible. Even they who behold tlua fact are* when it is first presented to tliem. incapable of reasoning for very wonder. They perceive that the mesmeric patient's mode of vision is different from any within the range of their experience ; but what that mode may be appears to them a mystery unfathomable. Such were my own feelings on first witnessing an exhibition of what is called clair-voyance in mesmer- ism; and I now endeavor to recall them, in order that 1 may sympathize more with the astonishment or incredulity of my readers over the statements which 1 am about to make Should they suspend their be- lief as to certain phenomena till they have actually beheld the alleged Wonder- with their OWn eyes, ] can scarcely blame them for b doubt which is, per- haps, but proper caution. Rather must I adde them in the words of Tre\ nanus, when speaking to Coleridge of mesmeric marvels, — •• I have ^hii what 1 am certain 1 would not have believed on your telling, and in all reason, therefore, I can neither expect nor wish that you should believe on mine." Even they who are most firmly convinced that mes- merism has its own mode of vision must be content toaccept the phenomenon, without having that surety of it which personal experience alone can give .of any thing. The mesmeriser witnesses the wonder, but does not feel it in himself: the sleepwaker, who is the subject of it, seems incapable of analyzing his new sensations while they last, still more of remembering them when they are over. The state of mesmerism 19" 222 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. is to him as death. 1 He cannot, when he awakes, reveal the mysteries of that great deep. His mes- meric feelings are to him as though they had never been ; and less favored, in this respect, even than they who have beheld him in his unusual condition, he is forced to take his own actions upon trust, and to exercise his own faith, while he draws so largely upon the realizing faculty in others. It is manifest, then, that we cannot believe in the clairvoyance of sleepwakers, in the same manner that we believe and know that we ourselves see with our eyes. It is a fact which transcends our present understanding. To what end, then, it may be asked, should I state phenomena which will be believed by few, and perfectly comprehended by none ? Because many things that are mysteries, are, nevertheless, profitable subjects of contemplation. Whatever is beyond our actual state of being is confessedly out of the pale of empirical knowledge ; yet shall we, on that account, banish the higher developments of nature from our thoughts, or even from our own scientific examina- tion ? Were all our ideas confined to that which we certainly know, the domain of our intellect would be limited indeed. Besides, by careful study, we may always extend, though we cannot complete, our appre- hension of things above us ; and, by discovering their analogy to things already known, bring them at least 1 I once asked a young lady, who was in sleepwalking, why, on awaking, she forgot all that she did with such apparent intelli- gence. Her answer was, a Des qu'on est magnetise on est comme mort." MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 223 nearer to our experience. Clearly then, where there is so much room for progress, it is our duty to ad- vance, remembering that the point where w r e should abandon enterprise has not yet been decided. In the present instance, the objects that I propose to myself are these : — To show in our present being the elements of a future existence ; to prove that our actual senses are limitations of our percipient power; and that, in proportion as the mind is detached from them, it acts more Largely, overcoming obstacles which, by means of our usual organs, it is impossible to surmount. It may be. also, that the facts on which I found mans capacity of development, being supported by good testimony, may convince some who have hitherto been incredulous, and may supply others, who already believe, with additional light to guide them further on their way, 1 have already stated thai I have seen sleepwakers descry objects, when their eyes were, to all appear- ance, perfectly closed ; but my experiments on this head were not so rigorous, but that it might still be objected that mesmeric patients, like certain politi- cians, " See through all things with their half-shut eyes." I now proceed to show that, in many cases, such a supposition is untenable ; and that the mesmeric sleepwaker may have a mode of vision to which the usual conditions of sight are altogether wanting. The first time that I mesmerised Anna M , a workbox, which she had never seen before, was held before her. She stooped her forehead towards it, in 224 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. a manner that struck me, and immediately named what it was. The box having been opened, the sleepwaker again bent her forehead till it was nearly parallel with its surface ; then rapidly named the va- rious objects it contained ; and, taking them up one by one in her hand, seemed desirous of examining them more particularly. But, to my surprise, she waved the articles about before her, as if trying in what point of view she could best descry them, hold- ing them to various parts of her face and forehead, and exclaiming, as if perplexed, " Where, then, are my eyes ? " At length she seemed best satisfied, when holding objects before her forehead, at the dis- tance of a few inches, declaring that she saw them most distinctly there. In order to put her assertions to the proof, I held my watch before the forehead of the sleepwaker, without descending it to the level of her eyes. She took it from me, and, not lowering it in the least, held it so turned as that it formed an acute angle with her forehead, immediately above the eyebrow. It is to be remarked that she thus pre- sented the watch to her forehead, first on the right side, then on the left, as if to submit it to the scru- tiny of a double organ. After this she named the exact hour and minute. The hands having been al- tered, she found the time with equal correctness. A poppy being held before her forehead, she said, " I see a red flower ; but I do not exactly know its name." Remembering that an experienced mesmeriser had told me that sleepwakers, in general, perform most readily anything which gives them pleasure in their MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 225 waking state, and observing, in conformity with this statement, that Anna M , who was an expert needle-woman, took particular interest in the work- box and its appendages, I proposed to her to proceed with a piece of work which was at hand. She im- mediately took the work, and, holding it always on a level with her forehead, went on methodically with the hem of the piece of muslin I had given her. When necessary, she turned down anew fold ; and, in every respect, performed her task as well as she could have done awake. The work, submitted to female judgment, was pronounced to be a capital piece of sempstress-craft, the stitches being even and not one of them dropped. After this, we often gave Anna M work to do io the mesmeric stele, when parties of ten or twelve persons have been present, to witness her extraordi- nary development of vision. She continued to hold every thing to her fori head ; and with her hands raised to that level, in a position which, under ordi- nary circumstances, would be difficult and painful, has embroidered delicate flowers upon muslin, and even threaded her needle, without apparent effort. As it is my sincere desire to give a correct picture of mesmeric sleepwaking, I would on no account represent this power of vision as greater than it really was, or omit the inconsistencies which attended its exercise. That it was by no means even or constant cannot but be acknowledged, though I am by no means prepared to develope the cause of its caprices. Thus Anna, though giving incontestable proofs of vision by the forehead, could not be brought to dis- 226 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. tinguish printed or written letters in the mesmeric state, except on one occasion, when she read her own name, which I had written in a large hand, and held at once before her forehead. It seemed to me that her new visual faculty was always in its best condi- tion when spontaneously exerted, and that any effort on her part, any over-anxiety to fulfil our requisitions, marred it altogether. I have often asked her to name an object, which I have allowed her to examine as she would ; but she has not named it, though apparently striving earnestly to do so. Again, she has indicated other things spontaneously when it was quite impos- sible for her to have discerned them in the ordinary manner. It was when she was sitting quietly, and apparently forgetful that she was an object of obser- vation, that she displayed the most remarkable phe- nomena of vision. One instance however is better than a thousand assertions. She was sitting with her head so much bent down as to bring the upper part of her forehead parallel to the wall of the apartment. In this position, with her eyes closed, it was impossi- ble for her to have seen, in any usual way, objects that were immediately fronting her. So placed, I observed her smile, and asked her why she did so ? " I am smiling," she said, " because I am pleased to see Mrs. opposite to me." " You see her, then. well ? " I inquired. " Yes ; she has a cup of tea in her hand." Upon this, the lady in question adroitly changed the cup of tea for a book ; upon which Anna immediately remarked, " But now she has taken a book." The lady then opened the book, and held it by the two sides, spread out exactly on a level MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. 227 with the forehead of the sleepwaker, who said directly, " Oh ! she holds the book quite open by its two ends." This experiment, neither suggested nor in any way conducted by myself, was interesting to me in no trifling degree, and was convincing to all who wit- nessed it. Another singular circumstance was, that no one could put on an ugly mask that lay about the room, and to which Anna, in her mesmeric state, had a great aversion, without her testifying, by faces ex- pressive of dislike, that she was aware of the circum- stance. We have tried this, when the sleepwaker was occupied by other things, and with every pre- caution, of making no noise. & c. : yet the result was always the same. When placed before a looking-glass, she could in- dicate, more correctly than at any other time, the gestures of persons standing near her, and seen by reflection. I have pulled out her comb, and she has arranged her hair again perfectly before a mirror, holding her forehead parallel to its surface. Being asked if she saw herself with her eyes open or shut, she replied, " Open, to be sure ; " and, when I rea- soned with her on this point, she replied, " I see as if my eyes were open ; and so they must appear to me open." It is singular that another sleepwaker gave me exactly the same answers under the same circumstances. I shall refer again to the subject, which is of metaphysical importance. A gentleman who was once present during a mes- merisation of Anna M , being placed " en rap- 228 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. port" with her, laid his hand upon her forehead, when she exclaimed, " Why do you cover my eyes? " He then touched her eyes, and asked, " What part of your face am I touching now ? " The sleep waker seemed perplexed, and at length answered, " It is a part of my cheek, is it not ? " When asked to point out where different persons were placed in the apartment, during her sleep- waking, she never failed to do so, however their re- spective positions might be changed ; leaning her forehead forward all the time, and presenting it to each individual. At the instant of recognising each person she always gave one or two convulsive starts, as if her forehead came in contact with some invisi- ble thing. The account that she gave of her visual perceptions was sufficiently confused. These are her own words, relative to this subject, taken down, on one occasion, by a friend : — " It is all clear through my forehead. Sometimes I see so clear ! But then, again, there is a sort of light cloud that comes over the clearness, and then I can hardly see any thing. I do not see as with two eyes, but here (passing her hand across her forehead), with my brain." Already, in various accounts of experiments, I have mentioned E. A , a boy aged fifteen, whom I had opportunities of frequently mesmerising. This patient, of all whom I have ever seen, manifested in sleepwaking the most extraordinary development of visual power. As I have before said, he had been, in childhood, a natural sleepwaker : and I now add, on the testimony of his father, that he would some- MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 229 times rise in the night, take out his flute, (an instru- ment which he was studying professionally,) place music before him, and play from notes, continuing to turn over the leaves of the music-book correctly, although his eyes were closely shut. On one occa- sion, while his father was watching him in a paroxysm of this kind, the only light in the apartment, a lamp, went suddenly out : but the sleepwaker continued to play as before, and was heard to turn over the leaves of his music until he had come to the end of the piece, which, moreover, he could not execute without book. Thus, it will be pereei\ed, there w T as in this sleepwaker a sort of natural ground for the develop- ment of extraordinary vision ; and it was this con- sideration which led me. after having heard the anec- dotes above related, to request the boy to submit himself to the effects of mesmerism, lie consented to a trial, the result of which will show how careful persons ought to be in deciding, from one or two un- successful experiments, that a patient is insusceptible of mesmerisation. I had mesmerised E. A twice (each time an hour), and he had shown no symptom of being affected by any influence. I should not have made a third trial, but for the following circum- stance : — I had thrown Anna M into mesmeric sleepwaking before a large party of persons, amongst whom was E. A . I think I have every reason to affirm that the sleepwaker did not know any thing whatever respecting E. A , not even his name, nor that I had attempted to mesmerise him ; yet, be- ing accidentally near him, she said to me, (as if guided by that extraordinary instinct, respecting all that re- 20 230 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. lates to the mesmeric state, which I have before noticed as characteristic of true sleepwaking,) " You should mesmerise this young man : he is a natural sleepwaker ; and will become very clair-voyant" I answered that I had already tried to mesmerise the boy, and that I had failed in my object. " You should try again/' replied the sleepwaker, " and you will succeed." But before relating how truly this prophecy was accomplished, and its further results, I must observe, in order to remove all suspicion of Anna M 's sincerity, that in recommending me to mesmerise E. A she was speaking strongly against her own interest, and even her own general feelings ; for, with a sort of sentiment that may be called mesmeric jealousy, she never could endure me to mesmerise any one but herself. Then, again, I was endeavoring to educate her powers of mesmeric vision, in the hope that she might gain the prize offered by the academy of medicine, at Paris, to a sleepwaker who could read without the aid of the eyes ; and, knowing that attention to any one else must, in a degree, distract me from this object, she had every reason to fear a rival in my mesmeric graces. Moreover, in order to avoid giving her the least uneasiness, I carefully concealed from her my relations with E. A ; and as, when awake, she forgot wholly the events of her sleepwaking, she never knew (as far as I can judge) either that I had mesmerised E. A at any time, or that there was any question of my doing so. Having said thus much in justice to Anna M , (a precaution not unnecessary in the present hostility MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 231 to mesmerism,) I proceed to state that, the third time I mesmerised E. A , he, at the end of an hour, passed so far into sleepwaking as to be able to an- swer questions without awaking — questions of which he retained no recollection in his natural state. On a fourth mesmerisation, he manifested all the char- acteristic symptoms of mesmeric sleepwaking ; was able to move about with tolerable case ; and began to display those extraordinary phenomena of vision which I have prepared my reader to expect. These maybe divided into two classes — namely, such as presented themselves spontaneously, and such as were developed during a course of strict experiment. With regard to both it may be observed that there was exactly that progress in their develop- ment which attends the education of a new faculty. At first, the patient could only descry the larger objects around him, or such as most interested him, or to which he was the most habituated. Thus, though able, in the early stages of his sleepwaking, to discriminate between the persons present in an apartment, and though testifying, in all that related to music, great powers of sight, (for, from the first, he could, while mesmerised, write out music with pre- cision.) yet, for a long period, he found considerable difficulty in reading from a book — always complain- ed of the smallness of the type, and could rarely be prevailed upon to look at more than tw T o or three words at a time. Subsequently, his eyes being always firmly shut, (as far as the strictest observation could determine,) he was able to read any number of words in the minutest type with perfect ease, and to 232 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. discern small and large objects, near or distant, with exactly the same facility of vision which is possessed by a waking person. In proof of this I may mention that I and the members of my family have seen him, when in the mesmeric state, thread a small needle, and sew a button on his coat, and, again, distin- guish minute letters on a seal which a gentleman showed him, and which I could not make out myself. At another time, in mesmerism, he played on the flute a piece of music which he had never seen be- fore, from a book that was set up before him at the distance of some feet ; and once beincr mesmerised out of doors, and led to a spot where he had never been, he described all its features, and indicated the form and position of the distant mountains. This power of perception, analogous to sight, seemed principally to reside in the forehead. Whatever objects he took up to examine he immediately car- ried there ; and once, in the presence of Dr. Foissac, at Paris, he, being given a set of eye-glasses which he had never seen when awake, of eight different colors, shut up in a tortoise-shell case, unfolded them. and applying one, at hazard, to his forehead, without descending it to the level of his eyes, exclaimed, cc Every thing appears blue to me ! ,? at the same time, boy-like, imitating the gestures of a Parisian dandy, and observing that he should like to show off his pretty lorgnette in the street. The glass which he had accidentally chosen was, in fact, blue. Sub- sequently, he at various times has named the princi- pal tints of the eight glasses correctly, when present- ed to his forehead in any order. The same result MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 233 took place when his eyes were bandaged. It was, however, remarkable that a powerful magnifying glass being placed before his forehead was not per- ceived by him to enlarge objects, though he read in a book, through the glass, with perfect ease. Though the power of vision was greatest in the forehead, yet at limes, and especially when he was excited, and not in any way called upon to exhibit, (for such requisitions often seemed to fetter his facul- ties,) he seemed to see on every side of him, as if his head were one organ of visual perception. This is no exaggeration, as the following instance will show : — He was once sitting on a sola, in the mesmeric state, when a gentleman with whom he was well acquainted came behind the sola, and made all kinds of antics. On this, the deepwakei exclaimed, "Oh, Mr. 1) ! do not suppose I cannot see you : you are now doing so and so (describing all Mr. I) s gestures.) Vou have now taken a paper- cutter into your hand, and now a knife. Indeed, \ on had better go away, and not make yourself so ridiculous.' 5 Another time, he was sitting at a table, writing music, with his back to the door, when a servant entered the apartment, " Oh, Mademoiselle L ! is that you?" he said. " How quietly you stand there with your arms folded." He was quite correct in all he said. Directly after this I took up a bottle from a table behind the patient, and held it up to the back of his head, asking him if he knew what I held. He instantly replied, " A bottle, to be 20* 234 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. Having mentioned the principal phenomena of vision which E. A. spontaneously presented, I pro- ceed to state those which he manifested under strict experiment. Well convinced that doubts would exist, not only in the minds of others, but in my own, respecting the patient's manner of seeing, so long as there was the remotest possibility of his discerning objects through any aperture, however small, between the eyelids, I studied to put this out of the question by precautions so severe as to forbid imposition, and so varied as to supply that accumulated and concurring evidence which circumstances that contradict experience im- peratively require. 1st. I laid the patient on a sofa, in bright day- light, with his face turned towards the window, and made him lean his head back until I could see com- pletely under his eyes. When he was so placed, I could have detected the slightest gleam of the eye through the smallest opening of the lids. I have then given him a book, from which he has read with ease, (holding it nearly parallel to his forehead,) while all the time I fixed my eyes earnestly on his, and yet could perceive not the slightest tendency in them to unclose. 2dly. I laid the palms of my hands, the fingers pointing upwards, on the eyes of various persons, in such a manner as that the projecting parts of each hand should exactly fit into the concavities about the eyes. These persons assured me that, with their eyes so covered, they could see nothing whatever. I have given them cards or books in their hands, but MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 235 by no efforts on their parts could they distinguish these objects. I have repeated the same experiment again and again upon E. A., in a state of sleepwak- ing, and never found that the palms of my hands in any way impeded his vision. He could see cards, or read in books, under the above circumstances, with perfect ease. I never felt any motion beneath my hand, as if the patient were trying to open his eyes ; nor did he evince the slightest inclination to draw his head back from the pressure of my hands. 3dly. Standing behind the patient, I have laid my closed fingers over his eyes horizontally, or I have forcibly pressed down his lids with one finger of each hand. This, which, when tried on others, effectually impeded their Bight, made do alteration in the visual perceptions erf the sleepwaker. In order to avoid repetition. I here state, generally, that the efficacy of the means I employed to stop the eyes of my patient was always first proved upon the eyes of indifferent persons. I should remark, moreover, that the patient had no objection to permit any one who was previously placed "en rapport" with him, to try upon him all the above experiments. I there- fore usually engaged other persons to do this, in preference to myself, as the most satisfactory way of convincing them that there was no complicity be- tween me and my sleepwaker, and of bringing the matter home to their own business and bosoms. This manner of proceeding has shaken many from their incredulity. 4thly. Having filled a couple of china eye-glasses with wadding, I, or some other person, held them 236 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. firmly to the patient's closed eyes when in sleepwak- ing. This also made no difference in his visual perceptions. When the same eye-glasses have been applied without the wadding, notwithstanding their perfect opacity, the patient has declared that he could see the light very plainly through them ; and that they were so transparent that he could not conceive why we imagined they should prevent him from see- ing. 5thly. I have tried various methods of bandaging the patient's eyes. I have tied a broad and thick silk handkerchief over them, and then I have held down with my fingers, or the palms of my hands, the whole of the bottom part of the bandage. This method seems to me as perfect as any. It did not at all impede the sleepwaker's vision. In addition to this, (the same result always ensuing,) I have laid strips of wadding over the eyes before applying the handkerchief, and I have firmly secured every pos- sible interstice between it and the cheek with cotton. In the presence of Dr. Foissac, strips of diachylum were added to all the above apparatus, in order to fasten down the edges of the handkerchief to the cheek ; but the sleepwaker saw as well as ever. On several occasions I bandaged his eyes, adding the cotton and the wadding before beginning to mes- merise him, when he has assured me that he could not distinguish day from night. Then, having passed into sleepwaking, he has immediately given proofs of perfect vision — quite as perfect, indeed, as that en- joyed by persons whose eyes are open and unbound. Again, on aw r aking, (the bandage never having been MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 237 stirred during the whole period of his sleepwaking,) he has found himself in perfect darkness. The transition was marked. One moment, drawn by the strong attraction of my presence, he was following me about the room, through intricacies of chairs and tables, with perfect ease ; the next, he was standing helpless, not caring to be near me, and, if called upon, unable to move, except with a groping hesi- tation of a blindfold person. I remarked that he did not wake so easily with the bandage on as when he had no bandage. The action of the transverse passes that I used to that effect seemed modified by the interposing substance. The striking proofs of vision thai the patient gave, when properly ban- daged, were, that he read in books, and distinguished cards, their colors. Buit, &C*., often playing with me at various games upon them. I remarked that in sleepwaking he was quite adroit at the game of cas- sino. which 1 had almost vainly tried to teach him in the waking state. It will be allowed that for a person, even bandaged in a slovenly manner, to per- ceive, at a glance, the combinations on the board, would be no easy matter ; yet this he did with rapidity, completely bandaged as he was. 6thly. I threw over the patient's head two thick and large towels, which covered him in front down to the hips. Through these he has read, holding the book at an angle with his forehead, and has distin- guished cards with perfect accuracy. This kind of experiment was occasionally varied. Sometimes the sleepwaker has been bandaged, and, in addition to this, a towel has been thrown over his head ; but the 238 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. result was equally satisfactory. This power, how- ever, seemed to have its limits. The addition of a third towel greatly impeded the patient's vision, yet even thus he has distinguished cards. On one occa- sion, a visiter, instead of covering up the patient's eyes, enveloped the object to be seen in the folds of a napkin. The experimenter, in order, if possible, to mislead myself, the sleepwaker, and all w r ho were present, gave us to understand that he had placed one card only in the napkin, (he had performed the operation with his back turned,) but the patient was not to be deceived. At first, indeed, he seemed puzzled ; but even this transient perplexity elicited a curious proof that he saw not only through the triple folds of the napkin, but through the back of one of the cards. He said, " There seems to me to be a Jive, but the points are not of the same colors — " Oh ! " he exclaimed, after a pause, " how could I be so stupid ! there are two cards. One is the ace of hearts, the other the four of clubs." He was per- fectly right. The four of clubs had its face upper- most, the ace was laid under it, and, in order to form a five, the sleepwaker must have seen the ace under- neath the other card. 7thly. One day I was curious to observe whether my patient could discriminate colors or forms, on ap- parently flat surfaces, by the touch, as the blind some- times have been known to do. To this end, I held an open book over a little round French paper box, which had no distinction of top or bottom, except that there was a picture on what was meant for the upper side. I gave the sleepwaker the box into his MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 239 hand, (holding the book always so as to screen the object from him,) and asked if he knew whereabouts the picture was. He immediately turned it right side uppermost, and with his finger pointed out the prin- cipal features of the little painting — a shepherdess sitting under a tree, &c, c * Then," I said, " you do perceive by your fingers.** "No," he replied, "but I see through the book." Desirous of testing this more perfectly, 1 held open a large book exactly be- fore his face, and, taking up, at hazard, a card from a pack that lay near me, I kept the figured side con- cealed against my hand, until I could turn it towards the sleepwaker. immediately behind the book. Stoop- ing his forehead forward, till it nearly touched the back of the volume, lie told correctly what the card was. This experiment I frequently repeated, with equal success.; sometimes varying it. by bandaging the patient's eyes before 1 held the book before them. The additional obstacle seemed to make no difference. Sometimes 1 have placed a card, with due precau- tion, in the midst of a book which I kept open only by the interposition of a finger, holding the face of the card pressed against the leaves of the book, and thus entirely concealing it. I have then held the book upright before the patient, who has bent his forehead forward, as usual, till it was parallel to the cover of the book, and has then told the card cor- rectly. What is singular is that, if I withdrew my finger and quite closed the book, the experiment failed. The sleepwaker said that the reason of this was that the vibrations of the medium, by which he pretended to perceive objects, were too much intercepted by the 240 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. perfectly closed book. I should observe, once for all, that, when I record the sayings of my sleepwakers, it is not because I give faith to them, but for reasons to which I shall advert hereafter. Indeed, nothing can be more contradictory or unsatisfying than the account which mesmerised persons render of their own mode of sensation. For instance, E. A. told me once that he saw through the book that was held between him and an object ; but at another time he propounded a long and confused theory, by which he made it appear that his sight did not penetrate the obstacle, but received an impression from certain rays, that did not come to his eye in direct lines, but were bent round the edges of the book. 8thly. Another class ^of precautions which I have taken, to convince myself that the mechanism of the eye had nothing to do with the mesmeric mode of vision, consisted in spreading out a pack of cards on a table, face downward, (frequently changing the pack, lest any of the cards might, in any way, be- come known to the sleepwaker.) and in sliding a card, at random, on to the palm of my hand, so that its faced side was never for a moment exposed until I had lifted it above the patient's head, when I pre- sented it at once to his forehead or occiput. In the same way I have taken up a written paper, previously prepared, or a book, which I have not opened until it was above the level of the patient's eyes ; and I have held these objects to various parts of his head. The following are the results of observations made under the above circumstances : — The sleepwaker's power of perception seemed to MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 241 become weaker as it withdrew from the region of ordinary sight. I have known him read half a page from a book which was held immediately above the eyebrow ; and he found but little difficulty in telling any number of cards which were held in the same position. He did not at all like to have objects held behind him ; saying that perception by the occiput was very fatiguing, and cost him an effort which did him harm. It certainly is a fact that, after he had told things in this way, he used to complain of uneasiness on awaking. Still he gave indubitable proofs that he could occasionally exercise, by means of the back or other parts of his head, a faculty analogous to sight. The following are the most striking instances of this : — I wrote in my pocket-book (holding it above the patient's head) the words. " Voule/.-vous aller a Milan?" I then presented the writing immediately to his occiput. He immediately called out, " Oh ! je vois la le nom d'une grande ville !" and then, word by word, he seemed to make out the whole sentence, which he at length repeated correctly. On another occasion, I took up a book at random and opened it just behind the patient's ear, holding the book parallel to the side of his head. I had opened it at the beginning of a chapter. His first exclamation was, " There's a great deal of white on that page." I said nothing, but continued to hold the book as before, when he began to repeat some numbers that were on the page, — " 1425, 1426." Then, without pausing, he read, distinctly and cor- rectly, the title of the chapter, which was as fol- 21 242 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. lows : — " Scenes Historiques. — La Main Droite du Sire de Giac (1425, 1426.) m He continued with one or two words of the chapter itself, but suddenly broke off, in a way that was habitual with him, pushed away the book and declared himself fatigued. In telling cards by means of various parts of his head, he liked to observe certain conditions which were executed either by himself or at his direction. His favorite mode of proceeding was to lift his own hand above his head, and to take the card from me, which he held at a certain distance from the part where I told him to exercise his perception, observ- ing that no one ever put a thing they wanted to see close to their eyes. When I held the card myself, and approached it nearer than he liked, he always gave indubitable proofs of being aware of the cir- cumstance, begging me to place the object farther off. Sometimes, when he found a difficulty in ascer- taining the card, he would beg me to breathe on it ; and, when I had done so, he would tell it directly. At other times, he would hold the card horizontally above his head ; and then, without stirring the centre of the card from its place, would dip down first one end and then the other, like the two extremities of a see-saw. This he called " Le moyen electrique." He was generally successful in telling cards in this manner, sometimes on the first operation, sometimes after two or three repetitions of it. Occasionally I have placed the patient's own hand on a table with the palm uppermost, and have glided 1 Taken from a work called " Dodecation, ou le Livre des douze." Bruxelles, 1836. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 243 on to it a card drawn at random from the pack, with the face downward. Then I have told him to what part of his head he should lift the card ; but it has often happened that, while in the act of conveying the card (the back always uppermost), he has said, U I need not trouble myself to take the card any far- ther, for I know already what it is." On these occasions he was sure to be right : and, notwithstand- ing his assertions to the contrary. I was by this, and other minute circumstances, ted to imagine that his whole nervous system shared something of the per- cipient faculty which more peculiarly manifested itself in the forehead. His own account of this was, that h< i received perceptions through the motions of a fluid, which was conducted by the brain generally, but was transmitted with the greatest facility through the orbits of the eyes and the region immediately above them. 1 ; the ball of the eye had no share in the production of i neiic vision, but that the impression was made direct upon the brain ; moreover, thai the sensations caused in him by the motions of the fluid resembled those excited by light. When cards, &c, were held behind his head, he rarely distinguished the whole object at once ; but (as in the case of a card, for instance) he would first name the suit and color, then count the pips one by one, and, finally, name the whole card. When questioned (not by myself, but by a person who took interest in my experiments) why he did not tell the object at once, he replied, " The light that seems to strike upon it falls partially, and first I see one part of the card, then another." 244 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 9thly. I have been making still larger and larger demands upon the belief of my reader, and now I am about, perhaps, to revolt him altogether ; but, hav- ing once undertaken to give a faithful relation of that which I have witnessed, can I draw back from the accomplishment of my task ? No ; while conscious that I only speak the strictest truth, I am prepared even to have that truth doubted. Time will " bring in its revenges." Remembering that E. A , on his father's tes- timony, had, in natural sleep waking, seemed to per- ceive objects in total darkness, I was curious to ascer- tain whether, in mesmeric sleepwaking, he would manifest a similar phenomenon of sensation. I there- fore, having mesmerised him, took him with me into a dark press or closet, of which I employed a friend to hold to the door, in such a manner as that no ray of light should penetrate through crevice or keyhole. Then, like the hero of " The Curse of Kehama," " I opened my eyes, and 1 closed them, And the blackness and blank were the same." My utmost efforts to see my hand only produced those sparks and flashes which waver before the eye in complete obscurity. Having thus ascertained the perfect darkness of the closet, I drew a card at hazard, from a pack with which I had provided myself, and presented it to the sleepwaker. He said it was so and so. I repeated this to my friend, whom I then told to open the door. The admission of light es- tablished the correctness of the sleepwaker : it was the card he had named. The experiment repeated MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. 245 four times gave the same satisfactory result. This peculiar development of vision was, like the other faculties of the sleepwaker, capable of improvement through exercise. At first, he seemed unable to read in the dark ; then, like a person learning the alphabet, he came to distinguish large single letters, which I had printed for him on card ; and at length he could make out whole sentences of even small print. While thus engaged in deciphering letters, or in ascertaining cards, the patient always held one of my hands, and sometimes laid it on his brow, affirming that it in- creased his clctir-voycince. He would also beg me to breathe upon the objects which lie desired to see. He used to declare that, the more complete the dark- ness was, the better he could exercise his new mode of perception : asserting that, when in the dark, he did not come to the knowledge of objects in the same manner as when he was in the light : " Quand je suis dans robseurite." he -aid, (C il ya une lumiere qui sort de mon oerveau, et qui tappe justement sur l'objet ; tandis que, dans la lumiere, l'impression monte depuis l'objet jusqu' a mon cerveau." Often, when I could not see a ray of light, he used to complain that the closet was not dark enough, and, in order to thicken the obscurity, he would wrap up his head in a dressing gown which hung in the closet. At other times he would thrust his head into the re- motest corner of the press. His perception of colors, when exercised in obscurity, sustained but little alteration. He has named correctly the different tints of a set of colored glasses. It was, however, worthy of remark that he w T as apt to mistake between 21* 246 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. the harmonic colors, green and red. not only when he was in the dark, but when his eyes were ban- daged. Many persons can bear testimony to the accuracy of the above experiments ; and I refer to the Appen- dix for proofs that I sought for witnesses and invited scrutiny, feeling that such things as I had to narrate could scarcely be credited on the word of a single person. Desirous of neither exaggerating nor detracting from the powers of mesmeric vision, I subjoin a few general remarks upon what I observed of its devel- opment in the case of E. A , begging the reader at the same time to remark the coincidence between the feelings of this sleepw T aker and of Mademoiselle M . Like the latter, he declared that he was not always " i ' the vein " to exercise his faculty, and that it was a power which came and went. He would sometimes say to me, " Do not think that I can always see a thing when I desire it ; on the contrary, the more I wish the less I can do." In conformity with this, I observed that he always did things best when summoned to them without preparation, without any idea of difficulty being raised in his mind. It was also evident that he did not like being experimented upon, and hence I was obliged to use a little manage- ment with him, in order to make it appear that he w r as acting without constraint. Very often it hap- pened that he would seem stupid, and unable to per- ceive a single thing, when, all at once, the power would, as it were, descend upon him ; and he would suddenly read a whole page from a book, or tell live MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 247 or six cards running. In the latter case he was not accustomed to name the cards separately, as he looked at them, but afterwards, from memory. The first time he did this, I thought he did not know the cards. I showed him one, and he said, without telling what it was. •• Now show me another/' This also was put aside, and so on to five ; when suddenly, to my no small astonishment, he repeated from memory the Whole live, correctly in their order. This was one of his sell-originated eapriees. Another was, that he would occasionally refuse to tell a card which he, however, manifestly knew. That he did so I discov- ered in the following manner : — He had refused to tell a card. Baying, " I know it. however." " Indeed/' I re- plied, " 1 doubt that." M Well)" he said, " ask me what the card is. afl BOOB BE 1 awake. Impress on my mind that I am to remember it then, and I promise you then to tell it you."' He kept his word exactly. It is not to be supposed, however, but that, by exercising my influence over the will of the sleepwaker, I could at any time compel him to execute whatever was in the compass of his ability ; but I preferred allowing his mesmeric character to develope itself sponta- neously. By pursuing a similar course with all my sleepwakers, I was enabled to ascertain that the mes- meric state, though broadly marked, has, in addition to its striking and invariable characteristics, slight shades of difference which individualize it in the individual cases. These generally consist in some little caprice, or, rather, odd development of sensi- tiveness. For instance, E. A could never endure spades amongst the cards I show r ed him, and Theo- 248 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING, dore's sister shuddered and showed marked dislike if wadding were presented to her, even in a box. I have also remarked that sleepw r akers, when once disturbed by the presence of objects that influence them disagreeably, become indisposed to a further exertion of their faculties. Any thing like a doubt of their sincerity will also distress them exceedingly, and obstruct the exercise of their powers. Moreover, they display extraordinary penetration in discovering which of the persons around them entertain feelings of incredulity or suspicion ; and, should they have to encounter a large amount of unbelief and hostility to mesmerism, they will become reserved and irritable, and will fail in everything they undertake. Thus I have known E. A , after having told a card held behind a book, seem quite incapable of repeating the effort, from the moment that a certain person, who was sceptical about mesmerism, entered the apart- ment. I found, too, that the sensibility of the sleep- waker might be exhausted by a multiplicity of exper- iments, or their too rapid repetition. Sometimes, after having named many objects correctly, he would begin to make mistakes, and evidently to guess instead of to perceive. At other moments, he would push impatiently away from him the cards, books, &c, that were presented to him, and exclaim, " Maintenant je ne puis plus." Again, when allowed to remain quiet for awhile, he would recover his clair-voyance. in the same manner that the nervous energy of persons in the normal state, when impaired through over-excite- ment, returns to its pristine functions after an inter- val of repose. That my own state of mind, or body. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 249 or both, influenced the sleepwaker, it was impossible to doubt. Nor can this seem surprising, when it is considered that I was the depository and the dis- penser of the agency which threw the patient into the condition of clair-voyance. I observed that on days when my thoughts were pre-occupied, or my health a little out of order, E. A , in the mes- meric state, was dull, spiritless, and disinclined to exertion. The variations of the atmosphere seemed also to affect him. In dry clear weather his mes- meric faculties were best developed ; on damp misty days they were less alert; and when thunder storms wen passing they were singularly disordered. Mes- meric passes, renewed at intervals during the period of sleepwaking, were, under all circumstances, favor- able to the improvement or the maintaining of the patient's clair-voyana . It is absolutely essential that the experimentalist in mesmerism should be acquainted with particulars such as the above, and should inform himself of all the conditions under which mesmeric sleepwaking is either promoted or impeded. This has been too much forgotten. Many failures, which have stamped mesmerism as an imposition, may be attributed, I am convinced, to the action of disturbing causes, or the absence of those circumstances which are requisite to insure success. That this has not been acknowledged on all hands is, perhaps, as much the fault of mes- merisers themselves as of their opponents. The for- mer, proud of the faculties of their patients, do not like to admit that these faculties are variable and lia- ble to a number of restrictions. They therefore fail to 250 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. forewarn those whom they invite to witness their proceedings that the whole exhibition may chance to be a failure, and that the clair-voyant of to-day may be nothing remarkable to-morrow. What is the con- sequence of this mistaken disingenuousness ? Even they, who, if duly advertised of the true state of things, would be the first to acquiesce in the necessi- ties of the case, are revolted by finding a discre- pancy between the performance and the promise — the fact and their expectation of the fact. Mesme- risers, then, cannot be too careful in stating all the drawbacks to their success ; and, at the same time, every person should, in all fairness, concede to mes- meric experiments the same privilege which is ac- corded to all others, namely, a precognition of those causes which may render them difficult or impossible to be repeated. At present, it may be safely asserted that never was any subject capable of physical ex- periment submitted to such unjust requisitions as that of mesmerism. It has been expected to give the same results at all times and under all circumstances. The truth, however, is that mesmeric sleepwaking does not only present different degrees in different persons, but in the same. The patient may at one time be mesmerised, but not to clair-voijance ; at another he may display the most admirable faculties of the mesmeric state. Having ascertained, in this and the previous case, that persons under the mesmeric conditions could exercise a faculty analogous to sight, without the intervention of the ordinary apparatus of vision. I was desirous still further to inquire how far the optic MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 251 nerve played a part in this development of the sen- tient powers. In order to solve this question, it ap- peared to me essential to mesmerise a person in whom the optic nerves were inefficient or destroyed. Should such a person be found to see in the mesmeric state, it would thenceforth be evident that man might pos- sibly, in certain states, exhibit a perception of objects of sight which could have nothing in common with the system of ordinary vision. Soon after the idea had arisen in my mind, acci- cident threw in my way a lad of nineteen years of age, a Swiss peasant, who for three years had nearly lost the faculty of sight. His eyea betrayed but little appearance of disorder: and the gradual decay of vision which he had experienced was attributed to a paralysis of the optic nerve, resulting from a scrofu- lous tendency in the constitution of the patient. The bow whom I shall call by his christian name of Johann, was intelligent, mild-tempered, extremely sincere, and extremely unimaginative. He had never heard of mesmerism till I spoke of it before him, and I then only so far enlightened him on the subject as to tell him that it was something which might, per- haps, benefit his sight. At first he betrayed some little reluctance to submit himself to experiment, asking me if I were going to perform some very painful operation upon him ; but, when he found that the whole affair consisted in sitting quiet, and letting me hold his hands, he no longer felt any ap- prehension. Before beginning to mesmerise, I ascertained with as much precision as possible, the patient's degree of 252 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. blindness. I found that he yet could see enough to perceive any large obstacle that stood in his way. If a person came directly before him, he was aware of the circumstance, but he could not at all distin- guish whether the individual were man or woman. I even put this to the proof. A lady of our society stood before him, and he addressed her as " mein herr" (sir). In bright sunshine, he could see a white object, or the color scarlet, when in a con- siderable mass, but made mistakes as to the other colors. Between small objects he could not at all discriminate. I held before him successively a book, a box, and a bunch of keys, and he could not dis- tinguish between them. In each case he saw some- thing, he said, like a shadow, but he could not tell what. He could not read one letter of the largest print by means of eyesight ; but he was very adroit in reading by touch, in books prepared expressly for the blind, running his fingers over the raised characters with great rapidity, and thus acquiring a perception of them. Whatever trifling degree of vision he possessed could only be exercised on very near objects : those which were at a distance from him he perceived not all. I ascertained that he could not see a cottage at the end of our garden, not more than a hundred yards off from where we were standing. These points being satisfactorily proved, I placed my patient in the proper position, and began to mes- merise. Five minutes had scarcely elapsed when I found that I produced a manifest effect upon the boy. He began to shiver at regular intervals, as if MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 253 affected by a succession of slight electric shocks. By degrees this tremor subsided, the patient's eyes gradually closed, and in about a quarter of an hour he replied to an inquiry on my part, " Ich schlaffe, aber nicht ganz tief." (I sleep, but not soundly.) Upon this I endeavored to deepen the patient's slum- ber by the mesmeric passes, when suddenly he ex- claimed, his eyes being closed all the time, " I see ! — I see your hand ! I see your head." In order to put this to the proof, I held my head in various positions, which he followed with his finger : again, he told me accurately whether my hand was shut or open. " But," he said, on being further questioned, " I do not see distinctly. I see, as it were, sunbeams (sonnen strahlen) which dazzle me." " Do you think," I asked, " that mesmerism will do you good ? " " Ja freilich" (yes certainly) he replied: " repeated often enough it would cure me of my blindness." Afraid of fatiguing my patient, I did not trouble him with experiments ; and, his one o'clock dinner being ready for him, I dispersed his magnetic sleep. After he had dined I took him into the garden. As we were passing before some beehives he suddenly stopped, and seemed to look earnestly at them : — " What is it you see ?" I asked. " A row of bee- hives," he replied directly, and continued, " Oh ! this is wonderful ! I have not seen such things for three years." Of course I was extremely surprised ; for, though I had imagined that a long course of mes- merisation might benefit the boy, I was entirely un- prepared for so rapid an improvement in his vision. My chief object had been to develop the faculty of 22 254 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. ^ sight in sleepwaking ; and I can assure my readers that this increase of visual power in the natural state was to me a kind of miracle., as astonishing as it was unsought. My poor patient was in a state of abso- lute enchantment. He grinned from ear to ear, and called out, " Das ist prachtig I" (That is charming.) Two ladies now passed before us, when he said, " Da sind zwei frauenzimmer 1" (There go two ladies.) " How dressed ?" I asked. " Their clothes are of a dark color," he replied. This was true. I took my patient to a summer-house that commanded an ex- tensive prospect. I fear almost to state it, but, never- theless, it is perfectly true, that he saw and pointed out the situation of a village in the valley below us. I now brought Johann back to the house, when, in the presence of several members of my family, he recognized, at first sight, several small objects, (a flower-pot, I remember, amongst other things,) and not only saw a little girl, one of our farmer's children, sitting on the steps of a door, but also mentioned that she had a round cap on her head. In the house I showed Johann a book, which it will be remembered he could not distinguish before mesmerisation, and he named the object. But, though making great efforts, he could not read one letter in the book. Having ascertained this, I once more threw Johann into the mesmeric state, with a view to discovering how far a second mesmerisation would strengthen his natural evesight. As soon as I had awaked him. at the interval of half an hour, I presented him witli the same book, (one of Marryatt's novels.) when he ac- curately told me the larger letters of the title-page. MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. 255 which were as follow : — c; : Outward Bound." Jo- hann, belonging to an institution of the blind, sit- uated at some distance from our residence, I had, unhappily, only the opportunity of mesmerising him three times subsequently to the above successful trial. The establishment, also, of which he was a member, changed masters ; and, its new director having prejudices on the score of mesmerism, there were difficulties purposely thrown in the way of my following up that which I had so auspiciously begun. The following is the general result of my after experiments : — On first passing into the mesmeric state, Johann always spoke of a Kind of internal light, which he compared to sunbeam-, riiffnaing itself over the »n of the forehead. Whenever I pointed the tip- of my fingers towards his closed eyes, at the distance of about two inches, with a quick darting motion, he had the sensation of a flashing light, and sparks of fire passing, as it were, before him. Beiqg led up, accidentally, to a large mirror, when in sleepwaking, he called out that In 4 saw " eine grosse klarheit." (A great clearness.) Nevertheless, the mirror was in the shade. After this. I conducted him to a idas< door that led into the garden, through which the light of day Was shining brightly, but he made no remark ; and. on being questioned, declared that he was not sensible of any peculiar light. Again taken up to the mirror, he again said that he saw before him much light and clearness. By whatever 256 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. route I led him up to the looking-glass, he was always aware when he came before it, though his eyes were perfectly closed. Occasionally I presented the points of my fingers to the mirror, in the same manner as to his forehead, in order to ascertain whether he would perceive any thing like reflected sparks, but the experiment did not succeed. Music seemed to have a pleasing effect upon him when in the mesmeric state ; and the sound of my voice always palpably increased the depth of his slumber. On first awaking from mesmeric erleepwaking, the patient's powers of vision were always stronger than at any other time ; but, in addition to this temporary benefit, there was a gradual bettering of \n< eye* sight, which, though less striking, was more valuable from its permanence. Bveti the external appearance of his eyes was improved, in the course of mes- merism, to a degree which attracted the notice, and excited the wonder, of the master of the institution to which Johann belonged. On one occasion, being rather indisposed. 1 found that I could not influence Johann so forcibly as usual ; so that, after long mesmerisation. I had only brought him as far as an imperfect sleep, in which he retained his consciousness. Having met with an account of Dr. Elliotson's experiments, by which it is proved that the mesmeric agency is capable of in- crease by means of other individuals cooperating with the mesmeriser ; having also experienced the truth of this when mesmerising the little sister of MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. 257 Mademoiselle M , conjointly with herself; I requested a friend, who was present, to aid me, by motions of the hand, in deepening the patient's slum- ber. Each of US held a hand of Johann, and each of us manipulated with the hand that remained at lib- erty. The effect was very remarkable. In a short time the patient passed into complete sleepwaking ; but that there was a remission of the mesmeric in- fluence, whenever m\ fir/end oeased to be in contact with me. was proved by this; Johann's head did not then follow my hand so readily ; and, at such moments, when questioned, he said that he did not deep bo profoundly. Hie patient being still uncon- scious, 1. being always in contact with him, drank half a glass <>t sherry, when he exclaimed, sponta- neously, "Das ist wolil stark. Das steigt mir im kopt." (That i- \< t\ strong. It mounts into my head.) The last tune that I mesmerised Johann was in the evening, by candle, or. rather, lam)) light. On this occasion lie manifested an extraordinary increase in mesmeric cktir-voyance, giving proofs that he had sensations, analogous to sight, erf a fir stronger nature than those which his visual organs could afford him in the waking state W it 1 1 ease he indicated the relative positions of the party present, consisting of three persons besides myself; and. though the seve- ral individuals often and silently exchanged places, he continued to show that he was acquainted with the exact situation of each. Occasionally Ik.' would remark, and always with perfect correctness, that a lady was smiling and pointing her finger at him. 23 258 MESMERIC SLEEP WAKING. Three dahlias, which were respectively of a bright scarlet, deep crimson, and yellow color, were held before his closed eyelids. He discriminated between them with singular accuracy, saying, a Das ist feuer- roth, das ist dunkel-roth, und das ist gelb." He also distinguished a large leaf, which was held before him, to be green. The lady above alluded to handed me a nosegay, directing me, in English, what to do with it. Agree- ably to her request, I gave the nosegay, consisting of red geranium, white stock, and other flowers, to Johann, telling him that he must select some of the red flowers to give to the lady. He instantly and accurately separated the geranium from the other flowers : " and now," I said, " you must add some of the white to your boquet." This he also did with equal readiness. Again, he told the letters, B. M, and O, which I wrote in a large printing hand on pieces of card and held before his closed lids. When led before the mirror, which was then in deep shade, being at the farther end of an apartment forty feet in length and lighted only by a single lamp, he, as usual, expressed his perception of " etwas hell und heiter " (something clear and bright) ; but, when brought close up to the lamp, he made no observation of the kind. Again I took him to a glass over the chimney-piece, on which the light of the lamp fell strongly, when he cried out, " viel licht, viel licht ! " (Much light, much light !) While the patient was still in the mesmeric state, tea was brought in. I ate some dry toast, while holding Johann's hand. He imitated the movements of mas- MESMERIC SLEEPWAKIXG. 259 tication ; and on being asked what he tasted, replied, " Bread of some kind/' Upon this one of the party present, without speaking, gave me quickly a piece of sugar, signing me to substitute it for the toast. This I did. and the sound which I made in eating was not perceptibly changed, yet Johann instantly and spontaneously exclaimed, " I taste something sweet.' 3 I here close the proofs which I have to ofler, that the perfect mesmeric sleepwaker does indeed possess a faculty of perception apart from the mere external mechanism of the senses. The means which I have been led to take, in order to convince myself of this fact, have, besides conducing to the end which 1 had in view, been productive of other results, which some persons maj deem more important to the welfare of humanity than any discovery of new mode- ot sensa- tion or of extraordinary developments of vision. I have established beyond a doubt, that the action of mesmerism is highly remedial in affections of that precious organ whereby we enjoy M Or sight of vernal bloom, or summer's rose, Or flocks, or herds, or human face divine. " Not only as regards Johann have I proved this, but also in the case of E. A . who. when I first began to mesmerise him. suffered so much from a weakness in his i yes thai he could neither see to read nor write by candlelight At first, indeed, before I became fully aware of the efficacy of mesmerism as a remedy, E. A , by my advice, occasionally used a lotion of rose-water for his eyes : but in sleepwak- 260 MESMERIC SLEEPWAKING. ing he declared that mesmerism would cure him without the employment of any additional means. The lotion, therefore, was discontinued, almost in the beginning of the mesmeric treatment ; and, under the beneficial influence of mesmerism alone, the pa- tient not only recovered the healthy action of his sight, but, before he left me, attained to the enjoy- ment of a remarkable strength of vision. Again, I once mesmerised another boy, nearly blind, belonging to the same institution of which Jo- hann was a member. After about a quarter of an hour's mesmerisation, he fell into a profound sleep, which lasted for nearly four hours. Though the patient gave no other token of being mesmerically affected, his sleep was evidently the result of mes- meric action, for neither calling to him nor shaking him could dispel it ; and he walked without awaking from a chair to a sofa, where he remained till he awoke. This sleep was followed by an improvement in his powers of vision ; and, when I saw him at the institution some time afterwards, he told me that the benefit had been lasting, for that he then saw better than before I had mesmerised him, adding that he much wished I could be permitted to mesmerise him again. These are facts which can scarcely be regarded with indifference, even by those who will not see in mesmerism a promise that transcends this life and the purposes of our present organization. BOOK III. SECTION I. CONFORMITY OF MESMERI&M WITH OUR GENERAL EX- PERIENCE. Hating now described the state of mesmeric sleep- waking and its accompanying manifestations, I am desirous of elucidating it by such reasonings as may prepare the minds of men to receive this peculiar phasis of our nature as a confirmed fact; not as an insulated phenomenon: — ad a link in the eternal chain of things, not as an interruption to the universal order. With this end in view, it is necessary to in- quire under what conditions men believe that they comprehend any thing whatever ; and, this being ascertained, it is clear that we must endeavor to place under those conditions the object we'wish to explain, and to adapt our arguments thereupon to the dispo- sition of the listener's mind. Attaching something mysterious to tin 1 idea of causes in general, and to all that relates to the explanation of unusual circum- stances, we are too apt to forget that causes are them- selves but facts, and that to explain is only to make the unknown clear by a reference to that which we already know. But, if we rightly consider the springs 262 CONFORMITY OF MESMERISM whence arises our seeming comprehension of any subject, we shall find that they all reduce themselves to three very natural and intelligible sources, namely, traditional faith — personal experience — and an idea of adequate power. For, I ask, when is it that we rest contented with our knowledge of a fact ? Undeniably, then, 1st. When we have accepted it, as a received truth, from infancy. 2dly. When we have felt it in our own persons. 3dly. When we imagine that we can refer it to an adequate cause. For, as to the first condition of our belief, let us consider what a multitude of things we trust in merely because we have heard them from our nurse's lips, and though, these things should be mere errors, we still find that to tear them from the hold they have upon our minds is always difficult — often impossible. In such a case, we do not reason upon our notions ; — we do not strive to render them more clear ; — we are indifferent about mounting to their source ; — we rest in them with simple confidence. The very religion of many persons reposes upon such a basis, and this, relating as it does to our highest interests, may serve as an instance of the power of early asso- ciation and of the traditional credence upon which I am insisting. Secondly ; it is no less evident that we accept, on the testimony of our personal experience, whatever we find assimilated thereunto. No one dreams of doubting that other men may sleep, eat, walk, or write. The force of this principle may be gathered WITH OUR GENERAL EXPERIENCE. 263 from the strength of its antagonist feeling. We have an actual repugnance to credit that which we have not felt ourselves. To give an example of this. There is a singular state of mind, which is known to some, and which has been adverted to by various poets, (as, for instance, Coleridge) — u Which makes the present, while the flash doth last, Seem but the semblance of an unknown past," when, according to Tennyson's more particular de- scription of this mental phenomenon, — " We ebb into a former life, or seem To lapse far back in a confused dream, To states of mystical similitude. If one but speaks, or hems, or stirs his chair, Ever the iroader mxeth more and more ; Bo that ire >ay — 4 All this hath been before ' — All this hath been, I know not when, or where." Now let any one, who has experienced this per- plexing reference to events which he seems to have rehearsed in some prior state of existence, speak of the feeling to another who is wholly ignorant of it. The latter will very likely exclaim, as a friend of mine to whom I described this mood of mind actu- ally did exclaim. — "Had I ever felt any thing like what you mention, 1 should think myself lit for Bed- lam." On the other hand. he. who knows the sensation and can sympathize with it, will listen to a similar statement without surprise, and will probably say — " I can well believe this, for I have felt it myself." A more common instance of this incredulity re- 264 CONFORMITY OF MESMERISM specting all that lies beyond our own experience, is our reluctance to believe that pains, which we have never known, can really be as acute as they are re- presented to us. u He jests at scars, who never felt a wound,' 5 and he, who has been always free from the toothach, will almost laugh at a friend under a paroxysm of that torment ; not because he is hard- hearted, but because he cannot conceive the matter deeply enough to be serious. There is an actual inherent propensity in human nature to make personal knowledge the measure of truth, so strong as to incline us to believe any thing that has reference even to our prior experience. I have read somewhere of an old woman whose son, returning from foreign parts, related fo her the won- ders he had seen. He spoke of flying fish, and of a burning mountain ; but the cautious mother cried out, " No, no, Jack ! I know what traveler's tales are ! That I'll never believe ! " At last, after many similar truths rejected, the sailor, in despair, hatched a lie, and said, " In Jamaica I saw sugar growing on trees, and rivers of rum." " Ay, ay, child," ex- claimed the beldam, " Now you speak sense. That I'll well believe, for I know that rum and sugar come from Jamaica ! " Now, in mesmerism, it is just thus. There is much rejected that accords not with the previous experience of persons, yet perhaps every one has his rum and sugar reservation — some greater marvel than those which he refuses to credit. After all, it is not the marvellousness of mesmerism that shocks ; it is only its discrepancy with each individ- ual's experience or figment of the brain. WITH OUR GENERAL EXPERIENCE. 265 In the third place, we need reflect but little in order to perceive that we rest contented with our knowledge of events so long as the idea of an adequate cause for them is present to our minds. Yet this tendency of our nature to refer events not only to a cause, but to an adequate cause, has not been sufficiently distinguished from the simple pro- pensity (also inherent in our intellectual structure), which inclines us. when we see an effect with which we are familiar, to suppose that its usual antecedent either is, or has been, also, present ; for we are not only inclined to take things in connection, and to view the relationship between them, but likewise to account for the phenomena we behold by tracing them to their primary and efficient impulses. When we fail to ascribe an event to an adequate agency, wfe art troubled and discontented, and a restless idea of the supernatural (here truest) haunts and agitates us: on the other hand, whenever we deem that we can assign a sufficient cause to an appearance, however startling and unusual, we are satisfied, and seek to know no further. For this reason, they, who are in the habit of overlooking all the intermediate processes of nature, and w r ho resolve every thing at once into the power of God, enjoy a pleasure distinct from the merely pious one of attributing every thing to one beneficent Creator. They rest in a sufficient cause ; they are tormented by no importunate questionings of spirit ; their answer to every enigma of the universe is ever ready. They who are not of this happy, but (it may be suspected) indolent frame of mind, and who, at the same time, have not knowledge sufficient to ascend, 23 266 CONFORMITY OF MESMERISM surely and gradually, the steps of nature's temple, are actually forced into an irregular flight upwards, and, rather than ascribe perplexing appearances to an inadequate cause, will attribute them to an unknown and mysterious one (the inadequacy of which cannot be put to the proof at least), to some cloud-born agency, which flatters their imagination with a sense of power. Hence, where gross ignorance prevails, superstition, with all its notions of demoniac influences, takes its rise ; hence, in darker ages, the learned have been deemed wizards, and the man of science has been supposed to have signed a contract with Satan. Hence, even in our own day, some, whose minds are in arrear with time, will attribute the whole of mes- meric agencies to the machinations of the evil one, being unaware how much they are influenced in their judgment by the propensity we all have to cut a knot when we cannot untie it. But, after all, the fondness of some persons for diabolic agency is not a little surprising and unaccountable. For my own part I had always rather rest in God than in the devil. Observe we, too, that many a person will deem him- self vastly enlightened by a fine word, and that hence knowledge is too often turned into a few high-sounding phrases. Wherefore is this ? A pompous term may stand as the representative of an efficient force ; and, in the case where the event to be accounted for ap- pears very wondrous, the alleged cause always pleases the ignorant better, the more incomprehensibly it is expressed. But, where phenomena come, or seem to come, nearer the level of our experience, then we are apt to explain them by some familiar force, which, WITH OUR GENERAL EXPERIENCE. 267 however, may have as little to do with them as any cause with which we are entirely unacquainted. This, however, is hard to be perceived, for. whatever we know and have proved to be capable of effecting some- thing, we are inclined to exalt into a power and to force into offices alien to its sphere of operation. For instance, every man has felt that the frequent repeti- tion of any action increases the tendency to it. This phenomenon of our nature we personify under the name of Habit, and recognise the potency of its influ- ence, binding us, as the Lilliputians did Gulliver, not by the individual strength, but by the number, of ils subtle bands. Again, when one part of our bodies i> deranged, another often partakes in the affection, or. ;i- we express it, suffers bj sympathy. Sympathy, then, must be accounted as a power, explanatory of man] mysteries of our being; so must association — so must imitation, and a host of other shadowy im- personations, which are but names for certain mental or bodily States. To words like these, when hard pushed for nn explanation of any thing, we can resort with much complacency; not that, after having done so, we understand the 4 matter one whit better than before 1 , but we have referred it to a principle with which we are in part acquainted, and which, deeming it the efficient cause of some things, we suppose may also produce the one in question. These strivings after adequate causation I consider to be the upward and inevitable tendency of mind to its sources of reason, teaching us by internal admo- nitions that all phenomena whatever emanate from thought ; but, as I shall have occasion hereafter to 263 CONFORMITY OF MESMERISM make some remarks on power, and whence our notion of it is derived, I will, at present, advance no deeper into this subject, having, I trust, said enough to show that we rest satisfied with our knowledge of events in proportion as we think that we can refer them to an adequate cause ; and that consequently the surest means to obtain general credence for any fact is to exhibit it in connection with a cause which shall at once be perceived adequate to its production. Applying the above reflections to mesmerism and its phenomena, we cannot but perceive that of the three great sources of human conviction which we have been considering, — namely, traditional faith, personal experience, and adequate agency, — there is not one which has been called into play in a manner favorable to our subject. Whatever may be the case on the Continent, it will be admitted that in England the present generation have been educated in a profound contempt and dis- belief of mesmerism. Thus from traditional faith it receives no support, but the contrary ; for the lessons of our childhood have raised a barrier between it and us, the strength of which no one can have felt more forcibly than myself. From personal experience mesmerism is not less removed ; and it must be confessed that writers on the subject, in general, have not contributed to bring it nearer to the home-felt conviction of mankind. Too often have they endeavored to illustrate it by a reference to marvels as far distant from personal ex- perience as itself. In its behalf, ancient chronicles have been ransacked ; classical authorities have been WITH OUR GENERAL EXPERIENCE. 269 marshalled in formidable array ; the tomb has given up its vampires, and Egyptian mysteries have been dragged to light, — for what purpose ? Mesmerism is not at all rendered more credible by being bol- stered up by histories which themselves are doubtful ; nor is it explained (ignotwn per ignotius) by means of phenomena that surpass human comprehension. In the third place, it appears tome that mesmerism has not been viewed in connection with an adequate cause, since, as I have elsewhere observed, men of science would refer it, with all its intellectual pheno- mena, to a simply physical agency ; while men of imagination would force even its physical affections into the domain of pare spiritualism. It should then be the object of a writer on mes- merism to supply his subject with those advantages of which concurring circumstances have tended to deprive it. Others, 1 feel confident, will effect far more than I can in this cause ; yet I trust I shall not be deemed presumptuous in bringing forward some considerations which have offered themselves to my mind, tending to approximate at least the new condition of man to those grounds of credibility on which I have shown our quiet possession of truths in general to repose. Of the three claims to confidence, wherein mes- merism is deficient, the hardest to supply is undoubt- edly that of early association. Vet even here it may be urged that we have all. from childhood, supposed natural sleepwaking to be an undoubted phenomenon of man's constitution. There are many, perhaps, who remember to have heard tell of some sleepwalker, S3* 270 CONFORMITY OF MESMERISM whose feats have been the wonder of their native village, who has been known to rise from his bed, and to display, in slumber, even more than his ordi- nary activity, crossing, it may be, some perilous ford, or balancing himself on the edge of a precipice, where the waking eye would sicken and the conscious brain would reel. Who does not believe in the existence of such a state ? Doctors have descanted upon it with the precision of medical lore ; metaphysicians have examined it as a curious feature of humanity ; and the light and gay, regarding it as a mere matter of amusement, have flocked to see its mimicry in dramatic representation, enhanced by all the charms of music and the fascinations of genius. Nay, in the higher departments of scenic art, it has illustrated one of the sublimest creations of the poetic mind : — r I allude, of course, to the tragedy of Macbeth, in which Shakspeare, who painted every shade and va- riety of our nature, has not left untouched this its most peculiar and interesting development. In brief, it is one of the truths which cannot be torn from the texture of our minds, or erased from the book and volume of the brain. This being the case, is there any good reason why we should exclude from our belief so similar a state of man as is mesmeric sleepwaking ; — or, rather, is not our conduct, on this occasion, the most striking proof of the really inefficient grounds on which the greater part of mankind believe or disbelieve any thing? How greatly we are inconsistent with our- selves ! We hear, without one feeling of doubt, tales of sleepwaking, quite as wonderful as the following WITH OUR GENERAL EXPERIENCE. 271 account of Lady Macbeth' s sleepwaking : — "I have seen her rise from her bed, throw her night-gown upon her, unlock her closet, take forth paper, fold it, write upon it, read it, afterwards seal it, and again return to bed ; — yet, all this while, in a most fast sleep ;" — but, should the very same things be stated respecting a person under mesmerism, the name seems suddenly to make all the difference : we no longer believe ; we cry out that it is all an imposture ; — our whole being is in a state of hostility and agita- tion. Is this wise ? Is this in accord with human dignity of thought ? I would more particularly ask medical men whether they have not been accustomed to regard as true not only certain phenomena of nat- ural sleepwaking, to the full afl wonderful as any which mesmerism presents, but also of catalepsy — a state under which the most extraordinary develop- ments of nervous sensibility may take place ; and I would then nige them to examine well the real causes of their denying in one case what they accede to in another. Also I would inquire, with what patience they who have attended, in a medical capacity, many an unfortunate wretch dying of hydrophobia, can listen to the prabble of a man who contends that hu- man nature is liable to no such affliction, merely be- cause he has heard from childhood the fact spoken of as doubtful ? If no good answer can be given to these questions, surely a reasonable being may suspect that there is some great error at the root of all these dis- crepancies and contradictions in feeling and belief; and it may be contended that, if we accept traditional faith as the ground of our confidence in certain par- 272 CONFORMITY OF MESMERISM ticulars, we must retain it still as corroborative of the same particulars, whatever change in their nomencla- ture may occur. In truth, when we demand acceptance for many of the phenomena of mesmerism, we only require a sacrifice of men's prejudices, and not a dereliction from their ancient principles of belief. The mention of natural sleepwaking leads us al- most insensibly into realms that border closely upon those of personal experience. There are few of us probably who have not, in early years, had some touch of this malady, so incident to childhood, or, at least, so far beheld its effects in a brother, sister, or young relative, as to be convinced that persons may, being all the time asleep, perform many of the actions of their waking hours, and answer short questions, either rationally or with a certain ingenuity. Many also have perhaps had the opportunity of hearing stories relative to sleepwaking from the lips of the parties actually concerned in them. At least, I can affirm that, in the course of my own experience, I have met with several persons, who have either been sleepwakers themselves, or have been eye-witnesses of sleepwaking in others. On such individual testi- mony, I present to my reader the following narra- tions, which show at once the connection and the difference between natural and mesmeric sleepwak- ing. Mr. Matthieu, President of the Academy of Paint- ing at Louvain, told me that, not many years since, having an essay to write for what the French call a concours, he was in an anxious state of mind. His WITH OUR GENERAL EXPERIENCE. 273 thoughts did not flow readily, and, after many efforts at composition, he could not produce any thing to please himself. What was his astonishment, one morning, to find upon his table, in his own hand- writing, the beginning of an excellent dissertation upon the subject which had lately occupied him ! He could not doubt that this was the work of his sleeping hours ; — but, curious to ascertain how far his mind would proceed with its train of thought under the same conditions which had originated it, he left the manuscript untouched, until he could in- spect it again after the interval of another night. The result of the experiment showed that he had resinned the pen in sleep, and had continued his composition in a perfectly connected manner. Another gentleman, Mr. Z of Neufchatel, re- lated to me the following instances of his own sleep- waking. When be was about seventeen, his father being dead, the management of an extensive mercan- tile establishment principally devolved upon himself. One day he had transacted a great deal of business, and still there were certain invoices to be written before the departure of some merchandize early on the following morning. Worn out with fatigue, he went to bed, having given orders to be called in time to supply the deficient inventories. At day-break, according to his directions, he was awakened by a servant, and went immediately to his mother (who generally assisted him in his labors), informing her that he was ready to begin the invoices. " What can you mean ? " she exclaimed ; " do not you know that you wrote them last night? and here they are!" — At 274 CONFORMITY OF MESMERISM the same time she placed in his hand the papers pro- perly executed, and in his own handwriting. On inquiry it appeared that Mr. Z , half an hour after he had retired to his room on the preceding evening, had returned, dressed as usual, to his mother's apartment, where he sat down before a writing-table and completed the documents in ques- tion ; Madam Z nothing doubting of his being awake at the time, though, on subsequent reflection, she remembered to have observed something fixed and strange about his eyes (they were open during his sleepwaking), — an appearance which she had attri- buted to her son's fatigue and want of sleep. On another occasion — not more than a few months ago — Mr. Z formed, over-night, an engagement to cross the mountains with a party of friends, who were to call for him early in the morning. This arrangement gave rise to the following curious cir- cumstances, which subsequently were made evident by collating the different particulars of the case. It happened that, on the same night, when Mr. Z was fast asleep in bed, a party of young men, stran- gers to him, stopped under his window accidentally, and, being not very sober, laughed and talked loudly for some time. The noise influencing the sleepwaker, gave him the idea that his friends were come to call him. Under this impression he arose, threw open his window, and addressed the party in familiar terms. The young men, being in an irritable and touchy state, replied to him in no agreeable manner, until a quarrel arose between the sleeping man and the group below, who were in no better possession of WITH OUR GENERAL EXPERIENCE. 275 their mouses than himself. The tumult was only appeased by the watchman dispersing the rioters, and counselling the sleepwaker (not suspected to be such) to return to bed. The next day Mr. Z retained no recollection whatever of the events of the night, and made, as agreed upon, the expedition with his friends. On his return, however, to Neufchatel, two of the gay party, who had been under his window, waited on him. and. to his ufter astonishment, begged him to explain why he had called to them, and, in a manner, insulted them, on such a night. " How could I insult you, when I never saw you before ? " was Mr. Z 's exclamation ; and great was the perplexity of both the parties, until Mr. Z , re- membering his addiction to sleepwaking. suggested an explanation, which every circumstance tended to confirm, Mr. M , also of Neufchatel, has a brother, who is subject to sleepwaking. The following is an amusing specimen of his exploits in that way. Mr. M was on a journey with him, and one night, when they occupied the same apartment, the sleep- waker awoke the former by loud and earnest talking. There was a light in the room, and Mr. M (as he told me) could see his brother standing upright on the edge of his bed, occasionally leaning forward and peering over (though his eyes were shut) with the expression of a man who earnestly gazes after something. " What is the matter with you, John ? " asked Mr. M . " Oh," replied John, " take care of your steps, for Heaven's sake ! Do not you see that we are just on the brink of a horrible precipice ? " 276 CONFORMITY OF MESMERISM " Not at all," rejoined Mr. M ; " you are under a delusion, and I pray you to calm yourself!" — " What ! " said the sleepwaker, " you say there is no precipice ? I '11 throw a great stone down to prove it to you. — There!" he cried, snatching off his night-cap, and flinging it on the floor, — " there it goes ! — and what an awful depth the precipice must be, for the stone makes no noise ! " Such facts as the abftve will perhaps be credited — just because they are not headed " Mesmerism." They are at least sufficient to show that many of the features of mesmeric sleepwaking have precedents which are to be met with in acknowledged pheno- mena common to man. These, however, rest rather on personal evidence than on personal experience. The sleepwaker, when once awake, does not remem- ber the occurrences or the sensations of his sleep- waking, and the spectator who bears testimony to his actions is a stranger to their inward sources. I would, however, give mesmerism a stronger hold upon human conviction than can be supplied by any external proof. I would introduce it into the very bosom and private feelings of each individual, by showing that parts of it, so far from being removed from our daily life, are altogether familiar to us, though under another guise and bearing other names. I would prove this — 1st. As regards the produc- tion of the mesmeric state. 2dly. As regards the state itself. First, then, let us inquire — Are the means by which the mesmeric slumber is produced in any way approximated to our experience ? WITH OUR GENERAL EXPERIENCE. 277 The subsidiary agents, which have been found most efficacious in aiding one person to influence another in the manner called mesmeric, are the eye and the hand. Now, I would ask, who is there that has not felt the influence of the human eye — that window of the soul ? What is there which equally with itself arrests attention, fascinates, fixes, calms, and sub- dues ? Anger is quelled before its steady gaze ; even madness becomes docile beneath its dominion. The late Dr. Willis used to say that by the eye chiefly he controlled his most refractory patients. Acting at once physically and morally, it seems to affect the nervous system in a real and peculiar manner; for brutes, which cannot be supposed to be misled by imagination] arc extremely sensible to the influence of the human eye. Nay. even to certain of the brute creation a remarkable power of eye seems to belong. To say nothing of some doubtful stories respecting the fascination which serpents exercise over weaker creatures, I have seen a bird fluttering before a cat, as if held and bound by her watchful gaze, and so almost constrained to offer itself a voluntary sacrifice to its enemy. When we consider these things we can scarcely marvel that pow r ers even magical have been attrib- uted, by ignorance and superstition, to the wonderful organ of which we are speaking ; nor that diseases, and even death, should have been supposed, in some cases, to have originated in the stroke of an evil eye. Now, be it remembered, that the doctrine of mes- 24 278 CONFORMITY OF MESMERISM merism is that the mesmeriser's force should become predominant over that of his patient ; and mesmeric phenomena do really show, as I have formerly de- monstrated, that the mesmeriser's will sways the patient's volition in a very peculiar manner. The relation between the mesmeriser and the patient is that of activity to passivity. The one is to guide, direct, and influence ; the other is to receive, and to be influenced. The first process, then, of mesmerism may be called a strife between the two forces of mesmeriser and patient. There is a will to be sub- dued, and a body to be brought into subjection ; yet this is to be accomplished in all the tranquillity of a religious silence. What instrument is adequate to such an effect ? Surely we should at once name the eye as the great agent in this strife. By a sort of natural instinct, we do use it, where we wish to pre- vail. The meanest, striving with another, will call the first blenching of his adversary's gaze, — victory. Men of energetic characters and calculated for do- minion have always been remarkable for the potency of their glances, and have been celebrated as not only " Lord of the lion port," but also of " the eagle eye." Few could endure the searching gaze of Na- poleon. The rulers of the domain of intellect have been as famous as the kings of the earth for a keen regard. The glance of Dr. Johnson from under shaggy brows availed no less than the eloquence of the sage's tongue. I remember that Dr. Parr, who was a sort of Johnson in his way, was very proud of his own visual prowess, and I once heard him boast that his eye had saved the nation. WITH OUR GENERAL EXPERIENCE. 279 Pitt, he declared, was about to bring forward some disastrous measure, when he, having previous know- ledge of the statesman's evil intentions, repaired to the House of Commons. " I fixed, sir," said he, " my eye upon Pitt. I gave him one of my looks (every body knows my looks,) and he could not utter a word, sir. He rose, stammered, and sat down again, — and there I kept him off his legs till Fox had taken possession of the ear of the house ; and so the measure, when brought forward, was nugatory. Yes, yes, I think I may say that my eye saved the nation." In fact, we perceive that Dr. Parr mesmerised Pitt. But, jesting apart, I need only refer to my reader's own feelings for a testimony to the all but miracu- lous powers of the human eve. It seems to be life and will made visible ; and, when life is fled, wo may exclaim with the poet — u Oh, o'er the eye Death most exerts his might, And hurls the spirit from her throne of light." If the eye be powerful to influence and to subdue, the human hand is not less remarkable for its sooth- ing properties. We naturally apply our hands to any part of our bodies in which we feel pain, and how often are we sensible of a mitigation in our suffer- ings ! The mother soothes her child to sleep by the application of her hand, and calms it into patience, when it has received an injury, by her gentle touches. A lady, on whose word I can rely, told me that, during a heavy malady, she could gain no sleep except when holding her husband's hand, and that 280 CONFORMITY OF MESMERISM the moment he withdrew it, however gently, she awoke. Similar phenomena, if oftener attended to, might doubtless press upon our remembrance and justify mesmerism by the analogies of common life. Touching for the toothach is a sort of charm that is often resorted to by the vulgar with success ; and in Constantinople, I have been informed, there are men who actually make it their business to cure toothach in this manner. Once it was supposed that a certain insect, being crushed and held to a painful tooth, acted as an anodyne, and learned papers were accordingly written on the virtues of this particular remedy. Unfortunately, however, it was soon dis- covered that the finger which applied the insect was the real depository of the soothing virtue ; for the desired effect took place just as well without the insect as with it. A travelled friend of mine tells me that he has seen a sort of mesmerism exercised by the dancing Dervises of the East upon each other. After whirl- ing round in their mystic and exciting dance, they are apt to fall to the ground in strong convulsions. On such occasions, one of the calmer brethren comes up to the extatic patient, and, by gentle touches of the hand, invariably succeeds in soothing him to repose. That the hand should be an agent in dispensing the human or the mesmeric influence can hardly seem wonderful to those who consider how much the hand is identified with, and distinctive of, man. Considering the perfection of its form, aud the dis- criminative delicacy of its touch, we can almost WITH OUR GENERAL EXPERIENCE. 281 pardon those who have gone so far as to affirm that the hand alone is the efficient cause of our suprema- cy over the brute creation. The tactile nerves, with which it is so abundantly supplied, seem peculiarly to adapt it to the task of transmitting an influence, which, in some mysterious way, yet manifestly, seems to be connected with the nervous and vital forces. In some old systems of physiology each part of the body had its separate spirits : there were the spirits of the knees, the spirits of the feet, dec. Could we adopt so fanciful a notion, w r e should say that the spirits of the hand are particularly potent. After the eye. the fingers seem to enjoy a fuller share of the sentient and motory power than any other pari of the body. Seldom are they at rest — seldom are their functions suspended. The marvels of the painters', sculptors 9 , musicians 3 skill depend upon their agency. Apart from their re- cording powers, the headwork of the poet and phi- losopher would be vain: to them belong all the triumphs of architecture, all the splendid results of industry ; in fine, all the success of all the ingenuity of man. Their free and constant exercise seems more than any thing to betoken life : the baby's clutched hand is a type of its unfolded being. The purposeless action of the same organ is a presage of death: "After I saw him fumble with the sheets," says Hostess Quickly, " and play with flowers, and smile upon his fingers' ends, I knew there was but one way." Shall the general feeling of mankind be in vain appealed to ? If that be true which Shakspeare has 24* 282 CONFORMITY OF MESMERISM affirmed — " One touch of nature makes the whole world kin/ 5 — the influence of the human hand must be universally acknowledged. It has a language of its own ; it can appeal from man to man ; it can bless, and it can curse : the most ancient belief con- nects it with authority and power. The holding up of Moses's hands gave victory to the Israelites. " And it came to pass, when Moses held up his hand, that Israel prevailed ; and, when he let down his hand, Amalek prevailed." ] Gifts of healing, not less than of power, belong to the hand by prescriptive right. If the potency of the royal touch in curing the king's evil be but a super- stition, let us remember that it took its origin from a holy source : Christ and his disciples laid their hands upon the sick, and they were healed. The miracles of our Lord were remarkably accompanied by actions of the hand 2 , as if they were in some manner con- nected with that external means. In restoring sight and hearing, lie touched the ears and eyes of the afflicted persons. Even the imparting of the gift of the Holy Spirit followed the imposition of hands ; and this external ensign of a spiritual agency is still retained in our church. Who that has undergone or witnessed the beautiful rite of confirmation but has felt its power ? The eye and the hand, then, appear to be fitting instruments in transmitting a potential and remedial agency. If we seek for such a general instance of the in- 1 Exod. xvii. 11. 2 See Matt. viii. 15 ; Mark vii. 33, and viii. 95. WITH OUR GENERAL EXPERIENCE. 283 fluence of one human being on another as may seem like that mutual loss and gain and interchange of vital force which is the principal wonder in mesmer- ism, we have only to look at the effects produced when young persons sleep with old. Since the days of King David 1 , it has been known that the latter are strengthened at the expense of the former. Some painful instances of this have fallen under my own observation : one, in which the future well-being of a person very dear to me was compromised ; and I was acquainted with an infirm old lady, who was so aware of the benefit that she derived from sleeping with young persons, that, with a sort of horrid vam- pirism, she always obliged her maid to share her bed: thus successively destroying the health of several attendants.-' Even amongst animals it has been found that the young cannot be too closely associated with the old without suffering detriment. JToung horses, standing in a stable beside old ones, become less healthy. 1 1 Kings, ch. i. 2 The celebrated German physiologist, Ilufeland, has remarked the longevity of school masters, and attributes it to their living so constantly amidst the healthy emanations of young persons. 284 MESMERIC CONSCIOUSNESS, SECTION II. ON THE MESMERIC CONSCIOUSNESS. I now proceed to assimilate the state of mesmeric sleepwaking itself to our intimate personal convic- tions, striving to demonstrate that all its phases and phenomena are only intense degrees of known and even ordinary conditions of man. I would render it not only comprehensible, but familiar — not under- stood merely, but also felt. I have elsewhere remarked that there are, in the mesmeric state, peculiarities of consciousness, of which I postponed the consideration until I could adduce them as explanatory of mesmeric sleepwaking. To this portion of my subject I now turn my attention. But, before proceeding to demonstrate that the pecu- liar conditions of mesmeric consciousness arise from novelty of combination — not of principle, it is ab- solutely essential that I should fix in what sense I use the word consciousness, — a precaution the more necessary on account of the different significations which have been attached to it by various metaphy- sicians ; some making it a distinct faculty of the soul, others a necessary accompaniment of every mental operation and in no way to be distinguished from the operation itself. Examining, however, whence springs this diversity of notion respecting consciousness, we find that all MESMERIC CONSCIOUSNESS. 285 the confusion has arisen from this — Consciousness is susceptible of various developments, which have never been properly distinguished into their several grades ; one person applying the generic term in question to one only of its specific degrees ; another equally restricting it to a different class of its opera- tions. Dr. Thomas Brown, indeed, has some ad- mirable remarks upon the subject, and has well dis- tinguished between the simple consciousness of the moment and remembered consciousness. But he has omitted to observe that there is again a difference between these two actions of consciousness and a third — namely, reflective consciousness, or internal observation. It is true that he once casually observes, " consciousiK gs is only another Dame for internal ob- servation ;" but herein I conceive him to speak with less than his usual accuracy ; for consciousness is not another name for internal observation, but internal observation is our of the operations of consciousness, which, as not identical with its parent, should not be involved with it in one common definition. Sim- ply to feel, or simply to pass again through a suc- cession of former feelings with a sense of their rela- tion to one personal identity, is not the same as to be self-regardant and watchful of our own sensa- tions as they arise Under the last circumstances the mind is manifestly in another state and tone of feeling. Besides, nothing can be clearer than that the mind may act without internal observation, while without simple consciousness it cannot act ; since, as Dr. Brown himself logically observes, u The con- sciousness which we have of our transient thoughts 286 MESMERIC CONSCIOUSNESS. or sensations is nothing more than the thoughts or sensations themselves, which could not be thoughts or sensations if they were not felt." But Dr. Brown errs as much, perhaps, from simplicity, as others from multiplicity, of system. Nothing, indeed, can be more admirable than his view of the mind — not as a bundle of faculties, but as a unity, capable of passing into various consecutive states. But had not this great philosopher been as anxious to reduce all mental phenomena whatever to suggestion, as Locke was to compress the w r orld of intellect into the two faculties of sensation and reflection, I think he would have admitted distinctions which his theory caused him to overlook. Nature, however, will not thus be restricted. She is simple, but her effects are manifold ; and the very necessities of our language demand as distinctive a reference to her various operations, as if the differences were actual, and of kind, instead of degree. Goethe, in his Morphology of Plants, has beautifully shown that all their various parts are but developments of one original principle ; yet what confusion in botany would arise were some naturalists to apply the generic word plant to the leaves, others to the blossoms, of a vegetable ! Yet an absurdity as great as this is committed when we apply the generic term consciousness indiscriminately to all the different manifestations, degrees, and varie- ties of that action of intelligence. The safer plan is to mark difference, where difference can be dis- cerned, and to give distinct names to distinct devel- opments, whether of matter or of mind. In doing this, however, we have to guard against unnecessary MESMERIC CONSCIOUSNESS. 287 multiplication,, and we should never omit to trace the original source amidst the mazes of its various channels. Simplicity of principle — variety of de- velopment, — these are the points to be kept in view. Thus, while we admit sensation, perception, atten- tion, reflection, to be excellent terms to express cer- tain acts of the mind, we must not forget that these so-called faculties are but different forms and manifes- tations of consciousness. A little consideration will show that they are truly so. A sensation of which the mind is not conscious is no sensation at all ; neither can we feel without per- ceiving, nor perceive without, in some degree, attend- ing to that which we perceive. When we say that we attend to a thing, which before we barely per- ceived, it is not that consciousness, perception, and attention are going on together, but that conscious- ness has advanced through the Stage of perception into that of attention, — attention only expressing a higher degree of consciousness, while reflection, again, indicates a different operation of the same. This last is attention directed towards ourselves, instead of external things ; but the principle is unchanged. A reflection is just as much the consciousness of the moment as is a simple sensation. If it be asked, then, in what sense I use the term consciousness, I answer, as a general expression for every act and state of the mind. I do not say with Reid that it is " an operation of the understanding'' (though I do grant him that it cannot be " logically defined " — for how can we define existence ?), but I affirm that it is the operation, not of the under- 288 MESMERIC CONSCIOUSNESS. standing only, but of the whole man. To explain myself still further, I conceive that consciousness stands in the same relation to the mind that physical force does to the body. As the least of our motions implies a degree of the latter, so does the most trifling mental change infer a degree of the former. Let it be remembered, however, that consciousness, like physical force, has no real existence out of the subject that manifests it. Nevertheless, for purposes of analysis, we must not only speak of it separately, but distinguish its various intensity of action. In order to do this, yet as much as possible preserve an unbroken unity, I conceive that the best nomen- clature for the varieties of consciousness would be one that should ever recall the primary quality, yet distinguish, by means of epithets, its various mani- festations. Omitting its minor developments, I pro- pose, therefore, to classify thus the operations of the agency in question : — Simple consciousness, — that is to say. the mind's action in those absent and dreamy moods, when much thought is accompanied by no reflection, and is succeeded by no memory of the subjects of its meditation. Retrospective consciousness, — the mind's action, when it passes through a series of former thoughts and sensations, without making them objects of scrutiny. Introspective consciousness, — the mind's action, when self-regardant. It is distinguished from mere memory in two marked particulars. It immediately succeeds the thought, on which it casts a reflective MESMERIC CONSCIOUSNESS. 289 glance, and it has ourselves for its object. It is a state in which thought, and observation of thought, succeed each other so rapidly, and with such even alternation, as to seem identical. But the end which I have in view compels me still further to observe that the mind has a physical as well as intellectual sensibility, and takes cognizance of the motions and sensual conditions of the body to which it is attached. Its observation of these seems to constitute a consciousness apart. The proof may be drawn from our simplest actions. When walking and thinking on various subjects, we never cease for a moment to direct our limbs properly, yet never once interrupt our train of thought, unless some unusual circumstance should call upon us for an Unusual attention to our manner of progressing. Now allowing, a< axiomatic, that bodily motions (the vital and involuntary of course excepted) spring from the mind, and that, cause ceasing, effect also ceases, ire must perceive thai to every act of the body an act of the mind is requisite; Of how many acts of the mind, then, is walking composed! consequently of how many simple consciousnesses! But other con- sciousnesses have been shown progressing identically with these. While occupied in walking, we pre- served a chain of intellectual thought as consistent and as unbroken as the physical one whereby our external actions were directed. This is a phenomenon of our nature, in the con- sideration of which we may indeed cast out " Philosophy's deep sea-line, but to find Truth's ocean fathomless." 25 290 MESMERIC CONSCIOUSNESS. But, while we confess it to be a mystery, we should also value it as a blessing; for, were we forced ever to attend to those motions, which may now be called automatic, we should scarcely have leisure for any other mental process. If the mind that now guides the pen wherewith these lines are traced were occu- pied in the mere act of writing, what would become of the thoughts which it desires to record and to transmit to others ? That the physical consciousness is capable, like the intellectual, of a triple development, is also manifest. It has its simple action ; as when each motion of our bodies is carelessly performed, and cannot be remembered so as to be exactly repeated. It has its retrospective action ; as when we re- member and repeat, yet do not observe our motion (in the case of playing an air from memory, for ex- ample, while we are thinking of something else). And, It has its introspective action ; as when we attend to our footsteps, in descending, with precaution, a snow-covered and slippery hill. It would be easy to show the various states pro- duced by the mixture of these elements in various proportions, tracing the degrees from the constant self-scrutiny, both mental and physical, that some persons carry on in society, when they observe their every least word, fearful to utter aught amiss, and their own least gesture, lest they should commit an awkwardness, to the unmixed and simple conscious- ness of reverie. But this would lead me too far from MESMERIC CONSCIOUSNESS. 291 my present purpose. The two states above men- tioned may be taken as the extreme points of con- sciousness, while its medium condition may be found in our usual and habitual modes of conduct, when we are sufficiently attentive to our motions, not to knock our heads against a wall, and to our thoughts, as to be sure we are thinking. Regarding these states according to their value, we find that in none of them would man ever be capable of much intellectual exertion. In the first, the attention is too generally diffused, in its opposite too restricted, in the medium too alternating. Would we find man's distinguishing stamp of mental supe- riority, we must seek it in a fourth state — namely, that of abstraction, in which the pure intellectuality reigns nearly alone, and almost free from any dis- turbance of the introspective consciousness, which, being of itself an act, annihilates, pro tempore, all Other acts. Were we perpetually to exercise the re- flex act of the mind, and to pause upon our thoughts with Belf-observation, our train of ideas would halt, and fall to pieces for want of connection. But this is not all. Any admixture of the intro- spective consciousness detracts from the perfection of once-acquired and habitual motions, as much as it spoils the freedom and hold expansion of our thoughts. Of this we may soon convince ourselves. Though generally insensible to the act of breathing, we may, by attention, become aware of the process. What follows ? An immediate sense of uneasiness, and an interruption of that regular motion which seems to go on so well by itself. Again, that wink- 292 MESMERIC CONSCIOUSNESS. *> ing of the eye, whereby the organ is healthily pre- served, becomes a torment, if we think about it. If these instances be objected to by persons who would confound the above motions with such as are vital and involuntary, I may appeal to a known phenome- non, which regards the voluntary motion of our fin- gers. Every musician must have felt that, when he has learnt to play a piece of music by heart, if he thinks upon the direction of his fingers, he is apt to play false. Let him trust to the simply memorial consciousness of his physical being, and he does not err. I have even known persons successfully con- sult this memory of the fingers (as it may be called) w r hen they have in vain questioned their intellectual memory. I remember a lady trying to recall an air, which once she could execute on the piano, and she could not do this, until she had (as she expressed it) " ceased thinking about it, and let her fingers go of themselves." Again : the operations of memory are impeded by the introspective consciousness. As Dar- win, in his Zoonomia, observes. — •• We frequently experience, when we are doubtful about the spelling of a word, that the greater voluntary exertion we use — that is, the more intensely we think about it. the further we are from regaining the lost a>>ociation, which readily recurs when we have become careless about it." Introspective consciousness, then, appears equally to mar our liberty and our memory both of thought and of motion ; and consequently it should seem that, in proportion as we can be exempted from its inter- ference, we must attain a higher state of intellect and of corporeal activity. MESMERIC CONSCIOUSNESS. 293 This we may surmise ; but proof is not wanting to confirm it to us. The state of the philosopher who solved the problem of the universe was avowedly a state of abstraction and of self-foriretfulness ; and it is equally well known that natural sleepwakers, who can never be supposed capable of self-scrutiny, will achieve feats, which would !>e the horror of their waking moments. They will stand, self-balanced, on the ridge of a house, where, under the usual con- ditions of consciousness, they could not preserve their equilibrium for a single moment : they will cross a roaring torrent on a single plank: — but, if suddenly awakened tea contemplation of themselves or their situation, thej irill lose their footing, or perhaps die ot" alarm. Are these examples too far removed from ienri experience! We #ill then bring the matter at once home to every one's personal feelings. What is it that accompanies and adds to the awkwardness caused by timidity: An o\ < i-w atchfulness, a care that mars itself — in fine, the too predominant pres- ence of the introspective consciousness. The shy scarcely <*\ei forget themselves, as it is called — make them do so, and their deportment is at once improved. Consciousness having now been defined, and its principal varieties of action noted, it will he instruc- tive to observe how far it is peculiarly modified in mesmeric Bleepwaking, and how far it is acting in harmony with known and established laws. On ex- amination. 1 imagine it will appear that mesmerism is not that violation of nature's order which it has by some been deemed to be ; — but that, on the con^ 25* 294 MESMERIC CONSCIOUSNESS. trary, the changes, which it induces in our being, are in strict accordance with well-known principles, which are of the commonest application, and which may be easily tested in ourselves. First, then, we have gathered, from the observa- tions which have lately been brought forward, that, in proportion as introspective consciousness is an- nulled, the powers of thought and of motion are de- veloped. Now that the mesmeric state, compared by some to that of sleep, by others to that of delirium, can be a state of self-watchfulness, no one will, I think, main- tain. It is what is vulgarly called a state of com- plete unconsciousness. In corroboration of this, it may be observed that mesmerised persons speak with a freedom, instances of which being related to them in their waking condition cause them surprise and even vexation. Anna M , in sleepwaking, once lectured me on burdening myself with so many effects in traveling, and yet, in her natural state, almost wept to think she had been guilty of so much rude- ness. It was plain that, when awake, she was able to reflect upon her own conduct in a manner which she could not while sleeping mesmericallv. Again : sleepwakers seem wholly unable to scru- tinise their own sensations, and, if questioned con- cerning them, will (as I have in other places re- marked) give confused and even irrational replies. Moreover, if asked to be self-observant, when per- forming any thing, their actions come to a stand still, and the very efforts which they make at reflection prove their inability to exercise that faculty. MESMERIC CONSCIOUSNESS. 295 Introspective consciousness, then, may be pro- nounced to be absent in the mesmeric slumber ; and, consequent upon that absence, we find — exactly as in the normal condition of man — an improvement both of thought and motion in the mesmeric sleep- waker. Proofs of this will be found in former pages of this work. Not only have mesmerised persons been shown to reason with a perspicuity of which they were incapable at other times, but to display a grace and freedom of gesture wholly different from the constraint of their habitual deportment. Thus the perfection of motion, and superior co- herence of thought, which mesmeric sleepwakers dis- play, in connection frith the absence of introspective consciousness, is bul a higher grade of a known con- dition. — the extension and not the alteration of a principle. The second law of our normal condition, with which I would show the mesmeric state to coincide, is — that, in proportion as the intellectual consciousness is heightened in its character and spirituality, the physical consciousness IS deadened and depressed. The accuracy of this posjtion may be tested by every one under the most common circumstances of life. In Mates of even trifling abstraction we become insensible to slight bodily discomforts ; and, while me- ditating inwardly on themes that are interesting to us, we frequently maintain one position until our nerves are compressed and our circulation hindered to a degree sufficient to compel us back to our phy- 296 MESMERIC CONSCIOUSNESS* sical sensations* Again : when We are suffering from slight headache, or other temporary derangements of the system, should any subject strongly rivet our at- tention, we become, by degrees, less and less sensible of the inconvenience, and, at length, (as it is phrased) forget our pains. The principle runs through all mankind — from infancy to age. A child falls, receives a hurt, and begins to cry. Speak to it — arouse its mental activity, and its tears cease long before the mere mechanical injury that set them flow- ing has been done away. Pursuing the same law to its higher instances of application, we arrive at the holy abstraction of religious men and the elevated faith of martyrs, who have smiled on bodily anguish to the last, not only triumphing over, but becoming insensible to, agony, while their songs of praise and joy ascended to heaven from the torturing wheel or the consuming flame. But this entire spiritualizing of humanity is of rare occurrence, and, should we desire to behold the more striking conquest of mind over matter, it is plain that we must seek them in some other than our normal condition, — amidst our loftiest abstractions, as we are at present constituted, the body drags us down to earth. Those busy inlets of conscious sensation, which yield us so many pleasures and so many pains, are continually marring the higher processes of our intellect by their exquisite capacity to receive im- pressions. A Newton's chain of thought may be for ever broken by the buzzing of an unlucky fly : and links so subtle, when once severed, how difficult are they to be again united ! The power of total ab- MESMERIC CONSCIOUSNESS. 297 straction were, to great minds, power indeed ! In sleep, it is true, our senses are under a strict warden- ship, but then reason is also fettered. Yet even from sleep we may gather how much stronger is the force of mind, when no longer dissipated by external things. Every one who has dreamed of sorrow and alarm will confess with what unusual awhilness their stern images have stood forth from amidst the sur- rounding blankness of slumber. It is only in sleep that we can become, as it were, one thought of agony. Our impressions are then violent, because they are unmitigated. There is none of that counterpoise of the senses, which, under true waking sorrow, we acknowledge to be so merciful a part of our consti- tution ; lor. could we h\e under the pressure of xxne afflictions, did UOl external things sometimes take as off from oareehresi Occasionally, also, we enjoy in Bleep, happiner that he should return to them with ease and perfection as soon as the unwonted conditions of In- mesmeric existence are restored ? To understand this perfectly, we have onlj to extend the principle whereby we lose or recover any train of thought whatever. Thus epileptics have been known to finish, in ;i now paroxysm of their complaint, i sentence begun in an attack which had occurred days or before; >w.<\ every one must remertiber the quaint story of the old gentleman who, in passing a particular bridge, answered a question that had been put to him Ion-- ago on the same spot. u Do vou like pea- or beans best for dinner ? M his old domestic had inquired, as he rode soberly behind his master. re was no reply: — but, j ar after, when master and man w < re jogging on as before, the for- mer turned -lowly round, and said, " Peas, John." Certain foots, relative to the mesmeric state, still further confirm our previous view of the question. Sometimes, when mesmeric sleepwakihg is not per- fect, it seems to alternate with the natural state; and the patient, occasionally waking, as it were, for a few moments, employs his ordinary senses in the or- 310 MESMERIC CONSCIOUSNESS. dinary way. Now, by frequent experience, I have ascertained that the remembrance which these pa- tients retain of circumstances that occurred during their sleepwaking is in exact proportion to the usual action of their senses ; in other words, to their ap- proximations to their ordinary conditions of con- sciousness. The real water of oblivion — the fabled Lethe — is only to be found where consciousness flows on through channels that are altogether unwonted. Thus, tfien, if I have shown, in a former book, that mesmeric sleepwaking is a peculiar state, and therefore worthy of distinct investigation, I have now proved that, though peculiar, it is in harmony with the general laws of our mental constitution ; and therefore proper to be classed with other metaphys- ical phenomena incident to man. I am, indeed, far from saying that it presents no extraordinary appear- ances ; but I must assert that it is by no means one of those subjects in which we cannot arrive at a com- prehension of things unknown by that with which we are already acquainted. Every common reverie is a sort of mesmeric slumber ; and an absent man lives, as it were, in a mesmeric world. In order to have a perfect idea of mesmeric sleepwaking. as far as regards the patient merely and his mental condi- tion, we have only to imagine a fusion between the two known states of reverie and of abstraction ; for the mesmeric sleep approximates to the first in its singleness of consciousness, its deadness to external stimulants, and its complete after-forgetfulness : while it resembles the latter in coherence of thought and intellectual development. MESMERIC SENSATION. 311 SECTION III. ON MESMERIC SENSATION. Having shown that the metaphysical condition of mesmeric patients is in harmony with general laws and with personal experience, it is now my intention to offer some observations, whereby the phenomena of sensation, in the mesmeric state, may also be brought nearer to our convictions. In attempting this. I must necessarily sometimes abandon the region of purely personal experience. The real causes of OTen our ordinary sensation (though they may be made mathematically evident to reason) are themselves at variance with our com- mon feelings, and arc altogether hidden from the per- ception of the vulgar. Yet to these real causes I must appeal in explanation of mesmeric phenomena. In order to reveal one and the same base for normal and for mesmeric sensation, I must pierce that which seems, and penetrate to that which is. Yet will it, I trust, be found that, wherever the subject permits, I retain that best mode of argument — the arirumentum ad hominem. Already I have remarked that, sensation being really seated in the mind, a change in its prerequi- sites can never imply an abolition of itself. But we may affirm more than this, and adduce facts which 312 MESMERIC SENSATION. shall afford us the strongest presumption that, in the mesmeric state, the pre-requisites of sensation, how- ever changed, are only altered in conformity with established laws ; in fine, that the development of mesmeric feeling is in perfect accordance with na- ture. That it has not hitherto appeared so, seems to be rather the fault of its expositors than the neces- sity of its own mode of action. They who would examine into the conditions of mesmeric perception are, in general, so engrossed by its more prominent and superficial wonders, that they rest in external differences of development, instead of going deeper to discover internal identity of origin. They look merely to unusual effects, and do not consider that the causes of these may be such as are actually fa- miliar to us. The pervading peculiarity of mesmeric perception may be thus briefly expressed : — Inaction of the external apparatus of the senses, co-existent with the life and activity of some inner source of feeling. That such an apparent anomaly is not so far re- moved from the ordinary operations of our being, as on a cursory view of things we might suppose, I trust in the course of the following reflections to demon- strate. Every fact, adduced to prove the reality of mes- meric perception, has been hitherto met with but one argument, which your established formalist — your limiter of Providence and its resources, deems unan- swerable. " Our external organs are the sole ap- pointed means of sensation. How would you then MESMERIC SENSATION. 313 that we should perceive any thing without their aid ? " That there is a flaw in this reasoning is not so dif- ficult to be discovered. It is a mere begging of the question, and proceeds altogether upon an assump- tion, the fallacy of which I will, at least, endeavor to expose. Many and striking are the circumstances which assure us that the nerves are the true media of sen- sation, to which the external organs are only instru- mental and subsidiary. For, in the first place, from the anatomist we may learn that many apparently essential portions of the external sms< > may be removed, or may exist not, without any perceptible difference in sensation. As regards the ear, we find thai " the pinna is not indis- pensable to hearing; for. both in men and animals, it may be removed without any inconvenience beyond that of a few days."* Again : u The membrane of the tympanum may be torn, or even totally destroyed, without deranging the hearing in any sensible de- gree ; " and " the loss of the small bones in the tym- panum, with the exception of the stapes, does not necessarily incur a loss of hearing." With respect to the sense of smelling, it appears that "the olfactory apparatus is but little developed at birth. The nasal cavities, the different convoluted bodies scarcely exist : the sinuses do not exist at all, and yet the faculty of smelling appears to exist." l 1 Milligan's Magendie. 27 314 MESMERIC SENSATION. Nay, even parts of a mechanism so wondrous as that of the eye seem not to be essential to vision. " The contraction of the pupil, though it assists our vision of distant objects, is not absolutely neces- sary, since Daviel has shown that patients having the pupil immovable see well enough." Also, " Persons who have had the lens removed for cataract, still see sufficiently well." ' Considerable alterations, then, may occur in the external apparatus of the senses without sensation being impaired. But is this indifference, as to losses in their structure, shared by the nerves ? Far from it. The smallest abstraction — the slightest change, even, is of consequence here ! Whatever deranges the nerves manifestly introduces a corresponding dis- turbance into our sensations, and, should any of them undergo a substantial change or be entirely annulled, the sensitive functions of the part, to which they re- fer, cease altogether. Thus injuries to the optic or acoustic nerve will produce blindness or deafness re- spectively, though the external mechanism of sight or hearing remain entire ; and, if the lingual nerve be cut, the tongue continues to move, but has lost its sensibility to savors. " These effects may be pro- duced at pleasure upon animals, by tying or com- pressing the nerves. When the ligature or pressure is removed, the part then becomes sensible as be- fore." Magendie also states that, where there is faulty sensation, it generally originates in defects rather of 1 Milligan's Magendie. MESMERIC SENSATION. 315 the nervous than of the organic structure. This dependence of the external senses upon the nerves should diminish our surprise at finding the former occasionally retreat from offices which they only fulfil, as it were, by delegation, while the true powers, as in mesmerism, come forward to manifest their capaci- ties, more palpably, indeed, but not more essentially, than usual. Secondly, The nerves or portions of the brain with which they are in immediate relation, are capa- ble of gradations in their sensibility. The proofs of this lie before us in every direction. Though the structure of the externa] organs be alike in all (of course, we except cases of acknowledged malformation,) the capacities to which they minister, are. in different individuals, infinitely varied. Thus, of two persons, whose auditory organs are equally perfect, one shall have a far finer sense of hearing than the other. The one. perhaps, may mistake, as did a friend of mine, the tuning of instruments be- fore a concert for the overture ; the other shall de- tect the slightest false note which may occur in an otherwise well-executed piece of music. While some again possess by nature that sense of color which guided Reubens to all the harmonies of vision ; others, with no perceptible defect in the mechanism of their eyes, cannot distinguish between the most opposite colors. A man with this infirmity has been known to order a pair of trousers of the most flagrant red, supposing them all the time to be modest blue. 316 MESMERIC SENSATION. Others are incapable of even hearing certain sounds, for which " Nature, though giving two, gave them no ear." I was acquainted with a gentleman, who was com- pletely insensible to the chirp of the cricket. Walk- ing with him and with a large party one summer evening in his grounds, I observed to him that the grasshoppers were more numerous and more noisy just then than I had ever heard them. They literally seemed to get the better of our voices. To my sur- prise, my friend refused to believe that any grasshop- pers were chirping, and was only at length convinced of the fact by the united testimony of all the persons present. In order to ascertain whether this peculi- arity of sensation depended upon any general defect in the organs of hearing, I held a watch at a consi- derable distance from my friend's ear, but he dis- tinctly perceived it ticking. Again, I placed the watch at an equal distance from him and from myself, at a point where the grasshopper concert completely pre- vented me from hearing it ; yet to him it was as audi- ble as if perfect stillness had prevailed. He was also cognizant of words spoken in the lowest whisper, which no other person but himself could distinguish amidst the din of the insects. What can be more evident than that this inability to distinguish a par- ticular sound arose from a defective sensibility in the acoustic nerve, which had not the capacity of respond- ing to aerial vibrations, rapid as those by which a note so shrill as the cricket's cry is produced ? MESMERIC SENSATION. 317 Thus it appears that the nervous sensibility of one man varies as much from that of another, as the mes- meric from the normal. This again should lessen our wonder when we be- hold a state of nervous sensibility which surpasses our conceptions even. That we cannot judge of it no more proves its non-existence than the defective hearing of some persons annihilates certain sounds. When we, being in one state, pronounce a verdict upon phenomena exhibited by those who are in ano- ther, we act as does the blind man who dictatorially gives his opinion respecting colors. Thirdly, The nerves are subject to varieties of condition, not only in different individuals, but in the same. That the nerves may vary in their functions of transmission is not only possible, but inevitable, and consequent upon the very constitution of man's na- ture. Not only dors every disease which affects the nervous tissue affect the phenomena of sensation, but the commonest occurrences of our ordinary existence influence them likewise. Viewing the nerves as con- ductors, along whose sentient line dart those electric impulses which convey to us information of the ex- ternal world, we may assert that they are seldom in the same conducting condition. In reverie, how deadened is their transmitting power ! how enlivened under the excitement of hope, or fear, when we look or listen for the arrival of a friend, or of some mes- senger of evil ! How differently do they act under the relaxation of fatigue or the tension of vigorous energy ! Sleep alters their capacities of conduction 27* 318 MESMERIC SENSATION. in a thousand varying degrees, exhibiting phenomena only less wonderful than those of mesmerism because more frequently repeated. In how extraordinary a manner trifling causes may change the nature of sensation, one or two incidents which have fallen under my own notice may demon- strate. A friend of mine, when suffering from slight derangement of stomach, is apt to see every object double (smile not, reader, he is a water-drinker) ; and I am, myself, occasionally subject to a singular affection of the optic nerve. When fatigued by an effort of continued attention, where the light is too vivid (as in a theatre, for instance), I see every object diminished and removed to a distance, as if I looked on it through the reversed end of a telescope. 1 At one period, for three months, during which my digestion was slightly out of order, I was entirely deprived both of taste and of smell. All that I ate was as so much earth ; and I could not distinguish between a cabbage and a cabbage-rose : again, a gentleman of my acquaintance lost, and never after- wards recovered, his smell, in consequence of a fall from his horse, which had no other perceptible re- sult. Phenomena like these, not less than everyday events, assure us that every separate state of man is a separate and peculiar condition of nerves ; and that every peculiar condition of nerves has its pecu- 1 Here it is evident that the weaker impression, caused by the exhausted and over-excited state of the nerve, produces the idea of diminution and distance, just as we judge that a feeble sound proceeds from afar. MESMERIC SENSATION. 319 liarity of sensation. When, then, we learn that mes- merism induces alteration in our sensitive capacities, why should we be as full of wonder as if nothing else could work a change in them ? Were we wise, we should, from all we know of the nerves, be pre- pared at least to anticipate new results from new conditions of man ; and certainly to expect from a state so singular as that of mesmeric sleepwaking some singular variety of nervous action. That the effects of the human influence on the nerves should be new to our experience, so far from being extraor- dinary, is but in the common routine of things ; for the state of mesmerism itself is new to our expe- rience. Did the nervous system present the same phenomena under this peculiar phasis, as under other circumstances, then, indeed, would it violate the laws of nature, and forego its own. The nerves, then, are capable of changes in their condition : but. change, it may be argued, is not im- provement, and the instances adduced of nervous alteration tend to show that their power may be les- sened, rather than increased, — deranged, rather than brilliantly exhibited. But mesmerism purports to be an expansion and a gain in nervous energy. Let us then inquire whether the same force, which is sus- ceptible of diminution or disturbance, possesses also inherent capacities of development. That nerves are sensible to stimuli we know. When their power has been impaired, — nay, to all appearance per- fectly lost, it may, by particular influences, be tran- siently restored to all its pristine vigor. That the blind occasionally regain, beneath the warmth of a 320 MESMERIC SENSATION. summer's noon, a power of vision which declines with the sun and is again altogether lost at its set- ting, is a fact which I need not insist upon to physiologists ; and a friend of mine has assured me that he has frequently known the opium-eaters of the East, after they had become both blind and deaf from over-indulgence in their favorite drug, regain both sight and hearing while under the accustomed excitement. Stimulus, then, may appear to work nervous miracles, and this plainly indicates a capa- city in the nerves to rise as well as sink — to gain force as well as to lose it. But w r e may go farther still. The nervous power, under certain circum- stances, may not only be exhibited as recovering the energy it had lost, but as transcending itself, and displaying a capacity of development, the limits of which have not been ascertained. They who have had opportunities of studying disease in all its forms will corroborate me when I assert that, on a depres- sion of the vital powers, an increase of the sentient capacities is often consequent ; and that persons under certain derangements of the system have manifested a nervous sensibility, than which, mes- merism can display nothing more astonishing. The Chevalier Filippi of Milan, doctor of medicine, and a most determined opponent to mesmerism, has ac- knowledged to me that some of his patients, more par- ticularly women after their confinement, when suffer- ing from nervous excitement, have distinguished the smallest objects in darkness which appeared to him complete. The same physician related to me the following occurrence : — Visiting a gentleman who MESMERIC SENSATION. 321 had an abscess, he found that the patient had not many hours to live ; this, however, he did not tell him, but answered his inquiries about himself as en- couragingly as he could. Taking his leave, he shut the door of the sick chamber, and, passing through two other rooms, the doors of which he also carefully shut, entered an apartment where some friends of the patient were assembled. To these he said, speaking all the time in that low and cautious tone which every one, in a house where illness is, uncon- sciously adopts, — " The Signor Valdrighi (that was the name of the invalid) is much worse. He can- not possibly survive till morning." Scarcely had he uttered these words, when the patient's bell was heard to rimr violently, and. soon after, a servant summoned the doctor hack again into his presence. " Why did you deceive me V 1 exclaimed the dying man ; u 1 heard every word you said just now in the farther apartment/' Of this extraordinary assertion he immediately gave proof by repeating to the aston- ished physician the exact expression* he had made use of. Subsequently, upon Dr. Filippi testifying his surprise at this occurrence to the servants of Signor Valdrighi, they declared that their master's hearing had become so acute since his illness, that he had fre- quently told them all they had been talking of in the kitchen, which was even more remote from the sick room than the apartment before alluded to. The gnat-strainers and camel-swallowers may be content to accept this story, just because it only pro- fesses to relate an instance of exaltation in the usual senses ; but what does this convenient phrase, " ex- 322 MESMERIC SENSATION. altation of the senses " mean ? Is it not " Words — words — words ;" one of those formulae which seem to account for every thing, while, in fact, explaining nothing? Considered as a not very precise state- ment, it may pass ; but when persons would palm it upon us as a solution, I would ask them whether "■exaltation of the senses " (in the common accepta- tion of the term) be possible ? There may be de- velopment, or, if you will, exaltation in our sensitive capacities — but how, or where ? If we desire to have clear notions on this subject, we must perforce inquire whether any increase of sentient power which may fall under our observation be in the external organs, or whether it be derived from the nerves which are masked by those organs ? In what manner we should resolve this problem would not be doubtful, but for a certain confusion of idea, which is extremely prevalent, respecting two portions of our being, between whose functions and qualities there can be no parallel. Led by custom, and blinded by apparent simultaneity of action, we associate the external apparatus, and the internal sources of sensation in one common term, — the senses, namely ; while, in fact, not only are they not the same, but opposed to each other in every essential particular. While the action of the exterior organs is always the same, under the same circumstances, that of the nerves is ever-variable. The powers of the one are limited and known ; that of the other has not been ascertained. MESMERIC SENSATION. 323 Is it not evident, then, that the mechanism of sen- sation is swayed and regulated by something which is not mechanical ? Is it not plain that the external senses are but the letters and ciphers of the scale, — fixed marks, which, by their unalterable character, point out how high may rise, or how low may fall, the variable mercury of our internal sensibility ? These truths, it is to be hoped, are known to phy- siologists at least ; yet how many even of these speak and argue as if they were entirely ignorant of them. When sensitive power is manifestly increased, where then shall we look for an explanation : there, where all is precise, limited, ascertained ; or there, where all is free and boundless, where variety is infinite, and capacity unknown ? Can we for a moment make it a question as to where the true power lies ? Can we for a moment ascribe it to the external organs, which, far from being capable of development, seem rather to be restrictions upon internal sensibility by their exact and circumscribed action ? Now let us once more refer to the examples of de- veloped sensibility which prefaced the above remarks. Certain invalids, it was affirmed, upon indubitable testimony, had been known to distinguish the small- est objects in a room, whence light, according to or- dinary vision, seemed perfectly excluded, or had heard articulate sounds athwart impediments, which, in or- dinary cases, are sufficient to prevent all transmission of acoustic impulses. The usual organs of sense were not in any way mechanically assisted daring the exhibition of the phenomena by external aids, such 324 MESMERIC SENSATION. as those of optical glasses, or acoustic tubes ; they were dependent solely on their own resources. Those resources, as we have just observed, are very strictly limited by mechanical and physical laws, which are incapable of change. In the case of the eye, where there is light, there will be a picture formed upon the retina with a clearness and vivacity proportioned to the intensity of that light ; or, supposing the pheno- menon to regard the ear, wherever aerial vibrations exist, they will strike the tympanum with a force that corresponds with the violence and extent of the ori- ginal impulse ; but, in the instances cited of sensitive acuteness, the effect is inverse to the known cause. The patient sees in a dark room where no picture can be supposed to be formed on the retina ; or hears in a situation where vibrations of the air, if even pro- pagated so far, can with difficulty be conceived to affect any membrane, however elastic. Under such circumstances, everything is plainly against an in- crease of sentient power: yet power is gained how ? or whence ? Whatever may be thought of the credulity of a mesmeriser, I have not faith enough to believe in modern miracles, when they are so in- terpreted as to falsify mechanic laws. I will not, then, load the external organs with the onus of im- possible causation ; but that the nerves of sensation may, in particular states, vibrate to fainter impulses, or even other media ] than those which more grossly move the mechanism of sense, I may admit to be a probable explanation of events like the above : — at 1 See the ensuing remarks on the media of sensation. MESMERIC SENSATION. 325 any rate, one truth from the preceding observations is clear. The extraordinary exaltation of the senses, whereof we have been speaking, was not in the or- gans, (that is barred by an ex absurdo) but in the nerves that minister to the organs. Thus it appears that, in certain cases, the nerves may be exhibited in a state of development which manifestly owes nothing to the mere organs of sense, and which far oversteps the province of any one por- tion of our external mechanism. When, then, mes- merism palpably excludes the external organs from a share in the sensitive developments which it elicits, when it effectuates a revelation of sensibility spring- in- from an internal source, it may in this, as in many other respects, be said to detect, rather than to vio- late principles. It sweeps away imagined power, which a multitude of circumstances had already shown to be only apparent and superficial : it exhibits power Where power evidently exists, and might be expected to be found. lint here, perhaps; I may be assailed with the oft- repeated question (to which I have once before allu- ded), w - Granting all this to be true, of what use are our external senses ? " Coleridge, impressed with an idea of the lavish wealth and boundless resources of Providence, when asked of what use were the stars and planets if not inhabited, replied, " I suppose to make dirt cheap." In the same manner I might answer when persons demand, " Of what use is the eye, if we can see without it ? " — " To show us how to make a camera obscura." In graver phrase, how much we learn 28 326 MESMERIC SENSATION. from the construction of this marvellous organ ; how dependent on that construction are all the discoveries which have been made respecting the physical pro- perties of the luminous medium ! It is a mechanism exquisitely adapted to the mechanical arrangements of the universe. And is its beauty nothing ? its power of speaking the soul ? And these advantages, be it remembered, are contingent upon the office, place, and station which the eye now holds in the human economy. But while we adore the Creator's wisdom and goodness in thus suiting our organs to our condition, and to the agents with which they are immediately in contact, let us remember that it is our duty to explore, and to seek out the true grounds of our adoration, and not to rest in a sort of stupid amazement. They who so triumphantly take their stand against mesmerism upon the all-importance of the external organs of sense, would do well if they would condescend to learn the real and most valuable part which they play in our economy. While it is the office of the nerves to receive and to transmit ex- ternal impulses with a degree of sensibility propor- tioned to their ever-varying condition, that of the external organs is to modify those impulses, with a regularity as constant as Nature's own. They are the weights and the balance-wheel in our constitu- tion. Thus the eye is composed of parts that are refractive, and of membranes that have each their use in altering light, such as it acts externally, into light such as it is perceived by us. The air. again, is modified in the mysterious labyrinths of the ear ; and these organs, by their form, contribute to direct MESMERIC SENSATION. 327 the impulse thus modified to its proper recipient — the nerve. Hence it appears that the apparatuses of the senses are contrivances for blunting, not for height- ening, the sensibility. They are masks, and careful coverings to instruments of too exquisite delicacy to be bared and exposed to the outer world. The cutis defends the nerves from the agony of harsh impact upon their tender surfaces : the sieve-like mechan- ism el* smell disarms odor of its over-stimulus, ere we M Die of a rose in aromatic pain." l That degree of sensibility which is exhibited to us in the mesmeric stale, as if to give US a permitted glimpse of the capacities of our being, would be wholly unsuited to the purposes of every-day exist- ence and I cannot too often remind our opponents that man WHS no more created to pass his days in mes- meric sleepwaking than in any other state of abstrac- tion from the affairs of this world. How terrible would be the condition of a being laid bare and naked to the irritating influences of all external things, may be imagined from the Bufferings of persons whose nervous sensibility has become predominant over the mechanic action of the senses. The Seherih von Prevorst fell into horrible convulsions if iron were within a certain distance Of her. or if vinegar were in any part of her room. Even patients in the ordi- 1 The choroid, by its dark coloring, absorbs the light, and miti- gates it to the eye, as is proved by the distressing effect which day- light produces on those persons called Albinos, who are deficient in the pigmentum nigrum. An ordinary degree of light dazzles them into blindness, and they can only see in twilight. 328 MESMERIC SENSATION. nary mesmeric state are sensible, as I have shown, to emanations from precious stones, some of which affect them with very disagreeable feelings. The valuable experiments of Dr. Elliotson with minerals on mes- meric individuals speak to the same effect. Let it not, then, be thought that the mesmeriser underrates the uses of the external senses. That they are as valuable for modifying as the nerves are for receiving impulses he fully admits ; he is only desirous of ex- hibiting them in this their proper sphere, conceiving that he thus renders them service ; for a faculty is never seen to such advantage as when cleared from the rubbish which ignorance has heaped around it. The aggrandizement which is based on error is but for a time, and God is best honored where his work is best understood. Considerations favorable to mesmerism have now been drawn — 1st. From the predominance of the nerves over the external organs of sense. 2dly. From their degrees and variations of sensi- bility. 3dly. From their capacities of development. And facts have been adduced which may prepare us to resolve the apparent paradox of sensation ex- isting apart from our usual senses. But the agency of the nerves is capable of still further elucidation which will throw yet more light on the mysteries of mesmeric sensibility. If from the varied modes of nervous action we proceed to its simple principle, we shall find abundant reason to conclude MESMERIC SENSATION. 329 that mesmerism does never really infringe any estab- lished and universal law. As on the true nature of sensation I ground much that is explanatory of my subject, I must be excused if I endeavor to lead to the full comprehension of my future observations on that head by some pre- liminary remarks, which will not be deemed needless by those who appreciate the difficulties that surround this branch of our inquiry. There are evidently but two ways of perceiving objects ; — the one by being present to them in their essential verity ; the other by communication with them through the intervention of types or shadows. The first mode of perception belongs to God alone. The second is imposed on man by the necessities of his nature We cannot go to the object : the object must be conveyed to US. We cannot penetrate its essence : we must descry it as in a glass, darkly, — by reflection, — by an image which is not itself. For this reason, in some previous observations re- lative to this same subject, I likened sensation to a language established between man and his Creator. I now proceed to point out in what that language consists, and how truly it may be called a language, since its symbols no more resemble the ideas they excite, than do words the pictures they raise in the mind, or the printed sentences of a book the thoughts and feelings which they occasion in those who read them. Limited, and closed in by walls of flesh, with 28* 330 MESMERIC SENSATION. which, for a time, we are almost identified, we can- not but allow that through our body comes all that knowledge, appertaining to external things, to which we have given the name of sensation. This is indeed the tenure on which we hold our individual exist- ence ; for all intelligence that is not limited is God, and in the force of the restrictions which confine the creature (paradoxical as it may sound) consists the independence of its action, and the liberty of its will. The universal ideas, which originate with God, must, in order that they may become proper to our- selves, be transmitted to us through personal expe- rience, and be coloured by the tinge of our own nature. Deceived, indeed, when we think not deeply, by the apparent extremity of effects which we only experience in our own persons, we refer our feelings to the object that occasions them, and speak of sound or of color, as if it existed as a thing apart, forge t- ing that aerial vibrations are only sound where there is an ear to receive them, and that light is only color when it is reflected from surfaces to an eye that vibrates in unison with its rapid scintillations. Our free communication with external objects is another source of error to our minds. Borne on the wings of thought, we seem, as it were, to go out of ourselves — to annihilate distance — mock at separa- tion, and pervade the universe ; but maturer reflec- tion assures us that sensation does, in fact, never stir one inch beyond the corporeal boundaries which have been assigned to it. Close the ear, and silence is around us, though to others the brook is murmur- ing, or the trees are rustling as before : — shut the MESMERIC SENSATION. 331 eye, and the slight veil of a tender membrane has blotted out all that glorious creation with which we so freely conversed. — has for us expunged the beau- ties of earth, the magnificence of ocean, and made a blank of the boundless heavens. Were we essentially cognizant of these objects, we could not be parted from them thus ; but it is evident that all our sentient mechanism (as Newton intimates) is truly constituted for the purpose of conveying the species of things to our sensorium, and that all that vast expansion to which we seem present is, in reality, present to us within the narrow compass of our brain. Sensation, then, is personal to ourselves, and man is strictly confined to his individual spline ; yet, at the same time, our consciousness assures us that we are in sensible communication with objects which are not ourselves, and which are more or less remote from us. Consequently, between us and them there must be media : and thus, in considering sensation, we have three things to take into the account; namelv. the external object, or the exciting cause; the medium whereby we are, as it were, linked to that object ; and the change in our own corporeal frame, which stands as the representative of the object. Hereafter I shall have occasion to speak of the media whereby we are brought into communication with the visible universe. At present I restrict my- self to considering the signs of things, of which our own persons are, as it were, the living alphabet and recording volume. 1 1 Locke mentions " the perception of the signification of signs" as a chief act of the understanding. See his chapter on " Power." 332 MESMERIC SENSATION. First, that we really do draw our sensations from the signs of things, and not from things themselves, a very simple and well-known experiment may con- vince us. Crossing the middle over the fore-finger, let any one rub between their extremities a little ball, and he will have exactly the same sensation as if there were two balls instead of one. 1 This phenomenon is capable of but one explana- tion. Those parts of the fingers which, in the ex- periment, are brought into contiguity, are ordinarily prevented by their position from touching one object at the same moment. Simultaneous impact on them has therefore become associated by habit with an idea of a duplicate impression. The mind has learnt its lesson, which it cannot forget — its language, which it can only interpret in its own established manner. We touch a single superficies with nervous surfaces which are used to come in contact with two ; therefore we think that we touch two objects. The conventional signs are present, and we deem that the accustomed realities are also acting. An interesting fact, recently observed at Paris, may be adduced in confirmation of the above views. A celebrated surgeon, M. Blaudin, succeeded in making a new nose for a soldier named Eustache Gressan, who had lost that member from a sabre cut 1 The reader is begged to remember that experiments like these are not presented as new, (as indeed, being appeals to experience, how can they be?) but as known proofs of known propositions, equally necessary to be repeated in a certain train of argument as the problems of Euclid in a course of mathematics. MESMERIC SENSATION. 333 at Waterloo, by means of skin cut away from the forehead of the patient. When Gressan has his eyes shut, if any one pricks with a pin the end of his new nose, asking him at the same time where he has been touched, he immediately lifts his hand to his fore- head, evidently referring the feeling to its old place, from association. This anecdote, which is taken from a thesis sustained before the faculty of medicine at Paris, by M. Chomette of Bordeaux, is extremely valuable, as showing decisively that sensation depends on the nerves and their associated actions, not on their particular localities. Certain signs, then, are really representatives to us of certain objects ; and of the nature of those signs we. from the above considerations, may partly judge. It is necessary, however, that on this subject our ideas should be perfectly clear and precise. Let us. then fore, inquire wherein, individually and generally, consists the language of sensation? Not in that which is commonly and vaguely called the action of the senses but in motions of those nerves which are the life and efficacy of the senses. For, let us consider, with Locke, that " all the ac- tions that we have anv notion of, reduce themselves to these two, thinking and motion," (thinking being the action of mind, as motion is of matter). Now that the nerves act in sensation no one will attempt to deny; and lion: they can act, being material sub- stances, except by a change in the position of their relative parts ; in other words, by motion, it is utterly impossible to conceive. That sensations are the results of changes or mo- 334 MESMERIC SENSATION. tions in some portion of our nervous system does not, however, rest upon abstract reasoning alone. The proposition may be proved, by fact, in a twofold manner. First, we may, by giving motion to a nerve of sense, convince ourselves that a sensation is the result. Secondly, knowing that, when bodies are jarred or stirred, their particles continue for some little time in motion, after the impulse which set them vibrating is at rest ; we may, by observing that a sensation con- tinues for a few moments after its cause has ceased to act, conclude that the nerve, on which sensation depends, produces its effect by motion. Each of the senses is susceptible of affording either species of demonstration. First. 1 . A blow on the ears will make them what is vulgarly called ring, independently of the sound of the percussion. 2. When a sound has been of long duration, we still conceive that we hear it, though it may have been for some time discontinued. Secondly. 1. An electric shock gives such sensa- tion to the nerves of touch as a violent blow usually excites in them. 2. Should a fly have settled on the face, we often raise our hands to brush it off, after it is really gone, being deceived by a continuation of the same feeling which it gave us when actually in contact with the skin. The tickling of a feather produces a similar effect. Thirdly. 1. Let any one place a piece of zinc un- MESMERIC SENSATION. 335 der his tongue, and a piece of silver upon the upper part of the same organ. At the moment when the two metals are brought into contact, a strong taste w r ill be perceived in the mouth, resulting from the galvanic concussion, and not from any actual flavor. 2. The sensation endures for a short time after the experiment has been tried. Fourthly. 1. A spark, drawn, by means of pointed metal, from the nose of a person who is charged with electricity, will give him the sensation of smelling a phosphoric odor. 2. Musk, however carefully inhaled, so as to pre- vent any actual particles of the substance from being stopped upon the pituitary membrane, will produce in us sensations of odor for some time after we have ceased to smell to it. Fifthly. To perceive the connection between mo- tion and sensation, with respect to such of our senses as I have already mentioned, is not difficult. But, when we come to consider the eye, it is hard to ap- prehend that all its beautiful representations of that external world with which it holds such distant com- munion are but signs and characters, consisting in nervous motions, which the soul, by an intellectual operation, translates into its own glorious and native language. For this reason, I have reserved the con- sideration of vision to the last, in order to bestow on it more attention. Mesmeric vision also being that part of mesmeric sleepwaking which most alarms the prejudices of mankind, I am most anxious to reduce it to analogy with nature. If it can be shown that vision does really consist, 336 MESMERIC SENSATION. like all our other sensations., in motion communicated to a certain nerve, I conceive that my task is partly executed, since it is plain that, though other condi- tions which we deem essential to vision may be want- ing to the mesmeric state, the great, the primary requisite may yet be present. There may still be motion. But let us proceed to proofs. Sir Isaac Newton asks (Query 12th), " Do not the rays of light in falling upon the bot- tom of the eye excite vibrations in the tunica retina, — which vibrations being propagated along the solid fibres of the optic nerves into the brain, cause the sense of seeing ? " And again (Query 16th), " When a man in the dark presses either corner of his eye with his finger, and turns his eye away from his finger, he will see a circle of colors, like those in the feather of a peacock's tail. If the eye and the finger remain quiet, these colors vanish in a second minute of time ; but if the finger be moved with a quavering motion they appear again. Do not these colors arise from such motions excited in the bottom of the eye by the pressure and motion of the finger, as, at other times, are excited there by light, for caus- ing vision ? and do not the motions, once excited, continue about a second of time before they cease ? And when a man, by a stroke upon his eye, sees a flash of light, are not the like motions excited in the retina by the stroke ? And, when a coal of fire, moved nimbly in the circumference of a circle, makes the whole circumference appear like a circle of fire, MESMERIC SENSATION. 337 is it not because the motions excited in the bottom of the eye by the rays of light are of a lasting na- ture, and ^continue till the coal of fire, in going round, returns to its former place ? And, considering the lastingness of the motions excited in the bottom of the eye by light, are they not of a vibratory nature ? " These observations, which the great philosopher has so modestly thrown into the interrogative form, mo- dern science has done little else than repeat affirma- tively. It is true, we no longer talk of rays of light as the causes of our visual sensations ; we have substituted for these (and, as I believe, with truth,) the undula- tions of an clastic ether. Still the theory of sensa- tion remains the same j and motions of the nerves, which minister to the eye, arc accepted as productive of our ideas of light The fibres of the retina, ac- cording to If. d'Arcet, continue to vibrate for about the eighth part of a second after the exciting cause has ceased : and therefore it is that, if we look at the sun and then turn our eyes from it, or even shut them, we still perceive a bright image before us. The phenomenon is explicable on no other hypoth- esis. I might, perhaps, allow the subject to rest here, but it is too important to be abandoned before our misapprehensions concerning it are perfectly cleared up. The great source of error respecting vision has been, and is, the miniature representation of objects on the retina, which was once undoubtingly accepted as the cause of vision — a venerable delusion, with which it is almost a pity to part ; for the endeavor 29 338 MESMERIC SENSATION. to explain how an inverted image (as that on the retina is,) could make men see right end upwards, has given rise to an infinite display of learned inge- nuity. Then, also, the notion of the soul giving a peep into the show-box of the eye is sufficiently ludicrous to be amusing. Still, before we can have just ideas concerning vision, those that anciently found place with us, however captivating, must be altogether swept away. The undulatory theory of light has, it is true, at the present time, already effected this in part : still, nothing is more difficult than to get well rid of old errors, especially when these are based on a plausible association of ideas. We behold external objects — the same objects are known to be repre- sented on the retina — and we jump at once to the conclusion that here is cause and there effect. Un- fortunately, never were two things, apparently con- nected, so wide asunder. Did not whatever is too near ourselves in general delude us greatly, surely we should not accept the image on the retina as ex- planatory of vision, only because that image is in the eye, and because we know that, in some way or other, our eyes serve us to see with. For let us remember that the connection between seeing and the picture on the retina has never been proved. The theory that links them together is perfectly gratuitous. On the other hand, the connection between seeing and motion of the optic nerve has been proved. We cannot indeed see without a retina; — but why ? Because the retina is so constituted as to be set in motion by the impact of light, and to communicate MESMERIC SENSATION. 339 motion to the optic nerve. Error continues to be propagated by the loose phraseology employed upon this subject. What is the meaning of the word im- pression, when applied to visual action ? An impres- sion gives the idea of something stamped and dura- ble ; but the image on the retina endures no longer than while the external object is before it. This is totally at variance with the lasting nature of lumin- ous impulsions on the eye, which consideration, it might be supposed, would alone be sufficient at once to refer vision to a motive cause. Above all, how can the optic nerve convey impressions! — a mode of speech, however, which is but too common. What is really conveyed, or communicated to the brain ? — a stamped figure, like the impression of a seal on wax — or a picture ? — No ! a motion, and nothing but a motion. Notwithstanding that this is palpable to teason, and doubtless well known to the physiolo- gist, still it is to be suspected that the multitude are, even yet, misled by a fancied analogy between the act of seeing and taking off the impressions of ob- jects, just as ladies, by an ingenious and almost in- stantaneous process, transfer engravings to the tops of their work boxes. This must be reformed altogether. Taking the question on its widest grounds, let us inquire, Does the image on the retina enable us to see ? To see is not merely to have ideas of color, but to appreciate the relative size and distance of bodies. Now, in spite of the beautiful perfection of the forms represented upon the retina, and the pro- portion of their distances, many facts contribute to 340 MESMERIC SENSATION. assure us that we gain no perception "bf form or dis- tance by the eye. We learn from it absolutely no more than relates to light and color. Thus, though images are formed upon the retina of the new-born infant as perfectly as upon that of the adult, yet, dur- ing the first month of its existence, it cannot be said properly to see. It only betokens a certain sensibil- ity to light by shutting its eyes when exposed to a strong glare. That it has actually no idea of the size or distance of objects, even long after it appears pleased with bright and lively colors, is evident from its stretching out its hand to seize objects, however distant, or of whatever dimensions. Even persons, who, being born blind, attain to sight at an advanced period of life, arrive but slowly at a correct appreciation of external objects. No where is the parallel between language of the pre- cedents of sensation more remarkable than here. Learning to see is precisely analogous to learning a new tongue. It is said of a blind youth, spoken of by Cheselden, " When he saw the light for the first time, he knew so little how to judge of distances that he believed the objects which he saw < touched his eyes,' (this was his expression) as the things which he felt touched his skin." ] It is related also of Kaspar Hauser, who was in the condition of a blind person from long captivity in a dark dungeon, that, when led up to a window, for the first time, whence there was an extensive view, he uttered a cry of pain and hid his eyes with his hands ; when able subse- 1 Milligan's Magendie. MESMERIC SENSATION. 341 quently to describe his sensations, he declared that the landscape had appeared to him as an upright plane, daubed all over with dazzling and discordant colors. 1 Were vision mechanically resultant from a pictured representation, it is evident that effects like these could not ensue. But, finally, how are we made aware that there is a picture at all on the retina ? By its being shown to us in the eye of a dead animal. So that we look upon it externally as we would on any other object. It is we ourselves who create the picture by our pre- vious conceptions of form and distance, which have been drawn, as the metaphysician knows, from the "sense of touch or rather muscular action. Thus, we only know that there is a picture on the retina, 6e- caute we are able to see. Can that, then, be itself the cause of our seeing? The absurdity is manifest. It is clear, then, that when we call upon the image on the retina to account for our visual perceptions, the effect does in no way answer to the cause pro- posed. View it as we will, it appears to be merely the collateral result of certain mechanical dispositions, which in no way regard it as an end. From what has been said, it appears that, in considering the sense of vision, we must absolutely look upon it as no more than the medium of our information respect- ing light and color. To light and color, then, we have to confine our 1 Kaspar Hauser has been accused of deception ; but surely this trait of nature alone would suffice to prove the most essential fact in his story. 29* 342 MESMERIC SENSATION. attention and to limit our argument. But our per- ceptions of light have been proved to be occasioned by motions of the optic nerves, and colors consist so certainly in vibrations, that the number of undulations producing each tint of the solar spectrum has been mathematically ascertained. "• The determination of these minute portions of time and space," observes Mrs. Somerville, " both of which have a real exist- ence, being the actual results of measurement, do as much honor to the genius of Newton as that of the law of gravitation." Thus it appears that the real office of the retina is to vibrate in correspondence with the vibrations of light ; as they are modified by being turned, inter- cepted, or broken by meeting with various objects. Need we observe how much this diminishes the wonder of mesmeric vision ? It has been shown that the picture on the retina is not the cause of seeing. In cases, therefore, where a picture on the retina is rendered impossible (as when the eyes are closed in mesmeric slumber) the true cause of vision is not, it seems, on that account, put out of the way. There still may be motion of the optic nerve. If it be in- quired, how produced, I must send on my reader to the remarks which will shortly ensue on communica- ting media. This at least cannot be contested : — the faculty of vision has been proved to result from motion, and is therefore brought under the same law. which, it has been shown, predominates over the other senses. Hence it appears that few proposi- tions, not absolutely mathematical, are more certainly established than this. MESMERIC SENSATION. 343 Motions of the nerves are representative to man of external objects. Nor is it less demonstrable that those portions of the nervous system which are cen- tral, or proximate to the brain, occasion in us, by their motions, sensations, rather than those portions of the nervous system which are superficial or most remote from the brain. For, in many instances, it may be shown that internal causes, wholly indepen- dent of any thing external, produce sensations exactly similar to those excited by external things ; their manner of reproduction plainly exhibiting their ori- ginal mode of production. In fever there is a repetition of images before the eye, which can only l>e accounted for by supposing a repetition of the sensations which formerly suggested them. But those sensations are themselves correla- tive with certain changes or motions of the nervous system. Their recurrence in a confused and incohe- rent manner is confessedly the fruit of disorder. And what is disorder ? An agitation of the frame, occa- sioned often, and always accompanied by a deranged action of the nerves. The soul is reading as it were, an incoherent treatise, of which the disjointed sen- tences were once familiar to her in their proper order. Under the influence of strong emotion persons may perceive, as with the actual organs of sense, ob- jects which have no existence but in themselves ; nay, even like Macbeth, when marshalled by the air-drawn dagger, may stretch forth their hands to clutch " The false creation, Proceeding from the heat-oppressed brain." 344 MESMERIC SENSATION. There are also mysterious affections of the nervous system, in which the patient, retaining all his reason, seems palpably to behold various forms of men or animals. Walter Scott, in his Demonology, gives a detailed and interesting account of the case of a lady who was thus spectre-haunted for months. I was myself personally acquainted with a physi- cian who told me that, one evening w r hile he w r as writing, he chanced to raise his eyes and saw, as he imagined, his housekeeper standing close to his desk, with a candle in her hand. " You may go to bed, Betty," he said, and went on writing. A few minutes afterwards he again looked up : there was Betty still. "Did you not hear me?" he repeated; "I want nothing more. Go to bed." A third glance, how- ever, showed him the seemingly obstinate Betty yet nearer to his chair, when, raising his hand with a gesture of impatience, he found that it passed through the figure, which, however retained all its apparent corporeality. With much shrewdness and presence of mind, the physician then felt his own pulse, which indicated fever. He proceeded forthwith to bleed himself, and, as he had anticipated, while the blood flowed, the phantom gradually disappeared — a proof the most convincing that it was the creation of his own disordered state of body. Nor are such illusions confined to the sense of vision. A lady of my acquaintance, while in a weak state of health, heard constantly a band of music with as much distinctness as if an orchestra had actually been present. As she recovered, the imagin- ary sounds diminished, till at length she heard no more of the aeriel performers. MESMERIC SENSATION. 345 These facts, however, are not within the experience of all persons. But a proof, as easy of access as it is interesting, that internal motions of the nerves can cause in us a perfect idea of something external to ourselves, is afforded in the following experiment. Let any one take a five shilling piece, and thrust it far up between the inside of his upper lip and his teeth : then let him lay a piece of zinc on his tongue, and suddenly bring together the edges of the two metals. At the moment when contact takes place a faint glimmering light will seem to pass off on either side his head, which, as nobody else sees it, must be an optical error, — the mere motion of a nerve, caused by the galvanism elicited from the two me- tals. Finally, discoveries r cut. The reader may also consult, fur further information on this sub- ject, the Monthly Chronicle for July. 1838, wherein a most interesting experiment on mesmeric insensi- bility is detailed. J)v tin- it appears that a galvanic shock, which produced a very severe effect on Sir William Molesworth and other persons, had no visi- ble influence on Elizabeth and Jane Okey, patients of Dr. Elliotson. Vet were these girls able to attend to all that was passing on every side of them ; or, in other words, to use their nervous system actively, while incapable of being influenced 1>\ it passively. There was no conduction towards the brain, but only from it. Again, in the case of Mile. Estelle PH , re- lated by Dr. Despines, of Aix, and once before refer- red to. it is stated that when she was unable, from a species of nervous paralysis, to stir a limb, she 370 MESMERIC SENSATION. could, in the mesmeric condition, into which she sometimes spontaneously fell, actively use all her members as when in perfect health. The transition from a state of active exertion to one of passive help- lessness was very marked, and often very alarming ; since if her natural mesmerism dissipated itself, (as sometimes would occur) when she was walking, or even riding, she would fall suddenly, and, if not timely assisted, come with force to the ground. Some of these phenomena are by no means pecu- liar to mesmerism. The partial restoration to feeling effected through stimulation of the patient's will is paralleled by those cases in which nerves under the influence of strong excitement have been suddenly restored, after years of inaction, to a conducting ca- pacity. Paralytic patients, it is well known, have recovered the use of their limbs for a short time, when they were forced to save themselves from fire or other threatened evils, but, the excitement with- drawn, have fallen helpless to the earth : even those who had been dumb for years have spoken under circumstances where strong emotion burst their bonds of speech. Nor are these the only cases to which mesmeric sensation bears analogy. The inversion of nervous action has been pointed out by Darwin, and particularly described in his chap- ter on Reverie in the Zoonomia. A young lady, it is there related, suffering under this singular malady, neither saw, heard, nor felt, during its attacks, any of the surrounding objects ; yet did she manifest occa- sionally in her state of reverie a perception of exter- nal things (as when smelling a tuberose and drinking MESMERIC SENSATION. 371 a dish of tea), "but this ivas only when she voluntarily seemed to attend to them." Darwin, remarking on the case, observes : — " In the present history the strongest stimuli were not perceived, except when the faculty of volition was exerted on the organ of sense ; and then even com- mon stimuli were sometimes perceived ; for her mind was so strenuously employed in pursuing its own trains of voluntary or sensitive ideas, that no common stim- uli could so far excite her attention as to disunite them ; that is, the quantity of volition, or of sensation already existing was greater than any which could be produced in consequence of common degrees of stimulation." Darwin has well stated this : and this appears to be the history of the sensations in all cases of sleep- waking and states which arc analogical to sleep- waking. The mind is deeply occupied on its own train of thought, so as to become inattentive to every thing in which it does not sympathize, and with which it does not cooperate. It is exhibited in the position of originating action; and every action which it does not itself originate is to it as a nullity ; as, for instance, the natural sleepwaker will be uncon- scious of the presence of other persons, and will sutler much from them without awaking; yet will he exert — yes, here it may be truly said exert — his percipient power on such objects as he pleases ; thus manifestly exhibiting a freedom of choice and a ca- pacity of selection which does not belong to man generally. Thus, however paradoxical it may ap- pear, the state from which volition seems the most absent, is really the fullest of free-will. 372 MESMERIC SENSATION. These things throw light on mesmerism, and ap- proximate it to experience. They are known to be parts of the constitution of man ; they are demon- strated to resemble perfectly the state which we deem so anomalous. How comes it that the likeness has not been recognized before, — that mesmerism, in truth, so old, should seem so new — so near, should seem so distant ? The fault has been in this : — viewing mesmerism as a strange thing, men have sought strange solutions for it. Deserting the sure path of common life, they have thought themselves obliged by the dignity of their subject not to be too explicit in their explanations, but to wrap the ap- parent mystery in tenfold darkness. As Arago has well observed, in his life of James Watt, " Les forces naturelles ou artificielles, avant de devenir vraiment utiles aux hommes, ont presque toujours ete ex- ploiters au profit de la superstition." So have we been taught to view with superstitious fear the home-born stranger of our own bosoms. Thus has every effort to approximate it to man thrown it far- ther off. They who chase it most will find it least. To go far for it is like hunting for happiness — " Which still so near us, yet beyond us lies, O'erlook'd, seen doable, by the fool and wise.'' The very terms heretofore in use, in speaking of mesmeric phenomena, have been strange and por- tentous. This is an error. We have undoubtedly startling things to relate ; let them not be related in startling language ! Words have much power for good and for evil. On this account I regret that the MESMERIC SENSATION. 373 term " transposition of the senses " should ever have been applied to mesmeric perception ; for it is a manifest inaccuracy. The senses, as I trust I have demonstrated, are never by mesmerism transposed or removed from their real seat. Still more unfor- tunate is it that the early mesmerists should have sinned against precision of language, so far as to talk of their patients seeing with the epigastrium — the fingers, t" sensibility, cooperating to pro- due** mesmeric vision, arc causes perfectly adequate to account i<>r all its phenomena. There is one remark respecting mesmeric sensation important to be made. In our normal state, the use of our external organs is not only to modify impulse*, but to concentrate them, properly modified, on a par- ticular nerve. Now, it may be asked, how, when the concentrating organs are removed out of the way, can impulsions be concentrated upon the nervous system, so as to bring die sleepwalker in correspon- dence with particular objects, it being evident that, in the general motions of a general medium there could be none of that particularity and selection which sensation evidently requires? To satisfy our- selves on this question, we have only to remember that the sleepwaker does not, in general, seem to know on every side, but that the most common mode 388 THE MEDIUM OF ^ of mesmeric perception (there being two, as I have pointed out) is by a concentrated sensibility in one particular portion of the frame, which constitutes, as it were, an organ whereby in fact impulses coming from without are concentrated, as they ordinarily are, in another way, by the usual organs. That sleep- wakers really do use some part of the nervous sys- tem as an organ of concentration, I have had frequent occasion to remark — Anna M. always bringing her forehead in a line with an object she wished to ex- amine, and often starting at the moment when her forehead came opposite the object, as if she were struck by the impulses of some invisible medium. When this was the case, she was always correct in her perceptions. In thus bringing the nervous sys- tem into immediate relation with an object by means of one restricted portion of the nervous system, it is evident that the analogies of nature are preserved. Thus in examining the media, the action of which forms the external pre-requisites of sensation, we seem to arrive at a general ground or principle, just as, in examining the action of the nerves, or the internal pre-requisites of sensation, we formerly ar- rived at a ground or principle. And the one seems perfectly adjusted to the other. From what we know of the constitution of nature, also, we should expect to come to some ground in sensation, for the dis- coveries of modern science tend to resolve all forces, even gravitation itself, into varied actions of one me- dium ; and, the universality of that medium being once allowed, it is plain that it must be the ground in sensation, as in all things else. Besides, viewing MESMERIC SENSATION. 389 man as more than the ephemeral being of a day and more especially viewing him in his extended relation- ships to creation, considering, too, all we know or see as but parts of one great system, we should ex- pect not only to arrive at some ground in sensation, which had not precise!] reference to the transitory purposes of this life, bul at some general ground, which might be common to all beings, and which might largely pervade the universe. The media, which now act upon our organs, we should as much conceive to be modifications of the pervading and ethereal medium, as our organs them- selves an- manifestly modifications of the sentient principle. So. in a new state of man. which takes him, as it were, out of his sphere, for a while, and exiendq his relatione to things in general by remov- ing the modifications of the external senses, we should expect to find b corresponding removal of the modifying media, and a correspondent approxima- tion to the general groundwork of sensation. Some- thing like such a universal principle or agency in ition has long been suspected to exist Newton, speaking <>f his celebrated ether, says : — •• I- not vision performed chiefly through the vibra- tions of this medium, excited in the bottom of the eye by the rays of light, and propagated through the solid, pellucid, and uniform capillamenta of the optic nerves into the place of sensation ! And is not hear- ing performed by the vibrations either of this or some other medium, excited in the auditory nerves by the tremors of the air. and propagated through the solid, pellucid, and uniform capillamenta of those nerves 33" 390 THE MEDIUM OF ^ into the place of sensation ? And so of the other senses." Admit this, and the mysteries of sensation in sleep- waking stand revealed. When once we see clearly (as see we must, if we consider nature aright), that the communication between all portions of the uni- verse is continuous and incapable of interruption — that there is a pervading medium, filling all things, permeating all, — the extended sphere of mesmeric faculties appears no longer miraculous. The hiatus once supplied, which seeming obstacles created to our apprehensions, there is no link wanting in the chain which connects us with external objects. All is har- monious — all is clear. And the facts of mesmerism alone would establish this beautiful simplicity in the economy of nature and in our own ; proving that Newton, when he suggested a universal agent in sen- sation, outran his age, and in a moment divined that which to elucidate will occupy future ages. But, alas ! he who defends the cause of mesmerism, be- cause he is penetrated with its truth, is " cabiird, cribb'd, con fin' d " in his mode of argument. He cannot support a theory, however noble, by the facts of mesmerism, nor reason from them by the most legitimate induction : for he is called upon to prove that the facts themselves are not absurdities, — that all which he perceives to be so admirably illustrative of Nature's order is not anomalous and monstrous. The foundation-stones of belief for his system are not yet laid ; and he has to lay them in a quaking and unstable soil, even as the first builders of Venice had to waste their materials beneath the engulphing MESMERIC SENSATION. 391 sea, long before the ocean city could rise, in stability and beauty, from the waves. A time, however, is at hand, when the facts of mesmerism, being* accepted as facts, will themselves be used as the most valuable demonstrations of truths and principles, which the genius of great men foreknew. If it may be permitted me, for a moment, to antici- pate that era. I may remark that the fact of the sleep- wake r seeing colore, when the usual action of light is plainly absent, while he does not behold objects mag- nified through a convex glass, is a proof that, as Newton conjectured, the efficient cause of vision is the vibration of another medium than light, and is not dependent on the anterior mechanism of the eye. All tin- i- in perfect harmony with science* Colors depend on vibrations of the optic nerves, which vi- bration- are shown to be more perfectly and perma- nently produced by electricity even than by light; for Profe880r \\ heatstone exhibited by electric light color- distinctly, and as ai rest, when they were re- volving bo rapidly as to be all mingled together into white under any ordinary illumination. On the other hand, the enlargement of objects by a magnifying glass is a mechanical effect dependent on a modifica- tion of light, which could not take place where the Conditions are so plainly absent as in the mesmeric dumber. The result of the experiment is at once conformable to reason and to science, and indicative of the sincerity of the sleepwaker. Here, also, we may see the difference between sensation general and special. The peculiar action of light, whereby an object is magnified, is only an adaptation to our pre- 392 THE MEDIUM OF sent imperfect organs. By it we gain no new, no peculiar, no fundamental idea : we only see objects when magnified, as if they were nearer ; but the no- tion of color is specifically different from every other and is common, we may suppose, to all animated creatures. Thus is mesmerism, in all its parts, cal- culated to lead us to principles of extensive applica- tion. If it seems to contradict our former knowledge, it only contradicts it in its externals and deceptive appearances. But in truth it never does contradict either nature or previous knowledge ; it is only in opposition to narrow views. The more we become aware what true experience is, the more shall we find that from experience mesmerism strays not. If men had wished to believe it, half the evidence that is now brought forward to prove it possible would have proved it sure. I conclude my remarks on sensation by recalling to the reader's mind a few of the most important re- flections on which we have been engaged, taking sight, our chief sense, as the type and example of the rest. The real nature of vision is as shut to the vulgar as the mesmeric mode of sight is to the learned. By the eye we appreciate light and color only : the rest is an operation of the judgment. Viewed metaphysically, seeing is but a particular kind of knowledge : viewed physically, seeing con- sists in certain nervous motions, responsive to the motions of a medium. That medium, in our ordi- nary condition, is light, the action of which seems cut off and intercepted in the case of mesmeric vision , MESMERIC SENSATION. 393 When, therefore, we hear that a mesmerised per- son has correctly seen an object through obstacles, which to us appear opaque, we, conceiving no means of communication between the person and the object, exclaim that the laws of nature have been violated. But, in all casefl where information is conveyed through interrupted space-, show but the means of communication, and astonishment cearfes. When we know that there is a medium, permeat- ing in One Of oilier of Us tonus all substances what- ev< r. and that this medium is eminently capable of exciting sensations of sight, and when we take this in conjunction with a heightened sensibility in the percipient person, rendering him aware of impulses whereof we arc not cognisant, we are no longer in- clined to deny a tint or suppose a miracle. Finally, all sensation has but one principle. All that i- required lor its production is, that objects Bhould be brought into ;i certain relation with us by something intermediate; and this is effected by the impulsions of certain media upon nerves, the last changes in winch are .the immediate forerunners of completed sensation. Thus thin--, which are beheld in their primal iic - by the Almighty, are to us known in their beautiful results, [t is to the idea, not to the con- trivana tor exciting the idea, that we are to look; for the unlettered peasant, who has a conviction and a feeling what lii_rlit is. has in reality as true a notion of this the first effluence of supernal power as he who has divided the sunbeams with a prism or calcu- lated the undulations of the ethereal medium. With 394 MEDIUM OF MESMERIC SENSATION. respect to external things, we have only to consider God and man — not God and the philosopher. Taking this simple view of sensation, we find no- thing in mesmerism contradictory of nature. Under its influence the human frame continues to be still a system of nerves acted upon by elastic media, for the purpose of conveying to us the primal impulses of the Almighty mind, which made, sustains, and moves the universe. BOOK IV. To every form of being if as^i^n'd An active principle : — howe'er remov'd From sense and observation, it subsists In all things, in all natures, in the stars /are heaven, the onendnring clondt, In Qbwer and tree, in every pebbly stone 'J'liat pavea tie- brooks, the stationary rocks, The in. a ' .and tlie invisible air." Wordsworth. I UK MI>MKKK MKDII >f. Hating, as I trust, shown the conformity of mes- merism, in all essential points, with the principles of nature and the inferences of reason, I now proceed to exhibit it in connection with such a cause as its peculiar manifestations indicate and demand. First, [ affirm that, productive of the effects called mesmeric, there is an action of matter as distinct and specific as thai of light, heat, electricity, or any other of the imponderabl ts, as they are called; — that, when the mesmeriser influences his patient, he does this l>v a medium, either known already in an- other guise, or alto-ether new to our experience. What proofs, it will be asked, can I bring forward of this assertion ? I answer, such proofs as are con- 396 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. sidered available in all cases where an impalpable imponderable medium is to be considered ; facts, namely, or certain appearances, which, bearing a pe- culiar character, irresistibly suggest a peculiar cause. Let us take only one of these. Standing at some yards distant from a person who is in the mesmeric state (that person being perfectly stationary, and with his back to me), I, by a slight motion of my hand (far too slight to be felt by the patient, through any disturbance of the air), draw him towards me, as if I actually grasped him. What is the chain of facts which is here presented to me? First, an action of my mind, without which I could not have moved my hand ; secondly, my hand's motion ; thirdly, motion produced in a body altogether external to, and distant from myself. But it will at once be perceived, that, in the chain of events as thus stated, there is a deficient link. The communication between me and the distant body is not accounted for. How could an act of my mind originate in an effect so unusual ? That which is immaterial cannot, by its very defi- nition, move masses of water. It is only when mys- teriously united to a body that spirit is brought into relationship with place or extension, and under such a condition alone, and only through such a medium, can it propagate motion. Now, in some wondrous way, spirit is in us incorporate. Our bodies are its medium of action. By them, and only by them. far as our experience reaches, are we enabled to move masses of foreign matter. I may sit and may will forever that yonder chair come to me. but with- THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 397 out the direct agency of my body it must remain where it is. All the willing in the world cannot stir it an inch. I must bring myself into absolute con- tact with the body which I desire to move. But. in the case before I18, 1 will — 1 extend my hands; I move them hither and thither, and 1 see the body of another persori — a mass of matter external to my- sell'. \. t not in apparent contact with me — moved and sway* d by the same action which stirs my own body. Am 1 thence to conclude that a miracle has ii performed — that the laws of nature are re- versed — that 1 can move foreign matter without contact or intermediate i Or must I not rather he certain that, if 1 am able to swaj a distant \. n l- by means of some unseen lever — that volition is employing something which i- equivalent to a body — something) which maj he likened to an extended corporeity, which ha- become the organ of ln\ w ill : Surely then is no effect without a cause; and from action- we may infer the existence ofan agent. We do this a thousand times in other cases, — in that of mesmerism, for instance. We never behold this power hut in it- results. It cannot even be made evident, like the electric spark, <>r felt in our own persons, like the galvanic concussion* The needle that has become a magnet, has under-one no change which any mortal -l-ht is line enough to appreciate, has acquired no weight which can he detected by our earthly senses. Yet. solely because we are sure that we behold certain phenomena, we allow that there is a distinct form of electricity, to which we 34 898 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM.^ have given the name of magnetism. Why should we refuse to mesmerism that which we grant to magnetism ? It is true that as yet we have no balance of torsion, whereby the mesmeric force can be mea- sured ; but in the human body itself we do possess an instrument whereby its presence may be ascertained ; nor would it be reasonable to insist upon separate agencies being detected by the same test. Why, then, but from the force of prejudice, should we call the mesmeric medium a gratuitous assumption ? That such a medium exists is not a gratuitous assumption, but an unavoidable deduction of reason. But there is a class of persons who refuse to admit of anything which they cannot see, taste, or handle ; with such it is difficult to argue. Should proofs by experiment be exhibited to them again and again, they still return to their cuckoo note — " Show me the agent." One of these practical men, as they are called, actually said to me on one occasion, u I never will believe that what you call mesmerism exists, unless you can put it in a bottle, and submit it to analysis." To what end, then, is reason given us, if not to judge of things invisible by those which are clearly seen ? For what purpose possess we the irresistible propensity to supply deficient links in a chain of causation, if not to prompt us where our senses fail ? We move a magnet over a needle ; the needle moves in a corresponding manner ; and the human mind is so constituted that we cannot behold these two facts, in seeming connection, without uniting them by a third, which we consider as proved by them, THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 399 since it is in truth their necessary consequence. We infer that the effect is produced by means of a mag- netic current or medium, — a something which pro- pagates motion from the magnet to the needle. This something we cannot indeed behold; — yet do we believe in it, — and with justice, for that which rea- son perceives to be necessary is not an invention, and can never be superfluous: on the contrary, the only immutable and essential truths come out of the mould of the intuitive reason, which, as Coleridge observes, Stops not at • this will be so," but at once decides, u This must be so." Now, in all cases where motion is communicated from one body to another, the line of communication must be maintained unbroken. The first impulse gives motion to certain atoms, which in their turn propel others, and >o on. till the w hole series between the active body and the body which is to receive the original impulse is Bel in motion, and then, at length, the sequence of events is complete, and the body, towards which motion tended, is Bet vibrating. If the medium that propagates the first impulsion be undulatory and elastic, its atoms only oscillate on either side a fixed point of rest; but, if it be com- posed of traveling atoms, there is an actual progres- sion of the medium. In either case, motion is pro- pagated by a real action of matter till it reach its final destination. This is the history of all commu- nicated motion, and it is plain that this holds good whether we behold the collection of atoms, in a bo- dily shape, that transmits the motion, as in the case of one billiard ball propelling another, or whether 400 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. *> we behold them not, as in the case of sound being communicated to the ear from a vibrating body, by means of the intervening air. I grant that the old axiom, " A body cannot act where it is not/' is very properly exploded ; but for it we must substitute an- other ; namely, " A body cannot act where it is not, save by deputy, or transmissive means." Yet some have overlooked this truth, and in their zeal to avoid theories, when they behold two sensible actions, evi- dently dependent the one on the other, and yet ap- parently disjointed, fear to unite them properly by suggesting the presence of an unseen link, which nevertheless cannot but occur between the visible an- tecedent and the visible consequent ; for motion is not an entity that can go through void spaces inde- pendently and alone ; it is merely a property which has no existence out of the subject that manifests it ; and, where matter fails, there motion fails also. It is vain, then, to hold such language as if it were pos- sible for one body to produce motion in another with- out something intermediate, — that is, miraculously and without means ; yet your good hater of theories will even dare to blame Newton for having suggested an ether to account for that action which one body produces on another, and even, in many cases, from vast distances, and which we call attraction. It is true that Newton may be wrong in the manner in which he manages his ether, and accounts for impul- sion and re-impulsion by differences of dense and rare ; but he cannot be wrong in preserving an un- broken series of atoms between separate bodies which manifestly influence each other, — between the sun THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 401 and the earth for instance, — since, in this case, there is mutual action, and motion communicated from a distance. Extending the principle, and perceiving that all the heavenly bodies were in mutual relation- ship, and the whole celestial system harmoniously bound together, Newton supposed his ether to be of Universal action, and to till and pervade creation, es- tablishing a means of communication between all its eral parts. Were this allowed, there would be but little difficulty in explaining mesmerism ; but a sublime divination of this kind is too vast for the general understanding. Accordingly, even Newtonfs name has Tailed to render the theory palatable, and men of small views have dated to call even this BUg- ion of a mighty mind gratuitous^ treating its au- thor with a levitj which can only lessen one's respect the objectors. Have these cavillers an intellect superior to Newton's own ? If they have, let them give us something better than Newton's suggestions (better, not only in their own opinion but in ours) respecting the great problems of creation ; some the- 01 \ more solid and sublime to satisfy the cravings of humanity alter pure and lofty generalization : till then let them, at least by silence, acquiesce in Professor Playiair's beautifully expressed opinion of the queries : — " Such enlarged and comprehensive views, so many new and bold conceptions, were never before com*- bined with the sobriety and caution of philosophical induction. The anticipation of future discoveries, the assemblage of so many facts from the most dis- tant regions of human research, all brought to bear on the same points, and to elucidate the same ques- 34* 402 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. ■> tions, are never to be sufficiently admired." In re- calling this to the reader's mind, I trust that I seem not to stray from my subject, which is in truth so deeply implicated in the truth or falsehood of New- ton's principal suggestions. But I might leave this great man's defence to time, which already has " brought in its revenges," science being even now occupied in developing Newton's ideas, and in estab- lishing as undoubted truths the greater part of all w 7 hich he so modestly advanced as queries. Facts relative to the acceleration observed in the mean mo- tion of comets have demonstrated, to the satisfaction of men of science, the existence of a resisting me- dium, undulatory and elastic, which pervades the known universe. How frequently it has thus happened that the de- ductions of the pure reason have triumphed over the cavils and hesitations of the understanding which, being conversant with matters of experience only, cannot step beyond the sensuous and the known ! Kepler believed that the harmony of our system re- quired a planet between Mars and Jupiter, and the deficiency is now actually supplied by the discovery of the four singular orbs which seem once to have formed but one single body. My reader's memory will doubtless supply other instances where the philo- sopher in his closet has outrun experiment, and lias divined what future observation has verified and facts confirmed. When, then, we find Mesmer (who whatever were his faults of conduct, was no con- temptible thinker) suggesting a universal medium as alone explanatory of mesmeric phenomena, let us. THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 403 instead of unwisely scoffing, inquire whether the cir- cumstances of the case may not possibly render the existence of such a medium a positive necessity, and a truth palpable to reason. This at least we know, that all science seems now tending to refer the appa- rently distinct agencies of nature to the varied oper- ation of one medium : to establish, in fine, an ether sudi as Newton had imagined, and such as Mesmer perceived would satisfactorily account for the appa- rent miracles (rf his new science. Now whether mesmerism be a distinct medium, or only the distinct effect of a genera] medium, widely manifested in other offices, I will not take upon my- self to decide. We n<> longer consider electrieity, magnetism, even Kghl itself, to be separate and inde- pendent agents ; we call them effects. And this is well, if we remember to refer effects to causes, and properties and qualities to real substances and sub- ject-. \\V must not turn all the goings-on of the Id into mere abstractions. Vibrations imply a vibrating body ; electric motions or concussions, something that moves or is concussed. It will, in- deed, greatly simplify our idea, to consider all the various appearances of nature as bo many actions of matter, but we must beware of supposing that, where action is present, matter can be absent. 1 run very willing, then, to call all mesmeric phenomena effects ; but I not the less contend thai they must be effects of something. I am willing to consider mesmerism itself as an action of matter, yet still of matter. I cannot tell whether, in the case of mesmeric agency matter assumes the form of a fluid or a gas, but I 404 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. -. know and am sure that material agency there is. This agency may be only one of the modifications of a substance which operates in other ways, or it may be the single action of a single substance. But, in fact, the probability is, that there are really various media in nature, the finer, we may suppose, occupy- ing the interstices of the grosser, distinct yet inter- fused, wheel within wheel, a subtile mechanism. Every one knows that the atmosphere is the medium through which sound is conveyed to us. A bell rung under the exhausted receiver of an air-pump is inaudible ; but the crystal walls, that keep out air, bar not the passage of light and heat. Newton's ex- periment of this, and his consequent reasoning on the fact, appear to me conclusive. He says, Q,u. 18. — " If, in two large, tall, cylindrical vessels of glass, inverted, two little thermometers be suspended, so as not to touch the vessels, and the air be drawn out of one of these vessels, and these vessels thus prepared, be carried out of a cold place into a warm one, the thermometer in vacuo will grow warm as much and almost as soon as the thermometer which is not in vacuo. And, when the vessels are carried back into the cold place, the thermometer in vacuo will grow cold almost as soon as the other thermometer. Is not the heat of the warm room conveyed through the vacuum by the vibrations of a much subtiler medium than air, which, after the air was drawn out, re- mained in the vacuum ? And is not this medium the same with that medium by which light is re- fracted and reflected? " The conclusion which such experiments force upon THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 405 us is. that there really exist in nature different media, related, yet distinct. If, therefore, I am understood literally instead of figuratively, when I speak of mes- merism as an individual agency, I shall not seem greatly to have violated the analogies of nature. This at feast I affirm, mesmerism has its own peculiar action : and therefore, for the sake of convenience, I Bhall denominate matter, as it is developed in this particular way. the mesmeric medium, a term with which. 1 trust, none of my readers will be disposed to quarrel; the advantage and propriety of referring one class of effects to one cause being manifest. We do this naturally in all cases where distinction is required. The imponderable fluids are still charac- terized, pro formd, by individual name-, though, we believe, thai they may be children of one parent From certain effects we are allowed to presume the existence of B luminous medium. J. therefore, by parity of reasoning, may be allowed, from other effects, to infer the existence of a mesmeric medium. And. in truth, there is no agency which more manifestly than this may claim to be distinctive, Since it is developed under quite other circumstances ; and. being developed, presents quite other phenome- na than any material action with which we have hitherto been acquainted. It neither results from a union of gases, nor from chemical composition. It is not developed by the rubbing of amber or the juxtaposition of minerals. It is elicited by certain actions of living nature alone. Viewed merely as a physical agency, it originates a sleep, sui generis, which pervades the external or- 406 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. " gans, yet leaves the intelligence free ; it brings the nervous system into a state of exceeding sensibility, rendering it cognizant of influences by which at other times it is wholly unaffected. Now, what is the medium we know not ; and therefore all that remains for us, in our ignorance, to do, is to gather as much information concerning it as we can. We cannot analyze it in the same manner as light, or separate it into its component parts, like the atmosphere ; but every agent has its own ele- ments, and consequently a method of analysis proper to itself. This is clear ; in its mode of action it can alone be made manifest ; its sensible action, there- fore, is the legitimate sphere in which it may be studied ; and, till we have all its facts and relations, we have only to observe its phenomena, and to state the results of our observation as plainly as possible. First, then, it is an agency, which has physical effects on man. 1 That any one, who has been conversant with even the first symptoms produced by mesmerism, should doubt the physical and distinct character of the agency, seems impossible. However marvellous be the train of mental phenomena consequent upon its operation, its primary effects are undoubtedly upon the body of the patient. Those who are neither under the predisposing influence of fear or of imagi- nation, who know not what they have to expect, 1 And on brutes also. On this point I could state many curious particulars; but I desire to startle my reader as little as possible, and to exclude from the present work whatever bears not strict ref- erence to the human influence. THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 407 who. perhaps, close their eyes from the beginning of the experiment, all agree in feeling a weight upon the eyelids, accompanied by a slight pricking: then fol- lows the sensation of a cold current of air, streaming in the direction of the mesmeriser's iingcrs, and of a torpor in the limbs, which gradually increases, until spontaneous motion becomes not only difficult but impossible to the patient A lady of much intelligence, whom I recently mesmerised at Rome, wai determined to observe, as long ELS she could retain her consciousness, what would be her sensations under the mesmeric influ- ence. On recovering from the sleep into which she had been successively thrown, she told me that at first she felt an increasing weight upon the eyelids, and an inclination to dose them, which she endeav- ored to combo! by looking often at b rase oontaining flowers that stood opposite to her. By degrees, however, a kind of vapor seemed to steal between herself and the object she regarded, until she could distinguish nothing whatever. Her eyelids were then irresistibly drawn together* After closing them she was aware of a tingling in the arms, and currents of air seemed to move around her in various direc- tions. The strength and velocity of these currents appeared constantly to increase, until the power of observation failed and consciousness waa suspended. Subsequently, when in the natural state, she begged me to say whether I had not moved my hands rapidly and violently when mesmerising her, so as to produce those currents of air which she had felt. I assured her that, on the contrary, I had moved my hands 408 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. slowly and gently all the time. She, then, still in- credulous, begged me to repeat the same movements which I had used in mesmerising. I did so, and she declared that she could not at all feel those currents to which she had been sensible in the incipient state of sleepwaking. E. A. (the youth who enjoyed such a high degree of mesmeric vision,) used to describe similar sensa- tions, and has frequently spoken to me of a kind of vapor rising before his eyes during mesmerisation. When questioned about this in sleepwaking, he declared that the vapor proceeded from me, and seemed to penetrate and pervade his frame. This he asserted to be the effectual cause of the mesmeric sleep. Nothing is more interesting than to mark the cor- respondences of sensation under mesmeric treatment, manifested by different persons, at different times, and in different places. Every fresh instance of Bucfa analogical feeling is as a new argument in favor of the reality and constancy of mesmeric influence. Other facts are not wanting, which contribute to bring the agency within the domain of physics. Like the galvanic force it seems capable of aggre- gation in being transmitted through kindred sub- stances. I have sometimes formed what may be called a mesmeric pile, by seating five or six persons together in a line, or half-circle, holding each other's hands : I have then mesmerised the first in the rank, who has passed on the influence to the second, who has again transmitted it to the third, and so on, by each press- THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 409 _ the hand held by each, at regular periods of time. Under this treatment I have invariably found that the mesmeric influence was most powerfully demon- strated in the person who was farthest from myself; that is, in the person who received the original impulse through the greatest number of intervening transmitters. The shades of gradation were also in these experiments justly preserved: the first person scarcely experiencing any sensation, the second feel* ing a more decided influence, and so in progression, till the last was thrown into the complete mesmeric stat in : That the nr-meric influence ifl capable of exhaustion and repair, like any other physical agency, has been frequently forced upon my conviction. That when I am strongest I can best mesmerise, is a (act known t<> me from personal experience; also, that in\ power declines in proportion to the fatigue consequent upon its exertion* Tin- was very strik- inglj exemplified in some experiments, in which Professor \ of Neufchatel, in Switzerland, kindly bore a part : th ifl enabling me to honor mes- merism by associating it with the name of one of the most distinguished naturalists in Europe* After mesmerising the Professor himself for an hour, during which I felt considerably fatigued, I made an essay upon a person, whom I usually influ- enced with full BUCCe88. Thifl time, however. I only partially succeeded ; and a third trial upon another individual, who. in general, was most susceptible to the mesmeric influence, was wholly unsuccessful. The failure was quite unlooked for, and astonished 35 410 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. the patient himself, who exclaimed, after I had mes- merised him for a considerable time, u This is sur- prising ! I feel nothing whatever ! You produce no effect upon me this evening." After resting half an hour, and taking a glass of wine, I again attempted to influence this patient. I now succeeded better than on the first trial, yet still could bring him no further than the first stage of imperfect mesmeric sleep. I may also remark that the act of mesmerising is followed by a very peculiar sensation of exhaustion and fatigue, for which the slight muscular exertion which the process demands is quite insufficient to account. Exercise in the open air, and such means as are best calculated to restore the bodily strength in general, I have found to be the best restoratives on such occasions. Yet, though particular acts of mesmerising induce temporary fatigue, it is quite certain that the general mesmeric force of an indi- vidual is strengthened, like any other corporeal gift. by just and regular exercise. As a magnet which is laid by has not half the power that it has when kept in action, so, as I have found by experience that a mesmeriser who is out of practice has actually less of mesmeric influence than when he mesmerises regu- larly, with a due attention to the u ne quid minis.'' This, again, brings the medium within the domain of physics. Another discovery which I have been enabled to make respecting the action of mesmerism is. that it decidedly bears a relation to the slowness or rapidity of the mesmeriser s respiration during the act of mes- THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 411 merising. I have tried this again and again, and always with the same result. In proportion to the rapidity of my breathing was the effect produced — an effect independent of the actual effluence of the breath upon the patient (though this indeed also aids the mesmeric processes), for the same result has en- sued when my head has been turned away from the person I was mesmerising. How singularly this fact connects the mesmeric with the chemical and vital forces 1 need not observe. At present it aeema necessary that I should reply loan objection, which, with some apparent justice, may be advanced against the claim which mesmerism puts forward to be considered as a physical agent It has been asserted that, when the attention of mesmeric patient- is preoccupied and diverted from the mesmeric processes; or, when the imagination has oot been previously advised of an effect to follow, the agencj is null. This statement demand- an examination the more ious, inasmuch as it is one of those half-truths which Coleridge has denounced as fatal to true phi- losophy. It UlUSt be allowed that the mesmeric influence IS, to a certain degree, impeded, should it be essayed upon a person who is determined to resist it, or whose mind is actively engaged upon other matters ; but doc- tin-, can this prove that the agency is null, save in the imagination of the patient? The only thing that it demonstrates with certainty is that which every rational man who has at all studied the subject must concede — namely, that the force employed in the 412 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. - mesmeric processes is not sudden, or violent in its action, but of the nature of those subtile influences which it requires a certain attention, and indeed edu- cation of the sensibility, to perceive. A savage has been known to track his prey like a dog, by the scent alone ; and, in doing so, he must, of necessity, fix all his attention upon the fine exhalations, whereby he is guided. But how plainly absurd it would be to affirm on that account, that there was no actual ex- citing cause of the sensations of the savage ! But, it is argued, the imagination must be forewarned before the effects, called mesmeric, can occur ; and is not this sufficient to refer them to the imitative power of the imagination ? The answer is not difficult. Imagination, indeed, imitates ; but then it must have something to imitate. The very expression presupposes a model, and gives real existence to the subject in debate. Granting that which indeed I do not concede — namely, that the effects of mesmerism can be proved without mesmerism, and by the ima- gination solely, it by no means follows that certain effects have not at certain times been produced by mesmerism, and by pure mesmerism. That which is spurious argues that which is true, and many copies of a picture place the existence of an original beyond a doubt. Again : they who draw strong conclusions against mesmerism by affirming that it cannot take effect un- less the imagination be prepared to receive it. should remember that they, who, deeming they shall feel nothing under mesmerism, and do actually feel no- thing, are both forewarned and forearmed against the THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 413 influence in debate, and are thus themselves under the predisposing sway of the imagination as much as their opponents, only in a different manner ; the one party believing they shall, the other that they shall not, experience certain effects. Under these circumstance*, how the latter can pretend to a more accurate judgment on the point than the former, I confess I cannot perceive, m Imagination does much," the anti-mesmerists — granted; and let us have the full benefit of the principle. If imagination be so potent, it may also render insensible to mesmeric influence those who are predetermined to feel nothing of it. V< t more: the forceofthe mind to resist even the most powerful influences ma] be easily shown by fecta to !)'■ great — Day, incalculable. In Lbckhart's Life of Scott, an anecdote, proving this, is related by >t1 himself , of one of the Duke of Buccleugh's farmers. "His father had given him a quantity of laudanum (writes Sir Waller) instead of some other medicine. The mistake was instantly discovered ; but the young man had sufficient energy and force of mind to combat the operation of the drug. While all around him were stupid with fear, he rose, sad- dled his horse, and rode to Selkirk (six or seven miles) : thus saving the time that the doctor must have taken in coming to him. It is \ery curious that his agony of mind was able to suspend the ope- ration of the drug until he had alighted, when it instantly began to operate. He recovered per- fectly/'' The degree to which a person may resist, yet still be influenced by the mesmeric agency, when pre- 35* 414 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM* occupied by some counteracting idea, was, on one occasion, demonstrated to me, and, as it were, mark- ed off and measured in an interesting manner. A friend of mine, at Cambridge, who knew no- thing whatever of animal magnetism (as it was then called) but the name, consented to let me try an ex- periment upon him before some incredulous persons, who had said that they never would believe in the agency until they saw it exhibited upon some one who did not even know that he was to go to sleep. It being ascertained that Mr. H (the sincerest of all men) was really ignorant of even so much mes- meric lore, I and my patient sate down in our pro- per relative positions. At the end of five minutes (though it was the unsleepy time of noon) Mr. H began to close his eyes and to nod ; but soon started, rubbed his eyes, shook himself, and went through all the usual formula of a person who wishes to keep awake. This alternate nodding and arousing went on for some time, when, tired at length of such un- satisfactory results, I gave the matter up, and quitted my chair. The patient was then questioned as to what he had felt? " Only very sleepy," he replied. K I experienced no electric shock, nor any thing of the kind, though I watched and waited for it." " But if you felt sleepy, why did not you go to sleep?" asked some one. " Oh," answered Mr. H , " what would I not have given to have gone to sleep ; but I thought I must on no account do this, as I was to keep a sharp look out for the electric shock !" My reader may smile at this, but I can assure him that the ignorance of my friend respecting the effects of THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 415 mesmerism is no measure of his information on other subjects. It appears, then, that the only concession we have to make to the anti-mesmerist is. that the mood of mind and body which is most favorable to the recep- tion of mesmeric influence is that which Wordsworth has characterized under the t i t It - of •• a wise passive- How completely this refutes the arguments, or rathei assumptions, of those, who would resolve all mesmerism into imagination, is manifest. But it is time that this question should be for ever set at rest. How such a cause as imagination could at any time be assigned <>r accepted as explanatory of mesmeric phenomena, is matter of wonder, and that it should l». -,,. diminishes one's respect for the icity of the human Species. Here, indeed, is in- efficienf causation! Here, tally, i- gratuitous as- sumption! 1 have heard of imagination keeping persons awake, hut never of its setting them to sleep. This bus] power holds no possible alliance with mesmerism, whose gentle influences, like streams, thai are only heard when we listen for them in the hush of night, must he attended to with the quiet patience of a peaceful spirit. Bui the imagination theory is really too absurd to merit a serious refutation. A thousand times 1 have seen mesmeric patients placed under circumstances where the action of imagination was plainly impossible. In proof of this, I have only to refer to the preceding books of this work. Persons, it will there be seen, have been thrown into the mesmeric state when asleep, and 416 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. wholly unadvised of any experiment to be tried upon them. They have been drawn towards the mesmer- iser from a distance, when standing with their backs to him ; they have manifested phenomena, coinciding with those displayed by other mesmeric patients at different times and at different places, and which could not have resulted from imitation, since the patients themselves, not knowing a previous type, were plainly incapable of producing a copy. Surely facts like these imperatively call upon us to acknowledge an agency, which we may call mesmeric, or what we please, so long as we confound it not with imagination, imitation, et hoc genus omne of inefficient and inapplicable causes. But our views of mesmerism, as a distinct and physical agent, would, indeed, be imperfect, were we to stop here. Ourselves would then be guilty of uttering only half the truth. Physical though the agent be, its offices all touch upon life and thought so nearly, that to regard it simply in a mechanical light is impossible. In order to know it rightly, or in any other than a partial manner, we must consider it in its relationship to ourselves, living, breathing men. If purely physical, why should it produce such singular mental effects ? and why should it not affect all men alike ? These are questions which will occur, and which demand a satisfactory answer. The cause must be sought in its acting more espe- cially upon that most mysterious part of us — the nervous system ; — on the apparatus of sensation, the builder-up of all we are, of all we know ; — on that wondrous portion of our being, which occupies the THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 417 very confines where mind and matter dimly meet ; — on that which is more intimately ourselves than our mere external frame, of which it appears to be the strength and the life : for we may lose any member of motion and yet preserve in their integrity all our sources of information ; but a trifling injury to the optic or auditory nerve will cut us oil* from a whole world of knowledge, and a slight pressure on the brain may remove Ofi at once beyond the pale of humanity, into that fearful region where man's " thoughts are combinations of disjointed things. 9 ' Let us further consider that, in fact, there is nothing which affects us physically that does not also, to a certain extent, affect US mentally, nay morally : every nt in nature being calculated to call into action all the capacities of our being; thus showing how exquisitely, according to Wordsworth's beautiful phi- >hy, u The external world is fitted to the mind." Light, by it- presence or absence, disposes us to courage or fear, joy or sorrow, hope or despondency. Heat, when properly moderated, gives us a sensation of well-being, of good-humor, and is favorable to the exercise of our intellectual faculties ; while, on the other hand, cold is apt to extinguish both our wit and our amiability. Pope remarks that the benevo- lence of some persons depends on the state of the atmosphere, and solves a generous action emanating from a churlish mind, by suggesting that u Perhaps the wind just shifted from the east." 418 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. Shakspeare's advice not to ask a favor of a man till he has well dined will also be remembered. Wine, and every species of stimulus, affect the mind through the medium of the body. Even so mechanical a force as that of electricity, if made to operate upon us, ex- cite in us, according to our several characters, feel- ings of surprise, fear, aversion, or curiosity. If these remarks be true, as regards such powers as act only partially on the nervous system, how much more must they apply to an agency which stimulates not locally, but generally, the very capacities of sensa- tion ! Other agents affect the nerves circuitously, through the intervention of modifying organs, but this, removing out of the way, as has been seen, the barriers of the external senses, proceeds at once and directly to the seat of internal sensibility. Its effects also have been shown to be as durable as they are potent, not operating, like electricity, which gives a shock and is gone, but manifesting itself, when once set in action, for a length of time, so as to demon- strate that the nervous system can be charged with it in a very permanent and peculiar manner. What singular results may not be expected from the opera- tion of an agency like this ! That mesmerism, then, should develope certain mental phenomena in those whom it influences, is no proof whatever that it may not originate physically. Neither, if it should appear to affect all men diversely, and some not at all, is the reality of its ex- istence to be called in question. All agencies in na- ture are neither electric nor irresistible, and we can- not but allow that there is a class of powers which THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 419 act upon man constitutionally rather than mechani- cally, and so are modified by accidental circumstances of health or temperament. Even should we ulti- mately be forced to rank mesmerism amongst these, we should by no means have annulled its agency ; we should but have ascertained correctly its specific character. Still keeping in view that its influence is more pe- culiarly directed upon the nervous system, w r e shall learn to appreciate it justly, and. even should it ap- pear hopelessly irregular, accept that irregularity as the condition of its existence. How, indeed, can we expect from mesmerism the constancy of a mere mechanical impulse? Its diversities have their origin in the verj essence of our nature. The agency, which we have to examine, is almost identified with man. the ever-changeful — the infinitely varied. No two constitutions are alike, and the nervous system exhibits a separate character in every separate per- son. It*, then, we consider that the action of medical remedies, or of material substances, even though they may not directly affect the economy of the nerves, is greatly modified by the temperament of the indi- vidual to whom they are applied, so that certain idiosyncracies will convert a means of cure or a whole- some nutriment into a poison ; above all, if we re- flect on the varied peculiarities of the senses of various men. causing that which is a pleasing odor to one to become an overpowering torture to another (as in the case of the Roman women, who swoon at flowers and perfumes), and that which is discord to certain ears to sound as harmony to those which are differ- 420 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. ■> ently constituted : thus reasoning, we must perceive that an influence, which should act immediately and generally on the nervous system, would, of necessity, exhibit somewhat of a distinctive character, in every separate case. It is, above all, of importance to remember that the variability of the recipients does by no means prove the agent itself variable. How would you that the effects, even though coming from a single and permanent cause, should be similar, seeing that the subjects who manifest them are diverse ? Does not the air produce different sounds from different instruments of music, though it be a single known and permanent agent? Even should a man be altogether insusceptible of the mesmeric influence, he has surely no just cause for disavowing its reality. Is he not, perhaps, insen- sible to the operation of many other powers by which a number of his fellow-beings are invariably affected ? May it not be argued that mortal temperaments — from the phlegmatic to the sanguine — differ as essentially as water and mercury, and that as little should we expect men of opposite constitutions to be similarly affected by mesmerism, as that the above- named substances should freeze at the same degree of temperature ? We should also remember that he, who is at present insensible to the force, may, at some future time, obtain a personal proof of its efficacy. We are not always in the same frame, nor always capable of being affected by the same causes. An exposure to cold, which we brave with impunity to-day, may be our death to-morrow, and the dose of THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 421 laudanum, or of mercury, which, when we suffer, is but a blessed relief from pain, may, at another time, be to us deleterious or even fatal. That these ob- servations hold good as respects mesmerism has been proved in the recorded case of M. Itard, one of the members of the French Academy of Medicine, who, in 1826, i xperienced no effect from mesmeric treat- ment, but in the year following was relieved by it from headache and chronic rheumatism ; and is it always BO certain that they, who will not own even to themselves that they are affected by an influence they despise, are in truth so proof against it? One thing at least 1 know. Aware by experience of the ex- ternal indications of mesmeric affection, 1 have been able to detect them in some who professed to feel nothing unusual under the mesmeric processes. It may also be suspected thai they. who. like a certain fri( nd of mine, commemorated in these paps, en- deavor to solve a problem, during mesmerisation, do in fact experience something ot* the agency to which they oppose BUch stent methods of resistance. Let us but -rant to mesmerism tha' license.' which we concede to every agent upon an examination of which we desire to enter. In all physical sciences, which are based on expe- riment and observation, it must be granted that the most important phenomena depend for their repro- duction on the co-presence of a number of condi- tion-, difficult to be obtained separately, harder still to be assembled and concentrated in one general re- sult. If this be true as regards physical science, it still more forcibly applies to a science confessedly 36 422 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. S mental as well as physical. In mesmerism we have a task incomparably more difficult than to resolve the light into its definite and primal elements, to study the formation of a crystal, or to superintend the ac- tion of a voltaic battery ; we are called upon to dis- sect the mind with all its delicate and fleeting hues, and to unfold the caprices and the varieties of the human constitution. Under these circumstances, when a mesmeric phe- nomenon has been observed, how many causes, im- possible in the shifting train of casualties to be sum- moned up at will, must be reunited before it can re- cur ! The instrument with which we have to deal is too delicate to be calculated upon as one would cal- culate on mathematical certainties. The powers which we have to investigate are amongst the most occult in nature, to be traced only by a few of their scattered, but most extraordinary effects. Add to this that observation respecting the influence in question is yet in its infancy ; the relation between its forces, whether negative or positive, is yet a mystery ; its statics have not yet been ascertained ; but yet, and in spite of all these drawbacks (and this is much to say), the reader may gather from former portions of this work that the irregularity of mesmerism is to be un- derstood with a limitation. It is of degree rather than kind. The diversity consists in the proportion wherein the agent affects various persons, — in the extent of the scale, and the fineness of the grada- tions, as they ascend from effects which are almost imperceptible to phenomena which exhibit the full mesmeric force. The friends of mesmerism, per- THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 423 haps, need only claim for it the same experimental patience that is required in examining the properties of light, where a cloud that passes over the solar rays may prevent those beautiful appearances, which are dependent upon their polarization, from captivating the gazer's i These views of the action of the mesmeric medium are not. be it remembered, presented as complete, but rather as such as are forced upon us by the re- cency of the discovery, and the consequently imper- fect state of observation respecting it. I have not forgotten that the great agencies of nature stand in a two-fold relation to man. namely, physical and physi- co-inathematical. and are therefore capable of being considered in a two-fold point of view ; that is, either as they aflecl all men alike, mechanically, or each man iii a different manner, constitutionally, lint I contend that the one effect IS not less real than the other, and perhaps that which presents the most variety is not the least interesting to be considered, though it is with the certain and the steadfast that Bcience is chiefly occupied; If, before the analysis of the atmosphere had been complete, and its laws of density or temperature established, a man had asserted, because of its various effects on the various constitutions of men. that there was no atmosphere, how plainly ridiculous would have been the induc- tion ! — or, if a pseudo-philosopher, in a sort of foolish rage and spite against himself, were known formerly to have renounced as flat, stale, and unpro- fitable, the study of the constitutional effects of the atmosphere upon his fellow-beings, because he could 424 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. not reduce them to mechanical laws, how manifestly erring and absurd would his conduct now appear to us. Experience of the past should teach us not to de- spair of seeing the statics and dinamics of the mes- meric force plainly laid down. Who, in the early periods of science, would have ventured to predict the invention of a balance, whereby the magnetic action could be reduced to weight and measure ? Look at the history of magnetical discoveries ! What patience — what erroneous guesses — what feeble dawnings of truth — what lessons of hope are there ! The knowledge of magnetical effects is as old, at least, as the era of Homer, by whom they are dis- tinctly referred to ; but it is less than a century ago ' that Michell established the true law of magnetic action : and mesmerism has not yet completed its seventieth year, — a measure of existence which the Psalmist has assigned as the period of one man's life ! Is this a sufficient space for the development of a subject the most fertile and the most vast, because the most intimately connected with man ? This, at least, even in the present state of mes- meric science, may be affirmed, that, considered as a force, the agency betrays no slight indications of its affinity with mechanical powers, and that certain circumstances regarding it bring to us nearly a full conviction that its effects are dependent on a certain invariable proportion between the mesmeric force of the individual who dispenses, and that of him who 1 In 1750. THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 4:25 submits to receive the influence. What that propor- tion is, once ascertained (and how can this be but by repeated observation?), would reduce mesmerism to a law. and to a certainty. Its mental and remedial effects will indeed necessarily always continue to be varied according to the character and temperament of its patients, hut its purely physical agency might be brought within conditions, perhaps narrower and more simple than we can now conceive. Supposing (as xuue now deem) the vital action to be electric, that which is called a man's nervous force, or consti- tution, would depend on the possession of a certain original measure of the electric fluid. Were this found to be the CMC (inv idea may raise a smile), a neurometer, or instrument to ascertain the nervous power of a person, might give to mesmerism the pre- cision which science requires. Who would have thought, at one tiin<\ a DM -a-ure of magnetism pos- sible ? My suggestion maybe deemed absurd; but this will not alter the facts of mesmerism. At present we are only acquainted with the general result, and not with the elements that compose it; but this is no more a proof that it is not composed of elements, than the ancient ignorance what water was could have demonstrated that it was not composed of two airs in certain proportions. I will state two or three cases out of the many that have inclined me to think that mesmerism is a question of proportional force. A friend of mine at Cambridge was susceptible of being influenced by myself, but transiently and imperfectly, while, on the 36* 426 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. ^ other hand, he was at once and invariably brought into the mesmeric state by being subjected to the action of a young fellow-student, who (as to the rest) used no art in his manipulations, and merely imitated rudely my proceedings and gestures. Again : the brother of a celebrated sculptor at Rome was always mesmerised by me in a few minutes without difficulty, but to other influence he was by no means so sus- ceptible. On one occasion, before a large party at Rome, I instructed a distinguished artist in the necessary movements, and set him down to mesmer- ise the gentleman alluded to, precisely as I was ac- customed to do. No result, however, at the end of half an hour had ensued. I then took the patient's hands myself, and in a very few minutes he was thrown into a deep mesmeric slumber. Other per- sons tried the same experiment with a similar result. E. A., whom I could mesmerise in a few seconds, was operated upon for an hour by another person, who, in other cases, had displayed immense mesmeric power, without experiencing any effect whatever. An interesting anecdote, related to me by Dr. Chapelain of Paris, corroborates the above. An English lady, whom he was treating mesmeri- cally, continued, after many days, insensible to his influence. Her son, a child of about ten years of age, who was present while the doctor mesmerised, exclaimed one day, " I think I could make mamma sleep. Will you let me try ? " Dr. Chapelain, cu- rious to see what the little fellow would do, laugh- ingly consented. He was surprised at the gravity and skill with which the boy imitated all the pro- THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 427 cesses which he himself had employed, but still more surprised to behold that in ten minutes the patient was thrown into a mesmeric slumber. From facts like these we cannot but conclude that it is not the strength of the mesmeriser, but the pro- portion between the respective strengths of mesmeri- ser and patient, which ensures success; and that the less <»r more on cither side would indifferently prevent a perfect result. To ascertain these relations seems to me to be the great end and object of research as regards mesmerism at present. In this labor, let us not be less active and enduring than men of science have shown themselves tor many a meaner object. What can !>«' so ungrateful a toil as that of endeav- oring to reduce the weather to a law. and the varia- tion- of atmospheric temperature to a certainty? Yet tlii< ha- been attempted, and i- attempted still. And how: by the accumulation of observations, which, since art ifl Ion- and life is short, must rather serve a- ;i valuable bequest to posterity than as a profit to ourselves. All that we have yet ascertained on this point, and that is much, is, that the sum of each year's weather and temperature is very nearly alike; that, as Whewell expresses it, " there is an invaria- ble result of the most variable quantities." A simi- lar discovery respecting the apparently lawless agency of mesmerism will. I am certain, reward the perse- verance of those who continue to observe its pheno- mena with honesty and patience. Having shown that the mesmeric agency may truly be ranked amongst physical influences, and that it is as real an action of matter as any other which is made 428 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM, -s known to us by visible effects, I proceed to state such additional particulars respecting the agency as I have ascertained by careful and cautious experiment. That which I have now unequivocally to affirm of the mesmeric medium is, that it is primarily set in motion by the human mind. I am aware that, in asserting this, I am committing Use majeste against the French goddess of reason, who has banished the mind altogether out of her do- minions ; but for justification I must appeal to a higher sovereign, Truth, namely, under whose aegis I would, if possible, take refuge from the storms which are probably brewing against me. " What ! v it will be said, " do you render your mesmeric agency depend- ent on the shifting human mind, on the variable hu- man will, and yet claim for it the character and con- stancy of a physical influence ? What power over physics have the mind and will ? When was thought ever known to set matter in motion ? " These ques- tions I dare not answer, fallacious though they be, on my own authority. I am a mesmeriser, and my rea- soning will be suspected. Let me, then, appeal to the great intellect, which long ago and unanswerably solved the inquiry, " Whence we derive our ideas of power ? " From Locke's splendid chapter on this subject I select as much as is necessary for my pur- pose. " Bodies, by our senses, do not afford us so clear and distinct an idea of active power as w r e have from reflection of the operation of our minds ; for all power relating to action, and there being but two sorts of action, whereof we have any idea, viz : thinking and THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 429 motion, let us consider whence we have the clearest ideas of the powers which produce these actions ; — 1. Of thinking. Body affords us no idea at all; it is only from reflection that we have that. 2. Neither have we from body any idea of the beginning of mo- tion. A body at rest affords us no idea of any active power to move, and when it is set in motion itself, that motion is rather a passion than an action in it; for when the ball obeys the stroke of a billiard stick, it is not any action of the ball, but bare passion ; also when, impulse, it sets another ball in motion that lav in it< why. it only communicates the motion it had received from another, and loses in itself so much as the other receivedj which gives us but a very ob- scure idea of an active power of moving in body, whilst we observe it only to transfer, but not produce any motion ; for it is but a very obscure id a of power which reaches not the production of the action, but the continuation of the passion. "The idea of the beginning of motion we have only from reflection on what passes in ourselves, where we lind. by experience, that barely by willing it, barely by a thought of the mind, we can move the parts of our bodies, which were before at rest. * * # " This, at least, I think evident, that we find in ourselves a power to begin or forbear, continue or end several actions of our minds, and motions of our body, barely by a thought, or preference of the mind, or- dering, or, as it were, commanding the doing, or not doing such or such a particular action : — this power, which the mind has thus to order the consideration of any idea, or the forbearing to consider it, or to 430 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. prefer the motion of any part of the body to its rest, and vice versa in any particular instance, is that which we call the will." If we allow (and how can we deny ?) the truth of the above reflections, we must perceive that not merely our very idea of motion is derived from the mind's operations, but that reasoning, as alone we can reason, from what we know, we must conclude that all motion whatever originates with mind and with mind alone. And why start at the notion that the mind, in mesmerism, is the acting force ? Do we know any other ? Mind and motion, as cause and consequence, are indissolubly connected, the only real antecedent and consequent that can be shown in perfect juxtaposition, and demonstrated to us truly by our self-consciousness. Besides, shall we, who may be said to create to ourselves all we see by thought, doubt of the power of the human mind? One should think that, above all persons, the man of science, who bases all mechanics on the principle of the inertia of matter, and yet cannot but admit " that there is probably no portion of inorganic matter that is not in a state of relative motion," must be aware of the necessity of quite another than a material force to produce all this action in naturally quiescent bodies. Even Descartes (as Pascal says) was forced to bring in God to set the world in motion, though, had it been feasible, he would have shoved him altogether out of his philosophy. The principle once admitted that motion originates with mind, it is plain that such motions as occur in the mesmeric medium, and are THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 431 thence transferred to a human body, are primarily produced by mind ; — in other words, by will. Why should we be startled at the expression ? Is the will a nullity ? Has it no force, no prerogatives ? Let us consider what every day and every hour our will effects, merely in controling and wielding mat- ter. How accurately we move the complicated mechanism of our limbs, through the impulsions of our volition ! The least disobedience or want of pliability on their part would mar the slightest of our bodily actions. Let us. with Dr. Maculloch, take the cases of archery and slinking. "It requires little reflection to see that, under the complicated action of so many muscles, the problem to be solved i- so intricate that DO mathematician could ever hope to assign what was necessary to produce a result, which is as certainly as it is rapidly affected, without any calculation. * * u Hut the precision of muscular action becomes much more wonderful when we refer to the cause, and ask in what manner a definite quantity of cohe- rive attraction and also various definite and unequal quantities in succession can be transmitted through a nerve, while this too is done by an act of the will, yet of will merely knowing what it desires, not what it performs." ' Our knowledge that the will acts, yet our igno- rance how it acts, on matter, should prepare us to receive, without a dogmatic denial at least, proofs of an extension in its capacities and its sphere. If, 1 Dr. Maculloch, on the Attributes of God. 432 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. - in some mysterious way, I actuate another, it is scarcely more wonderful than that I actuate myself. It is true that the latter comes within the range of my every day experience ; but can I any more com- prehend it ? How great a force the will either has, or wields, may be almost measured off to our senses in a very simple but striking manner. Let two covered vessels precisely alike, the one empty, the other full of some heavy substance, such as leaden bullets, be placed before a person. Let him first lift the full vessel, and let him then be told to raise the empty one, w T ith an understanding that it is of equal weight with the first. The person do- ing this will put into the action so much unnecessary force, from the expectation of being about to lift a great weight, that his baffled vigor will, in its re- action, cause quite a painful concussion in the mus- cles of the arm. Now, could that force, which, as it were, returns upon himself, be directed outwards, it is plain that it might produce a very powerful and peculiar action in the media wherewith we are sur- rounded. And wherefore not directed outwards ? This at least we know, that the will is really the primary agent which enables us to move all bodies foreign to and apart from ourselves. In these cases, indeed, it acts through intermediate agencies which are visible to us. But there is nothing whatever to render it impossible that the mind should act some- times by unseen, yet even more patent intermediaries than the accustomed. After all, what astonishes us in mesmerism is not that the mind is shown capable THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 433 of producing motion, but that it is exhibited produc- ing motion in a different way, as we conceive, from that with which our experience is familiar. That the mind should originate a series of motions of which we cannot behold certain of the intervening links (I speak of cases in which the mesmeriser influences his patient from a distance), — this is the true ground of our wonder and incredulity. Yet, in fact, the very same thing occurs in our commonest experience. When I move one of my fingers, I am only acquaint- ed with the first fact and the last in a sequence of events, the intermediate circumstances of which are hidden from my knowledge, and which are, proba- bly, very numerous. Some of the hidden links in the series'l knew from reason. From the anatomist I learn, that Bay mind, in the first instance, moves a portion of my brain (for certain injuries to the brain render voluntary motion impossible) ; that this again communicates an impulse to a nerve — (for cut the nerve and the impulse reaches not the muscle) that then again a muscle is moved, and finally the finger. The simplest voluntary motion, then, is but an im- pulse, originating with mind in the first place, and thence transferred through a series of atoms. There is a sequence of changes, nothing more ; some of which are known to us — others not. There is (to use the language of Locke) but one real action, yet many passions, or communicated motions. And what is mesmerism but this ? The same definition suits motion whether produced mesmerically, or nor- mally. The same circumstances attend both. Again, even should we pursue motion beyond the limits of 37 434 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. our own bodies, we shall find that there are invisible links in all the impulsions which we communicate to matter. The philosopher knows that we are not in real contact with anything which we appear to touch — that there is always something invisible be- tween us and the object that we handle. Again : do I not, by every motion of my body, change the relative position of the atoms of the media that surround me ? Do I not displace the air, cause various motion in the waves of light, and influence nature to a distance around me, which it were vain to attempt to calculate ? The wonder, then, seems to be — not that the mind should produce changes in surrounding objects — but that, being itself " the fountain-head of motion," it should not move matter more forcibly and generally. Doubtless it would be so, had not the all-wise Ruler of creation confined the human mind within necessary limits. Could the will sway the material as it does the immaterial world, what bounds would there be to the tyrant's caprice, to the conqueror's ambition? Mountains would crumble as a dream, and oceans be dried up at our bidding. A Napoleon would " make a sop of all the solid globe." These ideas are not so extrava- gant as his who doubts of the power of the human will. By that alone we do great things ; by that alone we conquer kingdoms, or ourselves ; by that alone we achieve the hourly miracle of moving mat- ter, united with, or extraneous to ourselves. Is the will, then, a nullity, whose influence is to be excluded from our consideration when we treat on any subject which nearly concerns man ? THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 435 Let us now proceed, perhaps with fewer preju- dices, to consider the proofs before us, that in mes- merism it is the mind which originates the impulse. It is true that, in general cases, the mesmeriser em- ploys visible and physical means to produce his effects. He is either placed in contact with the per- son he desires to influence, or he makes use of cer- tain looks and gestures, which, to those who regard only the superficial and the visible, may appear to be the moving causes of the impression produced on the other person. But let us remember that even the most careless of our looks and gestures do really spring from mind and will, acting, indeed, with vari- ous degrees of force yet still always with a certain force. -\<>\\ evefl as respects these outward mani- festations of an acting mind, I have invariably found that mesmeric effects were always in exact propor- tion to the degree of voluntary effort I put into the performance. This was more especially the case as r» garded the 1 action of the eve. When my patient's eyes were closed, and he therefore had no means of knowing what I was about, 1 have still found that, the more of actwi ui/zt/iLi- I employed, the greater Was the effect produced. The necessity of giving an undivided attention to my work was, of course, most palpable in the first lew times of mesmerising a per- son ; for it is evident that the more the patient's sen- sibility was developed under successive mesmerisa- tion, the less force he would require to be used in influencing him ; consequently the less mental effort would be required on my part. This is a remark to which it is of importance to attend, for some persons 436 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. in very advanced stages of mesmeric sensibility will be affected by gestures in which the mind of the per- former would seem to have little share ; that it can have no share therein I trust I have demonstrated to be impossible. Yet even when acting on a patient so accustomed to my influence as was E. A., I found that I by no means mesmerised him so well as usual on days when my mind was preoccupied with other matters. He Was himself peculiarly sensitive to any remission of my attention towards him, and would frequently say to me (and always with justice), " You arc not think- ing of me just now." The poor blind German boy used similarly, and with cqua.1 correctness, to com- plain of my ceasing to influence him properly ; and this, from the absence of one of his senses, and that the most observant, is testimony the more remarkable and uncorrupted. A very certain proof that, when attention remits, there is a remission also of mesmeric power, was af- forded me also in the course of some experiments, which Professor Agassiz, of Neufchatel* permitted me to try upon himself. In these I was of course peculiarly desirous of concentrating all my attention upon the effects to be produced on a man of learn- ing and of science. The very circumstances of the case compelled me to exert my mind in an undivided manner. But one evening the non-arrival of expected letters from home forced me into another train of feeling, and, during the mesmeric processes, I could not prevent my thoughts from occasionally straying from the scene before me into anxious surmises as to the THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 437 cause of the silence of my friends. My patient, al- though he had his eves closed, and his limbs para- lyzed in the torpor of the mesmeric slumber, was not slow to perceive the wanderings of my attention, and. although I was at the time engaged in the mes- meric processes, to all outward appearance as actively as usual, called nut to me constantly and coincidently with the remission of jny thoughts — " Vou intluence me no longer. You arc nof exerting yourself/' <)n another occasion L was convinced in a manner the most odd. and even comic, how great is the in- fluence of the will in directing the impulses of the mesmeric medium. 1 should hesitate about relating the Story w< re it not that, ill a new science, every thin- has it- importance, and the least studied effects are often die m<>M valuable and sure. Traveling in a Btage coach in England, with three other inside passengers (one of them at Cambridge friend, to whom I i an appeal tor the truth of the relation). 1 fell into the following train of thought : — " If mesmeric ef- fect- occur only through certain contact and gestures* Why i- it that men never mesmerise each other una- wares i At a public meeting, in a church, in a the- atre in all places where human beings congregate, there i- plenty of the mesmeric intluence going about unappropriated* Why i- it that this does not take effect, and that no one should sleep in such circum- stances, unless the orators arc prosy, and the play Stupid enough to act a- a soporific} Surely this is because the intluence requires a will to concentrate it and to give it a particular direction, before it can individually operate. Now, here am I, in a most fe- 37* 438 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. - vorable position for mesmerising the person opposite to me. His knees and feet are in contact with mine — in the true mesmeric position. At present he does not look sleepy in the least ; and up to the present moment the idea of mesmerising him has not entered my head. Let me see if this want of the idea is the true cause why I have not hitherto affected him. If, by a silent exertion of my will, I can now, from wide awake, bring him fast asleep in a very short period, the relation between cause and effect will be, I think, pretty well established." " Sur ces entrefaites." as the French say, I began mentally to exert my volition, and to fix my attention on my unconscious patient. From time to time I looked at him mesmericallv. but watched my opportunity, when his own attention, being turned elsewhere, permitted me to stare at him, without the fear of being challenged. In about ten minutes the charm began to operate. My victim's eyes kept reverting unconsciously, as it were, to my face, which, however, I turned away whenever I saw him looking at me, and at length lie began to shut them with that slow and peculiar motion which is in- dicative of mesmerisation. They did not, however, close, but remained more than half open, becoming perfectly fixed, and, as it were dead, displaying the whites in a manner which by no means contributed to embellish a physiognomy naturally none of the handsomest. Behold, then, my man asleep ; so soundly, indeed, that the coach stopped, and horses were changed without his being in any way disturbed from his mes- meric nap. When we were again in motion I began THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 439 to be agitated by some strange doubts, whether my will would be found as effectual to end, as it had been to create, the spell which held the slumberer, who always remained in the same position as at first, with hi< eves more dead than ever. As I had soon to quit the coach. I really feared that my sleeper, unawakened, might follow me. attached by mesmeric attraction to my side. The question of the will's supremacy was now to be tried to the utmost. First, without any effort of volition directed tb the end of awakening my patient. I stirred about, spoke aloud, and let down the window next me with a rattle ; my fellow -passen- did not awake. I then, concentrating my will on the one idea of dissipating the mesmeric influence, t forward with something of that motion of my hands which, in QSUal circumstances, accompanied the idea. Immediately my patient began to stir, move his eyes, and rub them. Marin- -till rather wildly, and in a confused manner muttering that he really thought he must have been asl< ep« 1 now proceed to relate some more serious exper- iments tried at Antwerp, on Anna M , relating to the influence of thought and will on the mesmeric medium, and its power of communicating impulses 1 i b distai* The patient just mentioned was. it will he remem- d. in a -late df mesmeric >< nihility and relation with myself, which successive mesmermngs had car- ried to a very high pitch. Yet by my mere bodily presence Anna M was in no way affected. Unless I mesmerised her with intention, no effect was produced. Never had I led her to conceive it 440 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM, -s possible that I could mesmerise her in any than the usual way, that is, by contact Mental action produces motion in the brain, for the sensible fatigue in that organ, consequent upon intense thinking, proves that during thought it has been exercised in a real and physical manner. The materialist even will confess this, and more energet- ically, for he will affirm that motions of the brain produce thought. Let it be so, if he will ; that makes no difference in our argument. Motion of the brain is still, and under all circumstances, allowed to be the accompaniment of thought, either as its antecedent or consequent. Can that motion be possibly insu- lated amidst the connected mechanism of the uni- verse, where one thing hinges on another, and where the touching of a single spring is but the commence- ment of a series of actions (." wheel within wheel involved"), which may reach to the throne of Om- nipotence itself? Can any one motion live to itself alone, die where it was born, and be bounded by the substance in which it has originated? Granting that, which few will, in the present day be disposed to deny, that there is one pervading me- dium throughout nature, infinitely elastic and im- pressionable, it follows, as a consequence, that our thoughts must necessarily, in agitating the brain, agitate also the great ocean in which animate and inanimate matter has its being, with which we are in partial relation, with which God is in infinite re- lation. Let philosophers pursue their own views to their termination, and subscribe to the consequences of their own theories, and I shall be content. He who adopts the undulatory hypothesis, and contends for THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 445 the existence of a pervading ether, is already more than half way on his road to mesmerism. These reflections may serve to introduce another class of mesmeric phenomena, which appear miracu* lous only when insulated and taken apart from the proposition that Mind must in its every action im- press tin motion on surrounding matter. It has been said that persons in certain states, eith( r mesmeric or akin to the mesmeric, can be- come aware of the thoughts of others without the usual communication of speech. Bertrand, who (be it remembered) wrote against mesmerism in the later >f his life, relates an amusing story to this ory in which he professes his full belief, for be knew the j d in it : — A little girl <>f feboofl ten jrean erf age fell into a singular ^normal sensibility. In her tits of auto- iiH smerism, she alarmed her family !>\ proclaiming aloud in them all the subjects of their thoughts. She would >a\ t<> her Bister, " You are now meditating whether \ ou Bhould or should not go to such a place, to meet such a person; I advise you to stay quietly at home;' 3 or. to her mother. " Do not ponder why papa stays out so late-; it will do you no good." These revelations were at times not a little awkward and mal-apropos. and so the poor little girl was thanked for her discernment, but Voted to be under the influence of a deluding and wicked spirit. For the purpose of exorcising this familiar, so much more malevolent than that of Socrato. the young patient was committed to the care of a pious community of nuns, with directions that much prayer and holy water 38 446 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. ^ should be spent upon her ; but, in the convent, mat- ters went on much worse. The holy water threw the patient into convulsions, and (still more horrible) whenever a metal cross was laid on her breast, she threw the precious ensign of redemption from her with symptoms of the greatest aversion. The pious sister- hood, though not aware of the fact that the touch of metal powerfully influences persons in certain states of sensibility, happened, however, to exchange the metal cross for one of wood, which, having been blessed by the pope, was supposed to be of peculiar efficacy ; and lo ! in proof of that efficacy, the little girl allowed the relic to remain quietly on her breast. This was a most favorable omen ; but, alas ! the evil spirit was not to be thus tamed ! — the great, the terrible symptom of diabolic agency broke out in fresh vigor ; for the patient began to proclaim the thoughts of those around her. When irritated by the kind but mis- taken officiousness of the nuns, she was especially for- midable in that way, so formidable, indeed, that at length she completely controled and governed the saintly community. " Sister Agatha/' she would ex- claim, " you had better not bring that cross here, or I'll tell why it was you nailed your ear so close to the key-hole of the abbess's parlor." " Sister Ursula, do not force me to say any more paternosters, or all the world shall know what you were thinking of in your cell last Tuesday." Now this phenomenon of thought-reading has been observed by me, to a certain extent, in some of my mesmeric patients. The first occasion of my remarking it was in con- THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 447 sequence of an accidental occurrence — for, in truth, I have never sought for marvels in mesmerism ; if marvels I have to relate, they have presented them- Belves naturally to my notice. E. A., when in his normal state used sometimes to exhibit a trick on the cards, which consists in a long and rather tedious process of arranging a certain number of cards ac- COrding to the letters of certain words, and then, by the correspondence <>f the letters, discovering any two card- which may have been chosen by another person. 1 was curious to observe whether my sleep- waker retained enough of his calculating and com- bining powers in the mesmeric state to go through tin- tnck as usual, and I therefore asked a lady, who happened to be present <>i;<- day when K. A. was mesmerised^ to choose two card- from amongst the little packets of pairs, which the sleepwafeer had already placed in proper order on the table. The lady chose the cards by her eye only, in perfect silence and standing behind the sleepwaker, so that there was absolutely nothing of word or gesture to guide him in his subsequent discovery. He began to gather up the cards as usual preparatory to com- pleting the trick, when suddenly he threw them down with an air of disgust, saying words to this effect : — "Why should I go through this farce? I know already the two cards which the lady thought of. They were BO and so." He w;ts perfectly right. Another time, a little basket, brought in by my wife during his sleepwaking, was standing on a table near him. He took it up and considered it (always with his eyes shut), and said to my wife, " Ah, you are 448 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. "* thir king now of making this a present to Mr. V. O.'s little girl." This was quite true. Again : I asked the same sleepwaker in his state of mesmerism, if he knew of any application which would strengthen his eyes — then weak. " Yes/' he said, " something of which you have been thinking — a wash, for the pre- scription of which you wrote to a physician in Paris not long ago for the use of a friend of yours." He spoke correctly ; and I declare most positively that the sleepwaker had no means whatever of knowing the facts he stated, except through the medium of my own thoughts. Anna M occasionally manifested phenomena similar to the above, and (woman-like, perhaps) ac- companied them by a far more delicate and accurate perception of the state of my feelings, at such times as she was placed in mesmeric relation to myself. Frequently she has surprised me by the manner in which she anticipated, on these occasions, my wishes with regard to any little experiment I desired to make. " Come," she would say, " you are now wish- ing that I should do a piece of needle-work. I own just now it is rather a trouble to me, but I will do it notwithstanding." In my notes relative to the same period I find the following fact mentioned. A musician, with whose name or person Anna M was not in the least acquainted, was in the room during her sleepwaking — February 16th, 1838. Not a word had been spoken about music ; all present were engaged in observing the sleepwaker, when suddenly she said to me, " You know there is a gentleman here who sings THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 449 and plays very well. You were wishing a while ago to ask him to sit down to the piano. You must ask him now. and, when he is playing, lay one of your hands on his shoulder, and the other on mine, and I shall hear the mask too." These phenomena, as F have said, were manifested, not forced, and I had occasion to observe that, like all other phenomena pertaining to mind, they were best exhibited when most spontaneously exhibited. Attempts to elicit them in any other manner generally failed. Once, standing near Anna M I ad- dressed to her a sentence mentally, but she did not comprehend it. though, that I wished to say some- thin- to her and that there was an action of my mind, she manifested knowledge. Her words on this anion were remarkable. " Why do you speak so low. sir) Speak louder, that I may hear you'/' Now, beil remembered, I had not spoken at all, nor given her to understand, in any way. that 1 was about to address any thing to her. One experiment, however, of this nature, was al- most invariably successful. If I mentally ran over a tune in my head, Anna would immediately begin to beat time, and sway her head about in the mea- sure of the air. Anxious to have a correct witness of the experiment, f agreed with a musician that at a certain silent signal I should begin mentally to re- peat an air. and. at another signal, change the air and measure from slow to fast. I made the musician acquainted with both the airs beforehand, in order that he might accurately judge whether the sleep- waker kept to the time. The experiment answered 38* 450 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. " perfectly, both as to beating time in the first place with accuracy, and then as accurately changing the measure. I could relate a crowd of other circumstances of a similar nature, and some perhaps even more remark- able than the above ; but I forbear : the above are sufficient to illustrate the principle which I am en- deavoring to educe from facts. Should the prin- ciple itself remain unacknowledged, I shall have already drawn too largely on the faith of my reader. Admit that thought communicates action to sur- rounding media ; admit that the mesmerised are sen- sible to that action ; and all that may seem wondrous in my statements vanishes. It may be doubted, indeed, whether the prejudice that exists with respect to such phenomena may not have been wholly caused by their having too often been brought for- ward, not only unaccompanied by a proper explana- tion and in disconnection with a sufficient cause, but actually expressed in such a way as to deepen mys- tery and to shock the scientific. The power which sleepwakers, in certain states of sensibility, undoubt- edly possess, of perceiving the thoughts of others, has been called divination ; a term which approximates the faculty in question to witchcraft and all its vul- gar associations. The sleepwaker does not divine what passes in the minds of others ; he i-eads it there by means which are in perfect accordance with the economy of our being. Let me endeavor to set this in the strongest, clearest light. Should I even re- peat myself, it will scarcely be a fault on a subject like this, where indeed a certain iteration seems ne- THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 451 cessary to familiarize our minds with themes so new and of such grave importance. As we are more acquainted with that corporeal change in ourselves which accompanies sensation, than with that other more hidden which accompanies reflection, let us reason by analogy from the one we best know to the one we know the least. Both are mcntiil operations, hut the one. as we are sure from facts, is connected with a series of material move- ments which stand as actual sinus and representor lives of itself. There is sensation, and there is also the language of sensation ; in other words, nervous motions, which are equivalent to a language, Now, w< re we enabled with equal certainty to say. when speaking of our intellectual operations, — "There is thought, and there i> the material sign of thought:" could we affirm positively that, as every sensation has its peculiar nervous motion, so also every reflection has its peculiar action ef the brain, we should be greatly helped to a comprehension of the point in question. For it is plain that, could another person be made aware, in any way, of the motions of my brain during thought, and were he also properly instructed in the signifieasey of those motions, he Blight read from "the book and volume of my brain M as readily as from any other collection of symbols. For it is not the nature of the sign, when once its meaning is fixed, that can make any dif- ference or create any difficulty. The deaf and dumb converse as well by motions of their fingers as per- sons in general by giving impulse to the air. Now the presumption certainly is that every thought really 452 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. has its particular configuration in that texture of our brain ; for, 1st. We know that thought does indeed move the brain generally, whence we might infer particular motions for particular thoughts. 2dly. We are sure that, in some instances, individual thoughts do move the brain and thence certain nerves in an individual manner ; as, for instance, in cases where a thought reproduces a corporeal phenomenon, gen- erally dependent on sensation, such as a distinct visual image, or a certain feeling in the nerves of the teeth. From these phenomena it seems that we only draw a legitimate conclusion, when we say that every thought moves the brain in its own appropriate manner. Our personal ignorance of these specific changes, though they occur in our own persons, is no proof whatever that they do not take place. We are perfectly unaware that sensation depends on a cor- poreal sign ; yet a corporeal sign there is. If it should be asked in what manner the sleep- waker has come to be so well acquainted with the signs and characters of thought, I might think it perhaps a sufficient answer to reply, " The soul is wise — yes, wiser than we know." There are more intuitions, or (as Kant calls them) " cognitions a priori" than we suppose. What if motions of the ethereal medium were the native and universal lan- guage of the mind ? Or, to answer one question by another, how, in sensation, have certain motions come to be representative of certain external objects ? I may be told, by experience; but again, experience itself must have a basis. What first taught the mind THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 453 the connection between the sign and the object? Plainly an intuition ; for it is self-evident that we cannot advance to new knowledge but by the aid of previous knowledge. But where is this previous knowledge to begin ? It must begin somewhere, or we shall never know anything. When we grant that we do know something, we also imply that this our knowledge had a beginning, and this beginning could only be a truth so clear as to be apprehended at once without the aid of anterior knowledge; for, to suppose a knowledge anterior to the beginning of knowledge i< manifestly absurd. Thus it appears that we cannot but concede the existence of a first knowledge, which came to us in a totally different manner from any other, about which we could nei- ther have pondered nor reasoned; a knowledge which, luminous itself, required no light for its illus- tration : a knowledge which is the guiding torch to all other knowledge. whatever; in line, an intuition or cognition d priori* This reasoning, applicable to all knowledge what- ever, i- more especially so to that peculiar knowledge which we call sensation, and which Locke has satis- faetorily proved to be the avenue at least to the greater part of all We know, of all we are; the occasion of development to the mind, the awakening touch that s in motion the germ of all our faculties. Locke, indeed, by his unfortunate and misconceived com- parison of the mind to a sheet of white paper, has obscured his own beautiful system ; but to him who studies the work on the " Human Understanding" as a whole, it will be seen that the reflection of Locke 454 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. ^ is nearly identical with the pure reason of Kant, Locke allowing clearly that sensation is only (to use his own words) " one of those ways whereby the mind comes by its ideas." Now, let it be remembered that the mind in the complete mesmeric state has been proved to be more rational, more reflective, than in its normal condition ; consequently nearer to that which Wordsworth so finely calls — " The fountain-light of all our day, The master-light of all our seeing.' Is it then wonderful that its first-developed intui- tions should be recalled with superior ease and clear- ness to its perceptions ? This is the view of the subject which searches it most deeply and entirely ; but, while I maintain that the mind's knowledge of the mesmeric signs must in the first instance be intuitive, I am also enabled to modify the statement so as to render it more analo- gous to our ordinary views and common experience. Like our other intuitions, this particular one is devel- oped manifestly through time and circumstance. The phenomena of silent perception are, let it be re- membered, not only rare in occurrence, but slow to occur. As far as I have observed, they only take place when a person has been brought by degrees into a very exalted condition of sensibility, only when he has learnt, and, as it were, perfected himself in his new mode of being, and in the language apper- taining to that mode of being. In the chain of our argument then, there appears THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 455 to be no link wanting. It is thus connected. Every thought moves the brain in its own appropriate man- ner. A pervading medium being allowed to exist through- out nature (such as the electric), it follows as a con- sequence that every thought which moves the brain imparts motion also to the ethereal medium. Mesmerised persons, being in a state of extreme sensibility, are cognizant of the motions of finer me- dia than common. The motions, created by the thoughts of other per- sons, being transferred through the brain, and through a certain medium, to the sensorium of a mesmerised person, are to bim intelligible signs of thought — a language which, though new to him at first, he, by a gradual process of association, gives meaning to and learns to comprehend* We may further remark (in order to elucidate cer- tain other phenomena of mesmerism) that a mesmeric patient is in such relation with his mesmeriser as to be peculiarly attentive to the workings of his mind ; with these he is evidently far more connected than with the intellectual operations of any indifferent in- dividual. Hence the thoughts and feelings of the mesmeriser are transferred to the patient more vividly, and with a superior degree of accuracy, so as (if I may so express myself) to bring into sympathetic vibration the very brain and nervous fibres of mes- meriser and patient. Facts coincide with this sup- position. In various parts of this work it will be seen that the mesmeric patient takes, pro tempore, the tone of his mind from that of the mesmeriser's mind. It 456 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. may farther be asserted that he shares the knowledge of the latter — a circumstance which accounts for many apparent miracles regarding the information of sleepwakers on subjects with which they were not previously acquainted. When I first began to mes- merise, I used to consult my sleepwakers on dark and dubious points, with something of the blind faith of a novice in a new and wondrous science. Their an- swers to such inquiries w r ere calculated to bewilder me by the pure influence of astonishment ; for the simple had become theorists — the uneducated were turned into philosophers. At length I was awakened from my dream of somnambulic knowledge by find- ing that my patient's ideas shifted so visibly with my own, and were so plainly the echo of my own thoughts that not to have perceived the source whence they originated would have been pertinacious blindness indeed. I was but taking back my own. and receiv- ing coin issued from my own treasury. I particularly observed that what I had last read, or most recently reflected on, was most vividly returned to me by my sleepwaker. It was a vexatious discovery. Would that I could present to my reader, as oracles, the spec- ulations of my patients on the ethereal medium ! Would that I could enlighten the world by display- ing, as authenticated by a preternatural illumination, the harmony and mutual relationship of all things ! But, alas ! I should only be repeating my own feeble explorations of the regions of truth ; I should but be retailing my own mortal and uninspired surmises ! A few particular instances of the coincidence be- tween my own thoughts and those of my sleepwakers THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 457 may interest the reader, and prove that which, as yet, I have only generally advanced. E. A. was perfectly ignorant of the mechanism of the eye, or of the fact that images on the retina are reversed representations of external objects. 1 had been reading some works on this knotty subject, in which needless pains had ben taken to turn the image th<- right wav upward, when 1 questioned my patient as to our mode of seeing. To my surprise, he en- tered immediately upon the topic of the reversed lin- en the retina, and — though confusedly, indeed — repeated partly somfe mystical stuff which I had been reading in the •• Seherin von Prevorsf," (he did not understand German,) upon thai head — and partly a scientific stati ment of the mere fact, which latter he illustrated by drawing on paper the very same mathematical figure which I had been contem- plating that morning, and which represented the in- tersfection of the rays at the focal point, which causes the phenomenon in question. The following coincidence was still more remark- able and perfect than the preceding. In a work by M . Despines of Ai.\. in Provence, I had been reading some speculations on the (supposed) vital fluid. It was there conjectured that souk; of (»nr maladies take their rise Irum the unequal distri- bution of this fluid along the channels of the nerves. I declare most positively that the sleepwnker had never seen the work in question, which had just been forwarded to me by Lord X , from Geneva. Nevertheless*, when in the mesmeric state, lie apropos 3J 458 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. ^ of something said respecting a person's illness, thus expressed himself: — " II y a des maladies qu'on ne peut pas voir. Ce sont les derangemens de la fluide nerveuse, qui est accumulee ou par ci, ou par la ; et c'est cela qui fait les maladies." I copy the words exactly from notes taken at the time they were uttered. It must not, however, be supposed that this reflec- tion of thought from the mesmeriser to the patient destroys the individual character of the latter. The knowledge returns to its originator, tinged always by the medium from which it has reverted. Thus Anna M did not philosophize like E. A. Her specu- lations were influenced by the synthetical habits of woman's mind. In her there was more of the heart, in the other more of the head. In every case I found that sleepwakers do not retail things like mere par- rots, but as thinking beings, themselves elevated to a higher intellectual region than the ordinary. Besides, there is always in the mesmeric state a certain inde- pendent power of thought, proper to the patient, the degree of which varies with the natural independ- ence of the character. Those ideas I was never con- scious of in my own mind might be fairly attributed to my sleepwakers as their own property. From some of these I have taken hints, at least : especially in all that regards the mesmeric state, of which mes- meric individuals maybe supposed to have the same personal knowledge that we have of our normal existence. Let us now pause to generalize the more THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 459 important of our facts in the spirit of the following remark : — u The great object of philosophy is to ascertain the simple or ultimate principles, into which all the phe- nomena of nature may. by analysis, be resolved." Striving after the philosophic unity recommended by Dr. Chalmers, yet, keeping within the verge of safe analogy, we may affirm that we have been consi- dering — relative to mesmeric action — a medium which, by its character and offices, is capable of being identified with that other medium treated of under the head of u mesmeric sensation.' 5 For that which is predicated of the one may be said equally of the other : — Both have been shown capable of communicating impulsions to the human system from a distance. Both act through obstacles which are impediments t<> grosser media. Both bear an especial relation to the human mind. In the one case, indeed, it appears that the medium act- upon mind, while, in the other, it is manifest that mind acts Upon the medium J but this distinction will. I imagine, vanish, when it is remembered that we have already proved sensations to be in reality actions, and not mere passive performances of the sentient principle, and that it is more probable that the mind always consuls actively its book of si^ns (as the nerVOUS system may be called), than that it is swayed, in any case, inertly by the impulses of the external world. More briefly, sensation and reflection are, in truth, 460 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. both actions, though different actions, of one thinking substance. This being allowed, a pervading medium being allowed, and it being manifest, as a consequence, that this mere ethereal medium must respond to every ac- tion of the mind and brain, it will be evident that the mind impresses motion on the medium by the very act in which it seizes the meaning of the motions to which it had been passive. Taking the proposition in a material point of view, it may be said that, in the un- dulations of the nervous system, and the elastic media, of which it is the centre, there must be reaction not less than action. In either case, the motions of the medium have been shown to be symbolical of some- thing beyond themselves, and to compose a language which the mind recognizes and interprets. Other points of resemblance between the sentient and the mesmeric medium may be found. It appeared probable that the former, from its action from a distance, and the rapidity of its com- munications, was, like the luminous ether, of an elastic and vibratory nature. Now considerations of a similar kind induce us to come to a similar conclu- sion with respect to the mesmeric medium. We have seen that physical effects have been produced by one person on another from distances and through obsta- cles which render the supposition of a material sub- stance emanated from the body absurd. Anna M was by me brought into the mesmeric state when I was divided from her by a screen, and by the whole length of a large apartment ; and again when I was THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 461 in a house a quarter of a mile distant from that in which she was sensible to my action. Facts like these intimate not doubtfully that the mesmeric medium has not a real transitive motion, but only a motion of oscillation; that the mesmeriser does not project a means of communication to his patient, as one would too ;i string to a person at a distance, but merely agitates an already existing means of communication, as oik would impart vibration to a string already stretched from one's own hand to that of another person. The phenomena of sympathetic sensation between mesmerise? and patient come in aid of the above con- clusion. It bas been shown that, in certain cases, where a mesmeric relation i- perfectly established be- hreeo two persons, the impressions of tact and savor an transferred accurately from the nervous system of oik' to that of the other. Thus Anna M , when an\ one gtfve pain to my shoulder, foot, t\c imme- diately began to rub the corresponding part of her own person J and she could also, from a real impres- >i<»ii ou her nerves of taste, correctly State what I was eating or drinking. Miss T likewise, through nerVOUfl motions in her own hand, became aware of the size and form of objects which I was secretly handling. These phenomena extremely resemble those of sympathetic vibration produced by the tremors of the air. --It is thus," (says Mrs. Somerville, speaking of the latter) "that sympathetic undulations are ex- cited by a body vibrating near insulated tended strings, capable of following its undulations, either by 39* 462 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. vibrating entire, or by separating themselves into their harmonic divisions. If two cords equally stretched, of which one is twice or three times longer than the other, be placed side by side, and if the shorter be sounded, its vibrations will be communicated by the air to the other, which will be thrown into such a state of vibration, that it will be spontaneously divided into segments equal in length to the shorter string." Again, when sand is strewed on paper or parchment stretched over a large bell-shaped tumbler, with pro- per precautions, " if a circular disc of glass be held concentrically over this apparatus, with its plane par- allel to the surface of the paper, and set in vibration by drawing a bow across its edge so as to make sand on its surface take any of Chladni's figures, the sand on the paper will assume the very same form, in con- sequence of the vibrations of the disc being commu- nicated to the paper by the air." " When a slow air is played on a flute near this apparatus, each note calls up a particular form in the sand, which the next note effaces to establish its own." It is plain that this visible manifestation of an invisible agent might be made a language, and might suggest to a person versed in its symbols the air played on the flute so perfectly as to enable him to write it down, even though he neither saw nor heard the musical instrument from which it emanated, each form in the sand indicating to him a particular note. The analogy between this musical language and mesmeric sensation is manifest. Just as the vibrations of strings, or of vibrating plates are repro- duced in other strings, or visibly represented in the THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 463 sand by the agency of the intervening air, so are the nervous motions of the mesmeriser's system repro- duced and faithfully represented in that of his patient by the agency of the mesmeric medium. It is true that the aerial vibrations are only manifested in tense substances, and thai the nerves are not, as generally supposed, in a state of tension, and herein our paral- lel is not complete; but then, in the latter case, if the undulating body ifl not the same, neither is the medium that excites the undulations the same. The true and important point of resemblance is this ; — the nerves have a capacity to vibrate in unison with a certain medium, just as tended strings have a ca- pacity to vibrate in correspondence with the air, and Sympathetic vibration! may undoubtedly be just as well propagated from one system of nerves to another by their own proper medium, a- from one string to another. <>r from the glass disc to paper, by the air. Tin- being allowed, is it any marvel that the trans- ferred vibrations of the nerves should be an intelligi- ble language! Even a- regards the mere tremors of the air. we find that " by the vibrations of sand on a drum-head, the besieged have discovered the direc- tion in which a countermine was working/' If per- sonal interest can thus awaken the intellect to a com- prehension of mere external motions, how much more keenly must personal feeling rouse the sentient be- ing, who i- himself the subject of sympathetic ner- VOUS action, into a perception of every change in the System with which he is in unison? Besides, motions of the nerves are more than a language ; they are the language of sensation ; each of their changes is not 464 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. merely a sign of something occurring externally to a man's self, but in his very frame and being : thus, when a mesmerised patient has a nervous vibration transmitted to him from another, he has also an ac- tual corporeal feeling, not only coincident with that vibration, but also perfectly corresponding with the original feeling in the other person. It is, however, of importance to remark that to all these phenomena the will of the mesmeriser bears more than a rela- tion ; — it has an evident share in their very existence. The degree of attention that he bestows on producing the phenomena of sympathetic sensation has a great influence on the time and manner of their occur- rence ; neither in this instance, nor in any other re- lating to mesmerism, can we leave the will out of our calculations ; it is, indeed, the focus, where all the rays of our information meet, — the centre without which there would be no general relationship — no union between our forces : this premised, we proceed to our conclusion, that the relation between mesme- riser and patient is established by an elastic medium is to be presumed from the nearly simultaneous and correspondent action of the nervous systems of both. Here, as in former cases, admit a vibratory medium, and that the mesmerised are sensible to that medium, and every thing is clear and satisfactory ; without it all is dark. They who watch for my halting, and are on the look out for discrepancies, may here remind me that I have in other places advanced facts which are at variance with the supposition of a vibratory medium in mesmerism, and which rather tend to establish the THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 465 existence of a material emanation, of which the mes- meriser's body is the original source. Contact, the breath, motions of the hand near the patient, have been described as powerfully aiding the transmission of the mesmeric influence. To this I reply, that it is now very generally admitted that heat is but a modi- fication of the same agent which produces the sensa- tion of light, — in other words, no real entity, but a peculiar action of matter. Thus to heat a body is only to bring the atoms which compose that body into a particular state of vibration. Yet in order to effect tin-, in order to induce that peculiar action of matter which we call heat, we employ certain means, which, being themselves material, tend to invest the nt with a material character, but which are in reality only the occasions of bringing certain atoms into a particular state. It may well. then, be allowed by those at least who adopt the nndnlatory theory, that the material means employed in mesmerism, to charge a patient with the mesmeric influence, are no proof whatever of the material character of thai influence, but are simply methods whereby a medium may be thrown into a particular state of action. That there is no just reason why that action should not be vibratory is also manifest. Pursuing the analogy between heat and the mes- meric agency, we know that, with regard to ex- citing the former, the means are not only various, but that they may be altered according to circum- stances. Occasionally they may appear very com- plex, as where chemistry employs its resources to 466 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. develop heat by the union of two liquids or gases ; and occasionally nothing can be more simple, as where, by mere friction, we produce heat. This should warn us not to be surprised that mesmeric results should accrue from different processes, simple as well as complex ; that at one time the mesmeriser should employ all the intermediate aids of gesture, look, and respiration ; yet at another, with equal success, influence his patient by the mere action of his mind and brain. I can assure my reader that I am as anxious to give the subject a fair consideration as he himself can possibly be ; and I can suggest to myself objec- tions to a vibratory cause in mesmerism, which, per- haps, might not have occurred to his own mind. Thus I found on one occasion, when I mesmerised a person out of doors, that the wind had a manifest power to disturb, and, as it were, bear away the mes- meric influence. This, on a cursory view, goes very near to investing it with a transitive character ; but, on a more accurate examination, does not in any way affect our previous conclusions to the contrary. We have only to remember that even the transmission of light depends on the condition of the atmosphere, and that wind disturbs that vibratory property of the air, which produces sound, in a marked and acknow- ledged manner. All then that is really proved, when the wind is found to disturb the mesmeric influence, is that wind has the power to affect the vibratory properties of the medium. Again : substances touched or breathed upon by the mesmeriser will, when tested by such patients as THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 467 are extremely sensitive, be found to retain something of a mesmeric virtue for a considerable period, as if a material emanation clung around them, and at length became dissipated in the surrounding atmo- sphere. Nay, I must avow a circumstance, that, more than any other, seems to shake my hypothesis of undulations. I have mesmerised Anna M , by sending to her from a distance a note, which I had previously carried about me for some time. But what do these phenomena in reality prove ? Merely that the mesmeric medium, like other media, has the power of imparting a change to the particles of the substance on which it acts. The following reflections will at once support my hypothesis, and set my meaning, as I trust at least, in a dearer light. Whatever is corporeal is ponderable. When, therefore, we pronounce that an agent is imponder- able, we at once pronounce that it has no existence (that i< to say, virtually, and as far as our senses are concerned), but in motion — that it is only an effect or action of mutter, and not an individual substance. Such agents, then, as affect bodies without adding to their weight, can only he conceived to act by intro- ducing a change into the relative position of their particles. Tims, when a grain of musk perfumes a sheet of paper, without either losing in its own weight, or imparting additional substance to the paper, what can it prove more than that the action of one thing can be imparted to another ? Or, when what we call infection is conveyed from one person to another by wearing apparel, or by a letter ; and 468 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. ^ again, when fumigating the apparel or the letter properly is found to restore those substances to their former innoxious condition, is it not because, in the one case, the substances had acquired the property of imparting a change to the atoms of the body with which they should come in contact ; and, in the other, had this new mode of action abstracted from them ? This at least we know, that color, which ap- pears to be a material body, and is transferable from one body to another, is actually nothing more than a chemical change in the position and arrangement of those atoms which by their varied manner of cohe- sion produce what we call the different textures of substances. Again : science has ascertained that the mere action of the luminous medium can produce an internal change in the texture of crystals, and can develope magnetic properties in iron ; while our own observation may assure us, by daily examples in the fading of vegetable colors, that lighl alofte can so alter the atoms of bodies. a> to change their capaci- ties of absorption and reflection. The recent dis- covery, whereby a landscape is transferred, in all its natural hues, to paper prepared with nitrate of silver, by the simple agency of light, speaks more strongly still to the same effect. Nor is it by any means fatal to our cause, that the change which mesmerism in- duces in bodies should be but temporary. Electricity induces temporary alteration in bodies ; the magnetic virtue in iron may be diminished or reinforced by light, by heat, and other external agencies : while to or from such metals as only become magnetic by in- duction, the properties of magnetism can be given or THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 469 taken away at pleasure. Heat, also, can impart a temporary change to the molecules of matter, giving them a new vibration and impulse, which gradually ceases and leaves the body they compose in its for- mer condition. The analogy in this case to mesmeric action is particularly striking, and would alone be sufficient, one might imagine, to rank this agency amongst the imponderable media; It renders per* fectly comprehensible not only the transference of mesmerism from the mesmerise! to an inanimate sub- Btance, but the subsequent and further transmission of the action from the inanimate substance to a mes- meric patient It may Further be conceived that this particular action of matter, when weakened by transference to a mesmeric billet, for instance, can only affect such frames as are predisposed to receive the influence, just as the contagion of illness conveyed by letter will act most readily on persons predisposed to take infection. In every case, where an agency so subtile a- i hat of mesmerism IS to be appreciated in its minute gradations, there must exist a previous acquaintance with it- effects, and an acute degree of sensibility both natural and acquired. Beings possessing such Qualifications are indeed rare. and. as detectors of nature's finer influences, most interesting to the ob- server. They alone it i- evident, can throw new light on the action and properties of the mesmeric medium. If we only regarded them as instruments of extreme delicacy, we should value them as the chemist, his test and reagents, or as the student in electricity, his balance of torsion. Dr. Elhotson, by 40 470 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. ** means of two young females, who from their extreme sensibility may be called mesmerometers of the high- est precision, has ascertained particulars which bid fair to develop the laws of this remarkable agency. Amongst other things he has discovered that mes- merisable substances may be mesmerised by the eye alone, without contact of any kind. This is of im- portance ; for, to what can we refer such an effect, but to a change in the atomic relations of the affected substances, which change cannot but be brought about by impulsion on some medium subsisting be- tween the eye and the objects ? Thus, if some phe- nomena seem to give a material character to mes- meric agency, others again more truly invest it with all the finer attributes of that subtile, ethereal, and elastic medium, which pervades creation. Whatever objections, then, may be urged against the modulatory character of the mesmeric medium are shown to be null ; while, on the other hand, we should be forced into absurdities, did we attribute to it any other mode of action. Thus proved to be undulatory, elastic, pervading, in peculiar relation withthemindofman.it should seem clearly to be identified with the medium spoken of in sensation. But of this we have a yet closer method of proof. First. The phenomena of sensation proper to the mesmeric patient proved to us originally the exist- ence of a certain medium, which circumstances led us to suspect might form the groundwork in all sensation whatever, since it acts pervadinglv, and by simple impulsion on the nerves, which are the real agents in sensation. THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 471 Secondly. The phenomena of sympathetic sensa- tion, originating with the mesmeriser, and from him transferred to his patient, bring the sentient medium into relation with the mesmeriser, and presumably identify it with the mesmeric medium ; especially as it is found that the mesmeriser's will and attention aid the production of the phenomena. Besides it is fair to infer that all the relations between mesmeriser and patient, being connected in one series, and bear- in- one character, are brought about by one medium, which we call mesmeric. Thirdly, 'That such a medium is really the great medium in all sensation we may again deduce from tin-. It is found capable of transferring sensations from the mesmeriser to the patient : we may there- fore conclude that it i< capable in general of pro- ducing sensation, — a task to which it seems pecu- liarly adapted from its acting (as has been shown) with such exquisite precision on the nerves. The chain of evidence seems thus complete. In the firs! place we have a particular medium of Sensation indicated to us by the phenomena of mes- meric perception ; in the second place that medium i- connected with the mesmeriser. by his capacity of using it BO as to produce sensation in his patient. Finally, it is again reciprocally connected with sen- sation in general by its capacity of acting on the nerves of a human being, so as to produce sensation of various kinds. Having thus assimilated the mesmeric medium to such a medium or to such media (if there be many) as form the groundwork in the external preparatives 472 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. ^ of sensation, I would endeavor still further to asso- ciate it with other media, now generally considered to be of an undulatory nature and universally al- lowed to be proper objects of physical and certain experiment. If we can succeed in this, we shall at once give to our agency a claim on science ; connecting it with calculation and with mechanical analysis. It is plain that this can only be effected by detect- ing and bringing to view similarities between its action and the action of such other forces as are sub- jects of the physico-mathematical sciences, — forces which are now considered to be mere modifications of the electric. Already we have seen that, like heat, it can be imparted by one body to another, and that, like heat, it gradually leaves the body to which it is commu- nicated. Some interesting experiments by Dr. Elliotson prove that, like light, it may be reflected from mir- rors. A celebrated sculptor at Rome assured me that he had seen the experiment tried and verified on his own brother by a nobleman, whose name it might be thought an impertinence in me to mention. These are striking analogies between the mesmeric and other media ; — but to electricity — now con- sidered as the great parent of them all — it bears a yet greater resemblance. First. We know that electricity is capable of all that modification in its action which the necessities of our case demand. Sometimes its effects are sud- den and energetic ; sometimes of indefinite and un- THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 473 interrupted continuance. It is " capable of moving with various degrees of facility through the pores or even the substance of matter ; " ! and is not impeded in its action •• by the intervention of any substance whatever, provided it be not itself in an electric stat' This capacity of varied action and of pervading influence has already been shown to characterize the mesmeric medium. Secondly. Electricity may be called into activity by heat Here the resemblance between the electric and the mesmeric medium is still more marked. I ha\e found that I could not successfully mesmer- ist in a cold room, or when I was in a low state of bodily temperature; while on the other hand, a warm atmosphere, and warmth in my own hand, have always intensified and expedited the transmis- sion of mesmeric influence from myself to another. The firsl time I ever saw a mesmeric experiment, the mesmeriser made it an express condition that he should have a warm room for his process. The txperiment, as will be remembered, was quickly and successfully performed. Now, of electricity we know that it may be called into activity by heat, and that the heat of the air is intimately connected with Itfl electrical condition. Thirdly. - Electricity readily escapes from a point; and a pointed object receives it with most facility." I have found, by experience, that the mesmeric 1 These and the following characteristics of electricity are taken from Mrs Soinerville's admirable work on the Connexion of the Physical Sciences. 40* 474 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. ^ medium is most powerfully conducted by the tips of the fingers, and that mesmeric actions, directed also towards the tips of the patient's fingers, have a more remarkable effect than when simply directed over the surfaces of the body. Fourthly. " Iceland spar is made electric by the smallest pressure between the finger and thumb, and retains it for a long time." How analogous is this to the transference of mes- merism to certain metals by human contact, and to the manner in which they slowly port with the com- municated property ! Fifthly. Electricity may be transferred from one body to another in the same manner as heat is com- municated, and like it, too, the body loses by the transmission. This resembles the exhaustion and repair of mes- meric force, of which I have, in another place, taken notice. It is true that, in the case of mesmerism, a human body is the electric machine, another Iranian body the recipient of the force, and that neither are repre- sented to be in a state of electrical insulation ; — but be it remembered we are contending — not for the identity of the agency with the electric, but for the propinquity. While we affirm that there are analo- gies too great to admit of a separate source, we not the less contend that there are differences too strik- ing not to demonstrate a varied action. Their powers not being identical, it is evident that the laws of their retention and escape may vary, as do those that regulate the transmission or accumulation of the THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 475 galvanic or magnetic forces. Thus, a body may be in a state of mesmeric though not of electrical insu- lation. Magnetic or electric agency seems to aid the mfesmeriser in influencing bis patient. I found, when mesmerising Professor Agassiz, that a magnet held in my hand assisted me to raise his limbs by that Species of attraction which may be called mes- meric. It is singular, likewise, but true, that, when- ever I took the magnet into my hand, however secretly, he, having his eyes always shut, invariably complained of a palpitation at the heart. It has also been told me, by Dr. Elliotson, that a lady, who is remarkably gifted with mesmeric force, gains ;m additional share of that power when she mesmerises standing on a glass stool and in a state of positive electricity* This fact aproximates the two ricies in a verj obvious and striking manner. A few additional remarks on the connection of the human bod\ with electricity may be pardoned. Much needless pain- have been expended to prove that the force in question is an agent in our economy. It cannot but be so. \\< presence in our own frames is only one of the consequences of its universal pre- sence — now accorded by all philosophers. Recent disc >veries tend to prove that gravitation itself i- but a residual and comparatively feeble por- tion of the electric energy ; and the power which electricity displays in effecting chemical combination, or separation, demonstrates that it really binds or looses the atoms of which material bodies are com- posed. To separate one drop of water from another, it has been calculated that as much electric force 476 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. "* must be employed as would be called into activity during an ordinary thunder-storm. How, then, can the electric principle be absent from the frame of man, which is itself but a collection of material par- tic s ? Facts, moreover, prove that our bodies are electric, and that the degree of electricity varies in different individuals. The silk stocking drawn off hastily at night rustles with electricity ; the hair when rapidly combed, especially in frosty weather, will crackle and emit sparks ; and these phenomena are more or less evident in different persons. All this is true and undeniable. The fault has been in theorists to assign specific offices to the electric agency in the human frame, — offices which it may indeed fulfil, but which the march o " experiment has not yet suffi- ciently demonstrated that it does fulfil. The inquiry has not, as it seems to me, been conducted rightly. We have sought, as I said before, to demonstrate the presence of electricity in the human body : and that was needless. The only sure way of demonstrating that any agency in the human body is akin to the electric is to identify the laws of action of the two forces. I think, then, at present, that the most striking fact of which I have heard relative to the identity of the nervous and electric agencies is the discovery of Des- moulins, that the transmission of sensation and motion is made by the surface of the spinal marrow, and not by its central parts. This is exactly parallel to the action of electricity, which is developed only and transmitted along the surfaces of bodies. That nerves really do conduct a matter similar at least to the THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 477 electric bias been also proved by the fact, that a mag- net held between the two sections of a recently di- vided nerve was observed to be deflected as by an electric current. But the kind of electricity which is in the human frame La probably a modification of the original prin- ciple. In many particulars it bears more resemblance to galvanism, and it is really ascertained by experi- ments on dead animals that the ncnmis fibre has a property of being galvanic ally affected, which (though varying of course like ether properties with the con- dition el* the substance in which it resides) may be called inherent. Seme most interesting experiments; by Dr. Elliotson, in which patients, l>\ a reinforce- ment of in- smeric power, were -hewn capable of swinging round lai htfc, impossible to be even lifted by them in then- ordinary condition, prove mi the intimate connection between the mesmeric medium and the muscular force, which, as every one knows, i- dependent on the State of the nerves and by them conducted from the brain. It" personal evi- dence may he allowed tohave importance. 1 may add that 1 am of an electric temperament, so much bo, that long ago, when a child. 1 used to amaze and even alarm my young companions by combing my hair before them in the (lark and exhibiting to them the electric coruscations. < tf < ourse, also, this phenome- non take- place most remarkably in a dry, and, there- fore, non-conducting atmosphere. Now between this electrical endowment and whatever mesmeric proper- tie- I may possess, there is a perfect relationship and parallelism. Whatever state of the atmosphere tends 478 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. to carry off electricity from the body hinders in so far my capacity of mesmerising ; and whatever state of the atmosphere tends to accumulate and insulate electricity in the body, promotes greatly the power and facility with which I influence others mesmeri- cally. My feelings of bodily health also vary with the plus or minus of electricity ; and, perhaps, did persons oftener attend to such things, a similar phenomenon might not uncommonly be remarked. This at least we may admit, that the welfare of the human body depends on the equilibrium or proper distribution of its forces, and that the electric is one of these just as much as heat or oxygen. The mesmeric force has, more than any other, been shown to be inherent in man ; and, taking all the above facts into considera- tion, it s by no means a strained conclusion that it actually is that particular modification of electricity which is appropriate to the human constitution. When, then, after having mesmerised a person. I have a pe- culiar feeling of loss of strength and general uneasi- ness, which can by no means be traced to usual causes, I am compelled to consider this as a proof that 1 have suffered by a temporary destruction of equilibrium in that medium wherewith I have charged another person, — that medium, namely, which we have agreed to call mesmeric. That which greatl adds to the presumption is the fact that there is gain in the patient as there is loss in the mesmeriser. The ten- dency of mesmeric influence to restore the equilibrium to the bodily forces is manifest. Under its beneficial action I have seen headaches cured, fatigue dissipated. THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 479 and trifling bodily ailments removed in a short time. How much it calms and equalizes the circulation was shown in the case of Anna M , whose pulse, agi- tated by fever, was rendered even and natural after the occurrence of the mesmeric slumber. I have had Occasion also to remark that my own sense of ex- haustion bore a perceptible relation to that which I was called upon to cure. In mesmerising the weak, even when using very slight exertion, I have found myself more than commonly fatigued. A young lady, whom I mesmerised occasionally at Antwerp, and who wa< in delicate health, remarked once to me, with that quick perception of every thing relative to mesmerism which persons under that influence dis- play. — " I am afraid it is a great fatigue to you to mesmerise me, because I feel so much strengthened.' 3 It was perfectly true. A medical man at Berne told me also that he once undertook, by mesmerism, to treat a lady who was suffering from periodical convulsive fits. By mes- merising her every day a little before the hour when the fits usually came on. he first deferred, and finally altogether prevented, the recurring attacks of the malady : hut he himself suffered in a singular man- ner. Sometimes, after mesmerising his patient, he would faint away from the consequent exhaustion. From these facts, as it seems to me, there is every reason to conclude that the principle of mesmeric action is a disturbance of equilibrium, and that its mechanical effects may be all explained by differ- ences (> f positive and negative, of plus and minus, in the mesmeriser and the patient. 480 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. Add to these features of coincidence between elec- tric and mesmeric agency, that both are subject to actions and reactions, and that the one, like the other, may be accumulated in bodies to a great extent with- out producing any sensible change in their proper- ties ; and it is impossible but that the analogy be- tween the two media should appear remarkable. Thus generalizing, we have arrived at the point to which all science seems tending, — namely, the de- monstration of an ethereal medium, of which all other agencies are but the effects. Should 1 have been successful in proving ihe existence of a mesmeric agency and its connection with other actions of mat- ter, I trust that I may be allowed, dot to have nulled, but to have extended the sphere of former knowledge. I have only exhibited that ether, which Newton imagined and subsequent philosophers have proved to exist, in a new point of view and engage d in new offices. I have shown that that medium is the proper organ of the mind, and the transmitter of all sensation, — that its motions are identical with thought, and are not the accidental, but the perma- nent, language of sentient beings. Let our contri- bution be received. The question, — Can mesmer- ism take its stand among the sciences ? i< even now decided. Even now mesmerism is a science ot ob- servation. They who have always rejected the mo- dulatory theory may be pardoned for rejecting it on the present occasion : but they who allow it will not be excusable, should they refuse to trace it in a new and most interesting department of its agency : — at least, they cannot but confess it to be capable of the THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 481 effects now ascribed to it. What then will be thought should the very supporters of the undulatory system desert us here — reject our facts as absurd, and proscribe, in this particular instance only, the hypothesis that would render them credible, nay, even n« <•< ssarj 1 An el&stie ether, modified by the nerves, and the Conduction of which depends on their condition; which run be thrown into vibration immediately by the mind of man. and mediately by the nervous sys- tem : which manifests itself when thrown out of equilibrium, and produces mental effects through un- usual Stimulation of the brain and nerves, cannot but be allowed to be a cause which answers to all the conditions thai we desire to unite, and which is sufficient t<> account for tin- phenomena that we have l>< i ii considering. And, !><• it remembered ever, we have not created tin- medium tor our purposes, — the necessities Of the Case have created the medium for ii-. as alone adequate to the production of certain effects which do really and visibly exist. Even should my theory of undulations be rejected, we cannot but conclude that in mesmerism there is an especial agency. Not one argument against the reality of its existence i- available, while; on the other hand, a ma>s of positive evidence demonstrates that it does exist Should then the learned at once refuse to examine and to believe, I own that I shall feel surprise. But, that the world in general should reject mesmerism, till the great leaders of opinion have marshalled the way to its precincts, I not only expect, 41 482 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. but am ready to forgive, since there are so many re- ceived truths (as they are called) from which it seems incorrect to differ, and which the most part of man- kind carry about, as Foster says we do our characters and our w T atches, without scrutinizing of what they are composed. In the mean time let me, at least, in drawing to a conclusion, set forth the claims of mes- merism to general attention — to the philosopher as a philosopher — to man as man. My own debts to this despised science are too many and too various to permit me to leave undischarged this duty towards others and myself. First, in a philosophical point of view, mesmerism may be affirmed not only to touch nearly, but to throw light on, questions which have long agitated the intellectual world. One of the most interesting of these is whether there may not exist a special though invisible agency appropriate to the nervous system, through which sensation is accomplished 'and animal motion per- formed. Charles Bonnet of Geneva, a century ago, suggested that there was an elastic ether resident in the nerves in a manner analogous to that in which the electric fluid resides in the solid bodies along which it is conducted. He says. •• Should we admit that there is in the nerves a fluid, which in subtilty and elasticity resembles light, or ether, by the help of such an agency we may easily explain the celerity with which external impressions are communicated to the mind, and that with which the mind executes so many diversified operations." ( Estot Anal. chap, v.) This suggestion has been variously received, or THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 483 combated, but never absolutely dropped or decided one way or the other, so recent a writer as Mrs. Somerville (who may be supposed to represent the prevailing authorities of the day) allowing that the galvanic fluid " may ultimately prove to be the cause of muscular action." ' Now it appears to me that mesmerism is more cal- culated to decide this point than galvanic batteries or experiments on the divided nerves of dogs and rab- bits We have Been that, iii cases of mesmeric sympathy, the actual sensation of one person is transferred ac- curately to another: bo also the mental action of the mesmerise! can — so to -peak — perform motion in another. I have actually seen mesmerised persons make the ni< >-t laughable faces simultaneously with their mesmeriser, though the latter was standing quite behind them. If he put out his tongue, the patient also protruded his; it' ho wrinkled his brow, the pa- tient wrinkled big brow likewise. These things may appear ludicrous — to those who view but the out- side ot* things they are purely so ; but to the thought- ful inquirer every trifle connected with a grave subject i- of importance Be it remembered that the phenomenon of which are are speaking does not take place indifferently in all cases of mesmeric relationship between two per- sons ; but only (with few exceptions) when the mes- meriser exerts his will and attention to that particular end. Where indeed the relation between the parties 1 Connexion of the Physical Sciences, p. 331, 484 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. is very strong, the patient is apt, as it were involun- tarily, to adopt the gestures and mode of walking of his mesmeriser. He is as a machine swayed ever by the volition of the latter. But in general the con- nection between particular acts of will and intention, originating with the mesmeriser, and particular mo- tions occurring simultaneously in the patient, is marked and decisive. The inference is irresistible. One mind originates motion in two bodies ; one act tends to two performances. The medium, set in motion between mesmeriser and patient, does not, in this instance move the latter in the manner of a mere stick or rod ; it is plainly impulse as well as guide, and conveys to the motory nerves of the patient the exact impulsion which it takes from the will of the mesmeriser. Whatever be the force which has moved the muscles of the one, precisely the same degree of that force is meted out to the muscles of the other. I may now ask whether the mesmeriser, having thus in the truest sense performed musculai motion in another, and evidently by a medium (lor actions are not propagated save by transference from atom to atom), may not legitimately infer that what is so efficient to influence the nerves and muscles of an- other person is also adapted to act upon his own and is capable of the production of that very effect in himself which he has remarked in another? So also, when he extends, as it were, to his patient, or rather gives action to, a medium of sensation the finest and most delicate imaginable, may he not at least conjecture that a similar medium of sensation THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 485 is employed in conveying to himself impulsions from the external world ? But to consider the matter more closely. The first effect of mesmerism is a bodily sleep, from which volition seems to be absent. In such a state, that it is not natural for persons to get up and walk must be conceded. Constitutional sleepwaking is the affliction of but a few. and of those who are mes- merised scarcely one perhaps has been addicted to Bleepwaking. In accordance with this, it will be remembered that, in my cases of mesmeric sleep- vraking, the patient always manifested at first the strongest reluctance to move, nor indeed would stir until compelled by the strong command of the mes- iMriser. There is. then, at such moments as the patient is moving, a force in operation entirely op- posed to B natural desire, and of Sufficient strength to prevail over that natural desire. But this is not all: we have not here a common case 6f sleep wak* ing, whom only phenomenon is that motion ordi- naril] performed with consciousness is performed unconsciously; but we have sleepwaking directed by an external force ; we have even, be it remembered, motion coftfentatteous with the motion of another, as often as the mesmeriser wishes to produce the phe-* nomenon, We have the nerves of motion inert and incapacitated one inon ; brought the next into involuntary action. Professor Agassiz, who could not of himself stir a muscle when m£sm< rised, moved, when impelled by me. like an automaton across the room. Even while retaining his consciousness enough to resist rny ef- 41* 486 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. " forts, by mere gestures, without contact of any kind, to move his limbs, he subsequently owned that he was actually compelled into such motions as I wished him to perform. Surely a phenomenon like this can be interpreted but in one manner. The mesmeriser restores to his patient's nerves of motion that force, the previous abstraction of which rendered them in- capable. Whether that force be galvanic or not is a different question. Again, pins have been thrust into the flesh of healthy persons during the mesmeric slumber, and they have betrayed do mark of feeling. Now, in such cases, it is plain that the nerves, which ordinarily convey sensations of touch to the mind, are as in- efficient to propagate impulsions upward to the brain, as if they had been tied or cut. — But wherefore? The nerves have been neither tied nor cut : they have undergone no alteration that we can perceive. What are we then to conclude but that they have ceased to become conductors to some invisible force which is indispensable to their action ? For. lo ! the same person who does not feel pins thrust into his own flesh betokens sensibility to the slightest injury which can be otlered to his mesmeriser. and that not merely by a simple idea conveyed in some way to his mind, but by an actual impulsion on a nerve of touch ; for he will raise his hand to the part of his body corresponding with that which suffers pain in the mesmeriser. Seeing this, what can we surmise but that the nerve which was so lately inactive has been restored to action by the very force whose absence marred its efficiency: — that the mesmeriser THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 487 communicates to his patient not merely a conductor, but a means, of sensation ? And impressions of this kind are conveyed in no other way to the patient; for, unless the mesmeriser act, his nervous extremi- Orc in genera] as dead. Since then ire see the motory and sentient powers of the mesmerised person as active through the mes- meris r as they were shown to be powerless in them- selves, we inter that the latter restores the very force through the obstruction of which they become in- efficient And thllfl a new antecedent to EH ination and pal- pable motion becomes manifest : for, however uncer- tain a person may be thai there ifl an intermediate acy between his own will and the motions of his own body, he cannot doubt that there is an inter- mediate agency between himself and the motions he produces in another: and again, however doubtful he may be that his own nerves, in sensation, are but conductors to some more efficient force, he must be certain that he produces sensation in another person, not by nerves merely, but by some invisible medium toting on those nerves and restoring to them their capacities. And that this is all effected by one me- dium seem- certain, lor the mesmeriser can concen- trate its motory and sentient efficacy into one act; as when be handle- a ball, or other object, and the patient (with his back turned and at a distance) goes through the same motions; and, by sympathetic feeling, becomes aware what it is that the mesmeriser holds in his hand. It would be perhaps rash to say that hence he may decidedly infer that motion and 488 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. sensation are performed by a medium in himself; yet speculation cannot but tend that way, and surely he may be forgiven if he supposes that he reads and scans, as by reflection in a faithful mirror, the mys- teries of his own being in the manifested operations of his who sympathizes with him so wondrously. This, at least, is clear : — if ever we hope to arrive at a just notion of what has been called the nervous energy, it must be through means like these. Only thus can we at once demonstrate its existence, and analyze its nature. The action on ourselves of those powers which constitute our vitality is too near us, too intimately blended with our being, to form a subject of personal contemplation. Our un- consciousness of their agency is a law of our being, and has hitherto been the great argument against admitting the very existence of a nervous medium, which, however plausibly presented to reason, can in no way be rendered palpable to sense. Here, however, the mesmeriser, Seeing that he is uncon- scious how he actuates the person whom he sways. while that he docs actuate him through a medium is manifest by visible signs, perceives that his igno- rance, how he feels or performs his own voluntary movements, is no proof whatever that he may not unconsciously use, both in sensation and in motion, a subtile, elastic, and ethereal medium. While physiologists have been engaged in surmis- ing or disputing the existence of a nervous agency, metaphysicians, on their parts, have transferred the question into a more spiritual region, speculating on the strange .marriage between mind and matter, and THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 489 proposing, in order to effect a union between such opposite*!, an intermediary partaking of the qualities of both. That a link does really seem wanting be- tween the mind and the grosser matter with which we are visibly surrounded is to be presumed from the subject having engaged men's attention from the earliest ages; from the period when the ancient phi- losophy devised intermediary images of things, to that in which Cudworth imagined a plastic mediator. This palpable hiatus between the visible and the invis- ible — the subtile and the -toss — mesmerism seems Calculated to supply. Let nic not for one moment be misundt tstood. 'The notion of a halt-intelligent me- dium l- as absurd a jumble as the idea of a half- thought would be. Mind cannot be cut up into ti.tcii »n- : ;ifi«l t<> divide it, or mingle it with matter, in any way 3 w jusl the same as if we were to talk of pounds of intell< quare inches of rationality. When I m>< ;ik. then, of the possibility of a medium subsisting between the mind and the grosser mani- Ltions of matter, I must by no means be con- ceived to intimate that this medium partakes in any of the qualities of spirit In this respect I peri..-' with Sterne. " The ancient philoso- phy materialized spirit, and the modern, in order to be even with it. has spiritualized matter. What cx- lr« tnea arc men liable to run into, who depart one line from common & rise." Besides, this petitio prin- cijtii is altogether useless, and explains nothing. Thought and sensation are in the mind alone. The latter — sensation, at hast, seems brought there from afar, but we cannot shorten the road. When we 490 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. have traced it to the brain, it has still a journey to perform, as long and as difficult as ever, — the tran- sition, namely, from motion to thought, from a sign to an idea, from matter to spirit ; and, however we may deem that we facilitate the passage by a medium, half-mind, half-matter, we in reality have left the op- posing principles just where they were. We have only assumed the very point which we were desirous of proving. I would, then, plainly state that I re- cognize only two grand divisions in nature, namely, of cogitative, and incogitative — that which thinks, and that which thinks not. Yet that, in a different sense, there may exist a medium between sensible objects and the mind, I trust to demonstrate is not impossible. Striving to arrive at the true source whence arises so obstinate an idea in us of a medium between mind and matter, I imagine it, like most of our notions, to proceed from the ground of our own personal experi- ence. We see and know that we never move matter external to ourselves except through the medium of our own bodies. Our minds we fed to be inadequate per sc to stir one atom of extraneous matter. In the same way we feel and know that all information re- specting internal things comes to the mind through the medium of the body ; and, apart from this me- dium, we feel that our minds are inadequate to take cognizance of external objects. Hence arises in the mind a general proposition that mind affects matter, or is affected by matter only through a medium ; and we carry this piece of reasoning even into the pre- cincts of our own corporeal frame — conceiving that THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 491 this also, being matter, can only be moved by our minds through a medium, and can act on our think- ing principle only through a medium. Now this rea- soning, though imperfect, is not altogether null and baseless. Thai mind can only act on matter through a medium, and vice versa, is, indeed, a false proposi- tion ; for allowing a medium, however ethereal, be- tween the mind and brain, we eannot but allow that medium itself to be matter, unless indeed we fall into the old absurdity of a half-intelligent medium. Still there are media which manifestly exist, and are made evident in their effects; which, though they cannot hfl in any wav confounded with mind, inasmuch as they are incogitative, do really differ from our com- mon notion- of matter in many particulars ; — I -peak of media, to w Inch we may apply that which Dr. Ma- culloch ha- beautifully -aid concerning tight. •• Em* ponderable, intangible, incapable of being arrested and accumulated, ever under the mod rapid motions, though we cannot discover a projectile force; coming \\< know not how. and vanishing we know not where, it is in all I mt the power of though! a spirit." Now to matter in general we a rtainly attach the ideas of weight and palpable soliditj ; and though, when we my of the ethereal medium that it is co-extensive with space, and composed of impenetrable, indivisi- ble atoms, we really classify it with matter, still there is a lurkin- feeling in the mind which creates a dis- tinction between matter of go ethereal a texture and that which we can see, weigh, and handle. Why matter of tin- nature should seem to us more adapted to act upon mind, and vice versa, than any other sort 492 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. of matter, we can perhaps give no very philosophical reason ; yet the fact is that there is some such notion in the mind of most persons. But, again, this notion is really in harmony with some striking facts. The grosser media, which are palpable to our senses, act upon and modify the finer media, which are in truth always the most forceful and pervading ; but are either not palpable to our senses, or are perceived only by such a sense as sight, which is in truth a complicated intellectual operation. The atmosphere modifies the electric principle, and its insensible action on our bodies ; the atmosphere modifies light, and adapts it to the visual capacities of man. Light itself has been recently conjectured to depend on electrical actions and reactions. Should this prove to be so, and should subsequent experi- ments demonstrate that man communicates with his own body through electric agency, the following proposition, now but a theory, would gradually evolve itself. Grosser media act on the finer, the finest on the mind of man ; and again the mind of man reacts from finer to grosser media. I confess that to a sys- tem like this the phenomena of mesmerism incline me to lean ; while, as it appears to me, the analogies of the visible universe tend also to the same conclu- sion. In the words of the poet — li Look nature through; 't is just gradation all. By what minute degrees her scale ascends ! Each middle nature joined at each extreme, To that above is joined, to that beneath : Parts into parts reciprocally shot Abhor divorce." THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 493 Again. Wherever we turn our contemplation, there is a manifest progression from finer to grosser media. An ethereal and infinitely subtile fluid, per- vading the realms of space, is the first known step from Deity to matter. Distributed through this, and probably condensed from the prime element, are dis- cerned masses of a luminous substance, which have received the name of nebuke from astronomers. Amidst these [ominous masses, which constitute the first traces of matter of which we have ocular evi- dence are beheld certain nuclei, forming the germs of future suns or worlds. So, al least, we may safely conjecture: lor all geolog] goea to prove that " all this fair variety of things/ 5 which our earth displays, was once in a fluid, or rather gaseous, state. Nay, there needs but a sufficient application of the uni- versal sotyent — heat, to melt down all again into fluidity and vapor. Thus, again, with science, we arrive at a primal, universal element, such as is now Supposed to be the substratum even of the gases: and this element (I speak it with reverence) is the firsl demonstrated action of the AJmighty mind. It' I err in thus expressing myself, I err with no less an authority than Milton, who speaks of light as the fust effluence of divine power: — •• Sail, holy Light, offspring of Heaven, first-born, Or of the Eternal eoSternal l»- am, Ifl r. I i \ >:-■— thee DnbJamed ; since God is light, And never but in nnapproached Light Dwelt from eternity, dwelt then in thee, Bright effluence of bright essence increate. Or Dearest thou rather, pure ethereal stream, Whose fountain who shall tell r Befoie the Sun, 42 494 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. ■ Before the Heavens thou wert, and at the voice Of God, as with a mantle, didst invest The rising world of waters dark and deep, Won from the void and formless infinite." Now that, in mesmerism, a subtile medium is set in motion by the mind has been proved, but whether this be accomplished through the intermediate agency of the brain, or whether the brain itself is moved by the medium — whether, in brief, the brain or the medium be most proximate to the mind, it is impos- sible for us to decide with absolute certainty, it being evident that a man must be palpably proved to have acted without a brain before the question can be finally settled. There is, however, a sort of reluc- tance in the mind (instinctive. 1 grant, and not phi- losophical,) to conceive that spirit can act at once and directly on nerve and lihre. and. above all, on a torpid viscUS like the brain, which may be ent and pierced without the subject of such an operation being conscious of any particular feeling. Rather we incline to imagine thai an impalpable ethereal medium, such as the mesmeric, must be the next thing to mind itself. A medium differing in bo far from ordinary matter, as it is set in motion by the human mind immediately. In such a sense only could we admit the existence of an intermediary between mind and matter. So much may be said without much thought or careful induction : but, when we come to examine into the principles of common muscular motion, we are compelled to use stronger language. The physi- ologist here cannot fairly have recourse to his old THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 495 stalking-horse of vital action, on which he hobbles away bo often, when pressed for an explanation of the mysteries of our frame. He himself must grant that it is will which originates and governs the duration of muscular contraction. He must also grant that contraction cannot take place without the immediate influence of the brain and nerves — though what thai inilu./ir, \< he very wisely forbears to tell ii-. Muscular motion, then. i< performed by the will or mind (for will 18 but an attribute of the mind), through the medium <>t" the foerves. But are the nerves <»f themselves ;i medium fitting for this work ? Uef ii- examine them, and we shall find nothing whatever to account for thru- marvellous capacities; The] are, to appearance, the weakest of all weak in- struments — mere soft white filaments, enveloped in a fine cellular membrane — ami yet the strength and the power of all the body i< derived from them! Tin- simple fact reduces us to a dilemma, father we must believe the nervous substance to be the channel of some ulterior and efficient energy, to us invisible, or we must admit, according to Pascal's generally received definition of a miracle — namely, " an effect exceeding the natural force of the means employed M — that a constant miracle is taking place in our mortal fraipes. Following die good old ad- vice of the poet. Who -aid. •• \ec Deus intersit," &c. } we rather shrink from attributing to direct divine ncy every minute corporeal motion which our fancy may incline us to make. It is not the mind itself which directly moves the muscle : if it did, we should have t<> seek no farther for an adequate agen- 496 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. ^ cy, since we have never measured the power of mind to move matter. But, as we know, the mind moves the muscle indirectly, and through the medium of the brain and nerves. In this case there is a known sequence of events ; and a sequence which, as it stands at present, is an absurdity. The weak soft fibre stirs the muscle, as we are told, so immediately, so mightily, that " its fibres shorten and become hard without any preparatory oscillation or hesitation, and they acquire all at mux such an elasticity, that they are capable of vibrating or producing Bounds;'* 1 There is nothing in mesmerism more wonderful than this, more difficult of digestion to credulity itself, when we take the matter as it stands, without bring- ing into view an ulterior agency, — an efficient force. Why shrink we from so doing? When we look upon the heavens, and the magnificent By stem of sidereal worlds, harmoniously moving round a common cen- tre, we acknowledge all this harmony to be the result of a force which we call gravitation. But what is the wonder of the universe compared to the mys- tery of the mind linked to matter and actuating it I It is a mystery; but we need not on that account render it an absurdity by inefficient causation — by denying the mind an adequate intermediate agency. Such denials betray physiologists into great incon- sistencies ; as, for instance. Magendie one moment censures every attempt to explain muscular contrac- tion, and the very next explains it himself by the vaguest of vague terms — " cerebral influence." 1 Magendie. THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 497 affirming, from the strength of maniacs, that "the muscular power may be carried to a wonderful de- gree by the action of the brain alone."' What is this brain, what are the nerves, that they should possess such power of action: Is it inherent in them ; If so, why does it not endure when man has ceased to think and live. Examine a nerve apart from the intelligent being it once served, pore over it with the microscope ; then take the brain and weigh n well, of col it up into sections; where is the innate power of action , where is all that may truly he called power — namely, the enduring and essentia] capacity of originating motion! [f, then, it be an absurdity to attribute ;m inherent power of motion to flesh and fibre, it is also an absurdity to attribute to weal instruments like the nerves an inherent power of stirring, in an instant, the strong volume of a muscle. And it' the power be not inherent, where is it ; Granting all that we can -rant aa regards the efficienc] of mind to stir its own organization, we must beware how we charge inconsistency upon the Creator by supposing Him to violate those laws of action which he points out to us by manifest signs; and never has our experience shown that by a weaker agent we can move a stronger — in a case, too, where the disproportion is manifest, and where there no connecting links to prepare the way for the action of the much weaker upon the much stronger. \_am we ask — where are we to look for the force that effects such wonders? Now we fear not to ex- plain muscular action in the dead by a force that we call galvanic Why will we not explain it in the 42* 498 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM* living by some efficient force at least — for here we have equally a sensible phenomenon that calls on us for an adequate explanation. I know not what phi- losophic doubt may make of this question, but cer- tainly common sense decides, from the ordinary phe- nomena of muscular motion, that the mind actuary dispenses and metes out a material force, of which the brain is, perhaps, the elaborator, and the nerves decidedly the appointed conductors. This renders the question, Whether the mind acts on the body, mediately or immediately ? much more easy of deci- sion ; and, when we weigh probabilities, inclines the balance in favor of those who adhere to the doctrine of a medium. Finally. When we agree to divide matter into ponderable and imponderable, we, in fact, create a distinction to the full as great and important as any which can be devised by supposing a third substance which is neither mind nor matter. And. this distinc- tion once admitted, there is no inconsistency what- ever in saying that by matter imponderable we com- municate with matter ponderable. Be it remembered, I assert no more than that mes- merism bears on this disputed point ; — that it decides the question is not affirmed. But, when we reflect that the whole of mesmerism seems to consist in dis- carding ordinary intermediaries, such as the external mechanism of the senses and the media adapted to this. and in arriving at grounds and principles ; above all, when we see, by the experiments of Dr. Elliotson. that mesmerism can be a succedaneum at least for muscu- lar force, enabling the weak to raise heavy weights ; THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 499 and when again we combine this with all that has been just advanced respecting an intermediary in muscular action, — surely, all this considered, we cannot be far from the belief that the mesmeric me- dium is really the long-sought link that was to render our system more complete and more harmonious. Should ire come to this conclusion, we remove at once the objection eg often raised against the \nv ex- istence of mesmerism, that its agent cannot — in our Usual State at least — be made the object of our It is a medium to enable lis to perceive ob- ject-, and therefore that it should not be itself a direct object of sense seems natural, tight itself is the true object of the eye 3 and is, in ( ertain cases, its Bole obj.-et : and whether we < ouununicate even with this directly may be made a question. Should we establish a medium between the mind and all matter perceivable by us. -till the principle must here also b. adhered to. It would only be in analogy with what w< have ascertained in other cases, should we decide that we only communicate with light through the medium of another and an imperceptible agency. Of course the same reasoning will apply to air, and to the action of all media on our senses. Such, at least, as we ha\e Been, was the view which Newton took of the economy of sensation — not giving all his rea- ■Ons why he did so ; but w ho can doubt but that such a mind as hi- kept back within itself more reasoning on most Subjects than common thinkers have pro- mulgated and found adequate to secure a very tolera- ble reputation ? But, in truth, the objection to the reality of mes- 500 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. merism because it cannot be brought before our senses, is not worth much. We see it in its effects, and of these we can judge by more senses than one. The mesmerised, perhaps, being in a different state to ourselves, may see or feel indications at least of this subtile agent, when they speak of perceiving a kind of fine vapor, or electric light. If so, the essen- tial difference between the mesmeric and the normal state would consist in the power of being sensible to the very medium which furnishes the means of sense. But, in truth, what is the invisible ? The micro- scope will prove our vision to be capable of a devel- opment, the limits of which will not easily be found. Revealed by this, " world within world inclosed " will burst upon our sight, where we had supposed a void. It would be, then, ridiculous to make the ex- istence of a medium between mind and body de- pendent on the cognizance of our senses as at pre- sent constituted. That which is not discerned by us may be clearly seen by more spiritual optics. I should be sorry if my existence depended on the perfection or imperfection of some persons' organs of sight and general sensibility. Indeed, if we lay to heart the deceptiveness and mutability of all the external species of matter, at the same time considering that we have no reason to deem it capable of change in its ultimate and imper- ceptible particles ; if also we reflect that whatever is not palpable in itself yet is indicated by its effects, forces us on pure reason by withdrawing at once the aid and the illusion of our external senses : we shall perhaps come to the conclusion that the invisible is THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 501 the only true, exclaiming with the old Latinist, " In- visibilia non decipiunt." These remarks will be received with indulgence or not. by no means according to their merit, but ac- cording to the turn and character of each several reader's mind ; and this observation involves a gene- ral truth not sufficiently attended to. We all have our own modes of reasoning, and, as our minds are analytic or synthetic, we love those who never reach or those who jump to a conclusion. Again, some delight in all theories, and some love nobody's theo- ri< - but their own. Now, whether I belong to those who hastily snatch up an hypothesis, because it so nicely accounts tor things, or to those who draw de- ductions, because their reason is Convinced, I leave toothers to decide ; that is, provided they be of a party who decide on any thing. For my own part I confess my weakness, I like to come to a decision; and herein 1 am at a manifest disadvantage, for in all ages the doubters have lorded it greatly over the deciders. It is so grand, and > () philosophic to doubt even of one's own senses. 1 leave the world to apply this to mesmerism gene- rally. Whether the speculations into which this sin- gular subject leads ds almost without our wills be or be not generally acceptable, it must be ( vned that, in suggesting to us a mode of sensation more direct and worthy of the mind itself than the common, they do us no ill service ; and surely we cannot grossly err in giving to thought so swift-winged a messenger of volition, so subtile a vehicle of sensibility, as the mesmeric medium. 502 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. The idea of nature's constitution, which the appre- hension of such a medium excites, are at once com- prehensive and ennobling ; and the philosopher, who desires to have large views of man and of creation in general, cannot take his stand on a better vantage- ground than the one which the inquirer into mes- merism is compelled to occupy. Thus expanded, his mind can scarcely fail to be cured of that dogmatism which cries out " impossible " to all that is not within the narrow round of its own experience. The first time of witnessing a successful experiment in mes- merism must be an era in the life of every thinking being ; while the student in this science, who at length arrives at the knowledge of an ethereal me- dium, connected with all animated beings and with thought in particular, beholds a flood of light illumi- nating mysteries which have probably long weighed on his heart and brain. He beholds all life and in- telligence at once connected and individualized — reciprocally connected in all its parts universally with God; and he has a glimpse at least of the waves of the great ocean agitated by thought eternal, and tending to thought again in the limited portions of intelligence which the Almighty has gifted with in- dividual consciousness. Should his mind be less excursive, should he study mesmerism with practical severity ; still he cannot but view it with interest as a link between sciences at present disunited or standing remotely connected. Physics and metaphysics are now at daggers-draw- ing ; but here they may embrace and be reconciled. It so evidently touches on all and blends all. With- THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 503 out it the connection of the physical sciences is in- complete, for this alone concentrates them personally in man. I cannot for a moment doubt that a future generation will hail mesmerism as the very note which was wanting to render all nature harmonious, as the key which fits every ward of knowledge and unlocks all the treasures of science. The ornitho- rhyncus was deemed at first a fictitious creature, 1 jut was found at last to be the very link that was Wanting to the animal creation. Let me hope that if, in endeavoring to advance a consummation bo desirable, I have fallen into scien- tific enora or partial inadvertences, 1 niay be for- given on the -coir of motive at least ; though 1 am quite willing t<> be charged with the fault, provided mesmerism l><" not blamed. In setting forth a new oce there is always a probability that errors will be committed, especially in setting forth a science like this, winch to Solve entirely Would be to solve the riddle of man. There is one imputation, however, from which I shall with difficulty escape, a charge of which I fear not even my own conscience ran acquit inc. In the first part of this work I uttered disrespectful words arding those who. treating on mesmerism, took occasion to frame systems of the universe; and now, behold. I am myself found guilty of soaring upwards from my subject into the regions of space, and of drawing from a few despised facts the highest con- clusions. So easy is it to blame ; so difficult to avoid blame j so difficult, also, when treating of man, not 504 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. to touch upon lofty topics and to be led even una- wares to speculate on the sublimities of creation. It remains for me now to exhibit mesmerism in such points of view as regard all men equally, whether considered as material or immaterial beings. First, as a remedial agent, mesmerism, when better known, cannot but be universally important and in- teresting. That it should not already be so is only a proof how inveterate prejudice can be, then most when most irrational. When we see persons eagerly running after every new or old new-revived remedy, consenting to be starved, as is now the fashion in Germany (where men are mad for what is called the hunger-cure) ; or to have their insides drenched, Sangrado-like, with water ; or to sit smilingly plunged up to the neck in mud. When we see such instances of more than martyr fortitude displayed too on the occasion of every trifling, or perhaps imagined, mal- ady, we cannot but wonder that mesmerism, so fraught with hope and healing to the human race, should be neglected; more especially, too. as its therapeutics are neither disagreeable nor disgusting. " Blest be the man who first invented sleep," says Sancho ; and in this a man lias only to sleep and to be cured. Not being medical myself, I cannot bring forward a number of personally observed cases in which mes- merism has been useful. I have, however, sometimes mesmerically treated slight indispositions in members of my own family with success, and I have had occa- sion to be struck generally with the power of mes- THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 505 meric agency to equalize the circulation and to relieve pain. I have known it to be particularly successful in cases of severe headache — by no means one of the least ills ; * which flesh is heir to." On one occa- sion, a friend of mine, the Baron de Karlowitz, whom I used to mesmerise sometimes for mere purposes of experiment, came to me with a severe cold and hoarseness, which prevented him from speaking above ft whisper. We neither of us had any idea of curing thll affection ; yet, after he had been mesmerised for about an hour, during the -renter part of which time he slept, he rose from his chair perfectly relieved from his catarrhal >\mploms. He also found, after I had mesmerised him a few times, that he had got rid of a chronic rheumatism in one arm. from which he had been suffering for many weeks. Prom medical friends I have received many parti- cular account- of the beneficial agency of mesmer- ism : but these the limits of my work do nol allow me to detaiL I can only state generally that, as might have been expected from the evident action of this influence on the nerves, mesmerism is especially useful in those derangements of the nervous system which arc generally beyond the reach of medicine. Epilepsy, palsy, nervous depression, madness even, have b icn successfully combated and subdued by this, which ma\ most emphatically be called the natural remedy. If only in its power to calm, when opiates are hurtful and improper, this tranquillizing influence is of incalculable value, enabling nature, during the periods of repose, to balance and recruit her disordered forces. Dr. Foissac, of Paris, has 43 506 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. assured me that he has seen men restored to calm- ness and finally to health by mesmeric action, when suffering in the last stage of spasmodic cholera. Rea- soning from analogy, we should conjecture that this is probably the only power available to counteract hydrophobia. At any rate, the instinct whereby persons in the mesmeric state prescribe remedies for themselves or others might here be turned to most valuable account. The insensibility to bodily suf- fering, which has been proved to characterize the mesmeric state, may also, as it has already in some few instances, prove of the greatest service in ena- bling patients to undergo the amputation of limbs, or other painful operations. In reply to a question I addressed by letter to Dr. Foissac, I received the following communication : — " Vous pouvez, en toute surety magnetiser des femmes enceintes : voua leur ferez beaucoup de bien. Quelques Bomnambules on1 accouche sans la plus petite souffrance ; dans tout cas le magnetisme rend les douleurs trrs supportables." The last and most important point of view in which we have now to consider mesmerism ifl in its reference to the future prospects of man, considered as an improvable being, capable of immortality. My object here is, as it has heretofore been, at once to explain and to utilize mesmerism. Already I have cast light on its apparent mysteries : first, by the laws of our normal consciousness : secondly, by the true nature of sensation : thirdly, by the native force and faculties of the mind ; fourthly, by demonstrating that, in the mesmeric state, the mind is not only de- THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 507 tacked from its present restricted organs, but gifted with a medium of sensation more direct and more worthy of itself; and now, finally, I purpose to render evident whatever in my subject may jret appear to be unexplained, by considering man as a being capable of a development unsuited to his present era of existence* The subject is most important. The otto r topics on which we have been engaged are but speculative points, and are comparatively devoid of inter* st. This COmeS home at once to our business and bosoms. Wretched, indeed, must be the view of man which confines him to this bank and shoal of time, which does QOt regard hun. and all his glorious endowments, ss intruded for a «ri< s of existences. •• lii .• b) hope, Any the universal manu- script of nature learn to Mew Him. as it were, with the eyes of the body, thus enlarging our views of His power, wisdom, and design. Without this source erf instruction, corporeal as well as intellectual, our re- lation to the author of all things, we being composed of body and spirit, would be incomplete. Now, thus to hold converse with the attributes of God, as expressed in the visible creation, is not a temporary object ; for we have no reason to sup} that matter and its properties, whatever changes they THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 511 mav undergo, will ever be annihilated : matter, indeed, being the only thing respecting which we have sen- sible evidence that it perishes not: and from this the ii advocate of man's immortality, the poet Young, draws a chief argument in favor of his subject: — rid of matter, with its fanODJ forms, All fe. Life, born from death, d shall forever n 11. \ ace in being, ! \\ ill) ctmn Most High. What t" on f ( 'an it be \ M •• : .'. Lnd i . .. Spirit die Moi« over, on matter hang all our hopes of indivi- dual existence, for, as I have before shown, the indi- vidualitj of all spirit but God must consist in being impacted and restricted, — in being less than pure spirit, which the Absolute alone can be, — in having a body thrt>ugh which all information respecting the original ideas of God being transmitted should be- come proper to itself. Reason, then, proclaims exter- nal matter^ not less than that portion of it connected with ourselves, to have been created for a durable exist* nee ; and, this In 'm- 1 1 1< ■ ease, it is evident that to bring the mind acquainted with all the qualities of the universe is an end and object which remains im- mutable, and which, unless we can suppose this world to be the be-all and the end-all. and God tobe limited in creation and invention, can only be fulfilled here m a partial and imperfect manner. Supposing man to enter on individual existence for the first time in this our planet, it is here he takes his first lessons in natural divinity; and it would be indeed to charge the Almighty with " change of counsel " and 512 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. vain expense of mighty means, were we to suppose that what man learns here is to be unlearned hereafter. Wise earthly parents deal not so with their children. Now by what means, at any time, shall we continue our process of instruction ? Surely, as we began it ; by means of a body, the great purpose of body being to connect mind individually with matter and its proper- ties. A body, then, that shall endure seems essential alike to the continuation of our individual existence, and to our continued commerce with the qualities of the visible creation. Revelation is perfectly in accord with this idea. The Bible philosophically says, at man's creation, — " And man became a living soul," that is, an individual soul, a soul embodied, and capa- ble of communicating with external matter. When we say, then, that man is to live hereafter, we also affirm that he is to continue embodied ; and in this again revelation sanctions the deductions of our rea- son, one great object of Christ's mission on earth being to preach the resurrection of man with a body. Such a body then as would endure, and cleave to the mind through all external changes, is. in fact, the fundamental life ; while the organic life is but that visible and grosser envelop which forms our tangible body in this world, and which is furnished with or- gans which have especial reference to this particular state of existence. More briefly : the fundamental life is the body (for what is life, in our case at least, but mind incorpo- rate ?) that we are to retain throughout eternity. The organic life is the body, or means of communi- cating with matter, which we now palpably possess, THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 513 and which may be imagined to be a temporary de- velopment of the other, just as leaves, flowers, and fruits are the temporary development of a tree. And in the same manner that these pass and drop away, yet leave the principle of reproduction behind, so may our present organs be detached from us by death, and yet the ground of our existence be spared to us continuously. When St. Paul affirms that there is a spiritual bod] as well as a natural body, he not doubtfully declares the >amc thing. He does, in fact, draw a distinction between the body we now have for pur- poses connected with the economy of this world and the more lasting body which is to connect us with the universe in general. He was too good a logician to have used the word- "spiritual body" in a vague and mystical Bense. Bod] is body, and the only differences between one body and another which can possibly obtain, are -nidations frotn grosser to liner, or the contrary. That we should rather evolve from our present corporeal elements the body which is to be ours be- yond the grave, than begin existence de novo: that, in other words, we Bhould reall\ poS8e88 a fundamen- tal life, or (to speak more intelligibly) a fundamental body, incapable of passing away with the grosser covering that envelops it ; that, at death, we should retain something physically from our actual condi- tion, seems pointed out to us by all the analogies of nature. Everywhere we behold that one state includes the embryo of the next, not metaphysically, but mate- 514 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. rially ; and entering on a new scene of existence is not so much a change as a continuation of what went before. A sudden leap from one condition to another is not compatible with nature's evident ten- dencies. The very rudiments of organs, intended in a higher stage of animal life to be useful, are found, uselessly as it were, appearing in the lower classes of animated creatures, or — stronger still — lying in embryo in the same creature in one state, only to be developed in another. It is an old allu- sion, but ever beautiful, — " The wings that form The butterfly, lie folded in the worm." We should then, a priori, expect to find the prin- ciple that individualizes man, and is the true medium of his instruction, attached to him from the begin- ning, and that the germs of future capacities, physi- cal not less than intellectual, should be discoverable in his constitution. Here again we arc reminded of St. Paul's beautiful comparison between man's tran- sitory body and a seed that loses in the ground <>nly its exterior husk or covering, while the very circum- stance that produces in it a partial loss and decay is the occasion of development to that germ which from the first included within itself all that it would be hereafter. Thus is appears manifest that the apostle supposes that, even from analogies before our ej we may draw conclusions respecting our future con- dition ; — nay, he seems to find this truth so clear that he thinks it argues much want of intellect in a person not to perceive it, as it is evident by his say- THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 515 ing, " Thou fool, that which thou sowest is not quickened except it die." In another place he Strongly intimates that the doctrine of a permanent body was not unknown to his converts. " For we know," he says, "that if our earthly house of this tabernacle (meaning evidently our present body) were dissolved, we have a building of God, a house not made with hands, eternal in the heavens.' 5 And with this he- desires, at death, to be u clothed upon/ 3 or, in other words, embodied : not wishing to be " unclothed," or to be disembodied, which would be equivalent to annihilation, as if he were tired of existence ; but only longing to depart and be with Christ — in other words, to continue exist** ence in a more elevated state of being, putting off the external weeds, but not the unchanging vesture of the spirit Prom considerations like these we may surmise that the mind i> capable of being organized in two ways — visibly and invisibly. It may have a subtile envelop, adapted generally to its own active and subtile essence, and. in addition to it, it may have a rset covering, as our mortal body, adapted to its presi nt state of existence and furnished with particu- lar organs for particular purposes. The dissolution of this coarser covering is by us called death ; that is, We seem unto men to die : but with our inner body we never part. ami. consequently, by that we still retain <»ur hold upon individual existence. As Leibnitz has remarked: "There is no such thing as death, if tliat word be understood with rigorous and metaphysical accuracy. The soul never quits 516 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. completely the body with which it is united, nor does it pass from one body into another with which it had no connection before ; a metamorphosis takes place ; but there is no metempsychosis." ' Let us now examine the validity of our a priori reasoning by a reference to the facts of mesmerism. Man is shown by these to be capable of increased sensitive power. Cui bono — to what end, if here- after this increase of faculty become not permanent ? Would it be consistent with the goodness of Provi- dence to tantalize us by imperfect glimpses of that which we shall never be permitted to realize : Would wings be folded in the worm if they were not one day to enable it to fly J We cannot think so poorly of creative wisdom or of thrifty nature. Throughout her realms there is no mockery of unmeaning dis- plays of power; and. if so. then is mesmerism a pledge irrefragable of a future state of existence, calculated tor the exhibition of those energies whieh are but a promise here. Relative to this subject, 1 have particular pleasure in remarking the coincidence of thought between myself writing on mesmerism and an esteemed author, who. in framing a " physical theory of another life," has unconsciously borne wit- ness by reason to the truth of mesmeric development. Such unbought testimony i< precious. He is speak- ing of what an enlarged perception might effect " Doubtless,-' he says, "the mind might bring its percipient faculty into contact with the properties of matter more at large and under fewer limitations. 1 Encyclopedia Britannica — Preliminary Dissertations. THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. 517 The medullary substance we may easily suppose to he laid open to sensation otherwise than it actually nd also to be endued with a more refined or exquisite sensibility. •• The mind, perhaps, in its next stage of life, and when its active and higher principles have become mature, may be well able to sustain and advantage- ously t'» use ;i much mare ample correspondence with the material world than would now he good or pos- sible Perception i- at present a circumscribed facul- ty : and we confidently anticipate an era, when it shall throw off its confinements, and converse at large with the material universe, and find itself fa- miliarly at home m the height and breadth of the heaven* We maj assume thai it only needs to be free from the husk of animal organization to know on all ridefl perfectlj thai winch now it knows at points only, and in an abated degree. And besides knowing effects .it would also know causes. The inner form of matter, as il has been termed, may. as well as the external species, be discernible. Instead Of looking only at the dial-plate of nature, we should be admitted to inspect the wheel-work and the sprit; The above passage offers a delightful contrast to those narrow-minded views of man which limit both himself and hi Almightj author to the ipa dixit of ■ peevish sceptic The whole work, from which it l- extracted, is worthy of attention, and is in per- fect accordance with mesmeric phi nomena ; nor can I refrain from believing that its clever author would rejoice to Bee realized in this life anticipations which 44 518 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. he only framed concerning the next. From his re- marks, which we have just cited above, we gather that he looks forward to the future enlargement of human perception in three several particulars — namely, in an increased refinement or sensibility ; in an extension of the sphere in which that sensibility shall display itself; and in a power of discerning ob- jects and their qualities through impediments which, in our present state, form insurmountable barriers to the action of our senses. Now. in order to behold these anticipated prerogatives really conferred on human perception, we have only to behold the higher phenomena of mesmerism. Not even the commonest observer (supposing him to possess common honesty) can witness them without being struck with the con- viction that a new and more pervading kind of per- ception has been opened to the mesmerised person; but he who should have reasoned previously (Ml the subject, as the author from whom 1 have quoted, would at once perceive that every thing which WaiB passing before his eyes was in beautiful harmony with science, philosophy, and truth. He would be- hold that fineness of perception — that enlargement of the miners sphere — that power of acting through obstacles, which his own reason had told him must belong to man when the mechanical restrictions of the senses should be laid aside. Let me, however, hasten to qualify whatever may appear exaggerated in the above statements, lest I prepare disappointment for the sanguine, or arouse the apprehensions of the timid. In pure compas- sion, I would appease the fears of those who deem THK MESMERIC MEDIUM. 519 mesmerism, if true, a perilous truth, that should be huddled up from knowledge, and, like the Bible in a Catholic laud, be restricted only to the use of the initiated. Such persons (and there are such) actu- ally dread lest the new science should make man too wise, and too powerful, and look Oil it with fear and trembling as a pernicious stepping-forward from our sphere, — as the very Babel-tower of this era. Let these apprehensions subside. In being permitted to view the mesmeric state, there is nothing to make man proud, but all to keep him humble, while he - that the least step out of our present condition i- an improvement upon our {acuities, and that phe- nomena bo despised, bo vilified by common ridicule, are beyond the compass of our powers to achieve. Then, too, mesmerism has its restrictions, which keep it low to earth, even while it hints of heaveA. Sel- dom does n occur in a degree to astonish. Many are the condition- it requires for its accomplishment. Carefully hedged about is it by the barriers of op- posing will, by defective sensibility, even by a spirit of scepticism. It- highest capacities are exercised with difficulty, its loftiest wonder- arc few and fleet- ing, and exhaust evidentlj the person by whom they are displayed. Still, it is a rise upon our actual existence. Its true office is not to make us confident, yet -till to encourage us to hope by the transient and imperfect display of faculties, the permanent con- tinuance of which would be incompatible with our present state of being. A state of such manifest development, one* seen, would naturally be deemed, as I before have said, a 520 THE MESMERIC MEDIUM. kind of earnest of that which is to come — a corrobo- ration of hope, a first-fruit of prerogatives, which, though temporary here, should be durable hereafter. And it would further be conceived that, as the tran- siently-developed faculties were to accompany man into a future state of existence, the means through which they were developed would also cleave to humanity and be assured to its possession. For, as we have seen, we do not merely behold in mesmer- ism a shadowy advantage, but a tangible benefit, a material good, working by material means : an actual physical improvement in sensation, brought about by the action of a more pervading and subtile medium than any of which we have ordinary cognizance* Hereby, then, we may be enal>lcul>|< Dr. C. replied that he had no such intention, and, moreover, that he was as much surprised as any one present at the cir- cumstance. To the question put by the Chairman, " Is the boy in an unnatural state ? " Dr. Stedman replied, " He ap- pears to be in an unnatural state. Those spasms. I think, could not be feigned." The committee adjourned, to meet again on Saturday, at 10 o'clock, A. M. Saturday, June 26th. The committee met pursuant to adjournment, but, without attending to any experiments, adjourned to Monday, at 10 o'clock, A. M. appendix. 5:27 Monday, June 2Sth. The Committee met according to adjournment. A letter from the Hon. Judge Thacher was read. Dr. C. operated first upon his own subjects, with more or less of apparent success. Jt was then suggested by a member, that it might be more sa- ti>factory to the Committee, to have some subject not known by Dr. C, but with whom the Committee were better ac- quainted, and that there was a gentlemen present who was Willing to subject himself to the process, and who was believed to be susceptible. Dr. Dted to make an attempt. The gentleman alluded to was then presented. Several medical •ne who were the strongest disbelievers of Animal M tgnetism, expressed their high com- mendatioo of the character of the new subject, for unimpeach- able im- attainments a- a physician and a Scholar, and said they knew he would enter into no scheme for misleading tin- an - r any other. Dr. C, then per- formed In- nana] for about ten minutes, when the pa- tient had gradually fallen si Dr. C. pointed his band towards the (ace of in- patient, he rery suddenly, with a shaking of tie' bead and - . awoke, and, half smiling, . and continued so for about ten . but Dr. C« looking sternly at him, he reclined his I, and in a!. out i, red asleep again* In a few seconds be awoke a- before. He was again asleep und. wseeonSds ihen waking and beginning [p| .im how he felt, be pot bis hands upon the arms of his chair to • fide thought be was now at liberty to leave, and r<»-e half way up ; when (Dr. I '. looking him ily in the fell back again into the chair, a< if too a to rise. He then ros rpendicular posture pn his and under tie stances and appearances, sank into \i\> chair. j sin upon bin feet, and turn Is the Commit oiog to believe be was now at liberty, and oof perceiving Dr. C, who stood close behind him, with lice ai. Sternly bent upon him, at- tempted again, with seeming eagernest tain how he felt; but he faltered every two or three word-, pressing his 1 hard a^ain-t his eye- two or three limes, a- though par- 528 APPENDIX. tially faint, and breaking off in the middle of a sentence, with- out finishing any intelligible explanation, and having his hand again pressed over his eyes, rubbing them as though but par- tially awakened from deep sleep, he turned to take his seat, when he discovered that Dr. C. was close behind him, and intent upon him. He then passed a distance of about three steps, Dr. C. now for the first time leaving him, and spoke connectedly and with an easy freedom. He said he felt a pleasant thrill in his arms and hands. "I did not lose my consciousness entirely, but felt confused, as you see I am. I attempted twice to speak, while under the power of Dr. C, but could not." He says he never has spoken to Dr. C. but once, which was casually yes- terday at the Natural History room, nor seen him more than twice, or ever communicated with him upon this subject. [He subsequently declined a request of the Committee to submit himself again to experiment.] The father of young Mr. Beals, a respectable merchant in this city, is present, and says he has not before seen his son so quiet for seven years, as he has been since operated upon by Dr. C. The Committee adjourned to half-past 10, A. M«, to-morrow. Tuesday, June '29th. The Committee met pursuent to adjournment. Voted, to choose a sub-committee of five to examine the subject before and after being put into the so called magnetic state. And Drs. Storer, Lewis, Morrell, J. II. Lane, and J. W, James, Esq., were chosen accordingly. The boy Frederick was ex- amined by the sub-committee, who found nothing remarkable. Dr. C. commenced at twenty-two minutes before 12, the boy declaring, under the process, that he would not be put to sleep by Dr. C, because he had magnetized Mr. Beals. In about seven minutes, there are strong twitchings of the muscles over the whole body, similar in appearance to those of the lad with chorea, who is present, and affirms that he has not felt any twitchings since Dr. C. began this time to magnetize Frederick, but prior to this had felt them, though comparatively slight, since being magnetized by Dr. C. This present cessation of his tetanus, was thought worth noting, though the magnetizing APPENDIX. 5-29 of Frederick, or his having the convulsions at this time, might have nothing to do with it. The Rev. Mr. Turnbull explained it, by saying, that the present quiet of Mr. Seal's muscles might be produced by his close attention to the present operation on Frederick ; and the Rev. Mr. T. asked Mr. B. if he felt calm when listening to his pastor, the Rev. Mr. tStow, and being much interested I lie replied, that be was more excited. The sub-committee was requested to give an opinion in regard to the muscular twitchings of Pre ; erick, which had continued a long time. Dr. Storei stated his opinion, that they might be feigned — asked to say whether he thought they were feigned; he Bays, M I should choose not to be driven to an answer, but if insist, I give it aa my opinion that they on feigned. Dr. Morrell i I bis concurrence. Dr. Lane was not pre- pared to give an opinion. Air. James doubted if they could be wia out.] Dr. C. offered to have the boy left in that position, (apparently an uncomfortable one), with gen- tlemen to watch him bj turn-, for two, three, or four days, to whether this state \ led. Mr ., was introduced to the Committee by Dr. Storer, who vouched for his good char 1 that there could he no collusion between him and Dr. C, and added — ° It' he shall -ay Dr. C. puts him to sleep, 1 will believe it. Dr. C. made a trial. The only effect produced [at this time] was a heaviness of the arms, as if from great fatigue, and a strong contraction of the little linger which he tried to overcome but said he could not. Dr. C. had said to some members, that Frederick was now in an unusually line state for clairvoyance, when John C. Park, Es>p, whom Dr. C. had declared to have the requisite continu- ity of thought, was put in communication with the lad. Mr. Park, without giving any intimation of bis intended course, and avoiding all leading questions, asked the boy as to what he saw. The first two or three answers not being satisfactory to Mr. P., he willed him back again, he said, to where we were sitting, and then proceeded again. Each succeeding an- swer, as Mr. P. declares, was correctly descriptive of the same things, in the same order, and at the same times that Mr. P. had the ideas of them in his mind, directing attention to them- 45 530 APPENDIX, Mr. Park's Question. — 1. What do you see ? Frederick's Answer. — Some thing high. Mr. Park's statement made on each answer after the conclusion of the whole experiments. — The building west side of Bowdoin square. Mr. P. — 2. "What color is it ? Ans. — Black or white — not very black. Mr. P.'s statement. — It is of granite. Mr. P. — 3. What is there about it ? are there any streets ? Ans. — One on each side. Mr. P.'s statement. — Such is the fact. Mr. P. — 4. What do you see now ? Ans. — A door. Mr. P.' s statement. — I viewed in imagination the door of the jail in Leverett street. Mr. P. — 5. Any thing about it ? Ans. — Only the steps there. Mr. P.'s statement. — There are steps to it. Mr. P. — 6. Now pass into that door with me through an entry, and what do you see ? Ans. — Oh ! a great many doors. Mr. P. 's statement. — I was in imagination at this time, and during the two following questions, in a hall of the jail, hav- ing in it nine doors all in view. Mr. P. — 7. How many i count them. Ans. — 1, 2, 3—1 can't count them. Mr, P. — 8. Yes you can — I can, and so can you. Try again. A nSt — 1 ? 2, 3, 4, 5, 6, 7 — oh ! there's more than that ; I can't count them. It's a cold place — 1 don't want to stay here. Mr. P. — 9. Well, then, we'll leave this place and go to an- other. What do you see ? Ans. — A door. Mr. P. 's statement. — I contemplated the door of William- son's cell. Mr. P.— 10. Well, we'll go into that door. Ans. — Oh, we can't, it's all barred up. We can't go in. AfK P.'s statement. — It is kept bolted, o( course. Mr. P. — 11. Why not? Yes we can. We will go in. Are we in ? APPENDIX. 531 Ans. — Yes. Mr. P. — 12. What do you see there ? Ans. — A man. Mr. P. — 13. Any body else there ? Ans. — No ; one man and no more. Mr. P.'s statement. — Williamson alone is kept there. Mr. P. — 14. What is he doing? Ans. — Sitting there. Mr. P.— 15. What does he sit on ? Ans. — Some thing dirty. Mr. Ph statement. — Their beds are dirty. Mr. P. — 16. Do you see any thing else. Ans. — Only the black thing over there. Mr. /Vs statement. — 1 knew not what the boy meant at the time, but went directly tu the jail, and Williamson had a black article up against the wall to lean against as he sat. Mr. P. — 17. Now we'll turn round, and what do you see ? Ans. — A small white thing, round. Mr. PA >t itu/i'jit. — A tub, for necessary purposes, which is round. Mr. P.— 1& What is it lor? I. — Km nasty — I don't want to tell. [Exhibiting great ist.| Mr. P.*! jkAammd. — Comedy described] thus. Mr. P.— 19. Well, you've told enough about that. What do you see now I I, — A window. Mr, P.'s stattmtnt. — I was directing attention to the win- dow. Mr. P. — 20. Look out at that window. Ans. — 1 can't. Mr. P.— SI. Why? An*. — It'^ dirty. Mr. P.'s stattmint. — I was wishing to have him speak of the iron grates to it, but do not comprehend bib answer. Mr. P. then said — Now we'll go to another part. What do you see ? But the answers to this and another question not being satisfactory, Mr. P. said — Well, I don't know where you are. You are where I'm not, and proceeded no further. 532 APPENDIX. The following is Mr. Park's certificate on the above : — " I hereby certify that the expressions above attributed to me, are, in substance, correct. John C. Park/' Adjourned to half past 10 o'clock, Thursday, A. M. Thursday, July 1st. The Committee met pursuant to adjournment. Voted, That Dr. Gregerson (he being present) be requested to state his late experience upon the subject of the Commit- tee's inquiries. Dr. G. rose and gave a very interesting ac- count in detail of the manner of his late conviction of the real- ity of some of the phenomena asserted by the advocates of Animal Magnetism. lie says he began two or th ngs since, while entirely faithless upon this to manipulate upon a gentleman bap] with him, who was so far a skeptic, as to have said shortly before, that 1 Dr. C. would try to magnetize him before his evening audience, and he would feign sleep until Dr. C. announced that he was in the magnetic condition, and tie D Lghteft sently the subject appeared asleep. When he wai ter awake again, ho w , Dr. G. of doing to him, he had said he would to Dr. Collycr, i. p. fei \ he (the subject) declared he bad ;:en questioned, it appeared be was ntt< rka- ble noise that bad d in the mean time, as also of G.'s going to shut the door Since this first time, Dr. G. thinks he has several times put him asleep most unequivocally, and elicited somnambulic phenomena. [Th* ittee had the opportunity of witnessing this by Dr. Gl wer room of the Temple, July 6.] Dr. Dana, the secretary, being unwell, S. F. Tiympton was chosen secretary pro tempore. An unsuccessful attempt was made to i new subject. At 12 o'clock, Dr. C. commences operating upon Mr. Stone, before mentioned, in whom gentlemen had expressed their con- fidence. At about twelve minutes past L2 o'clock, he stands APPENDIX. 533 up, and Dr. C. continues his "willing" for a minute or two longer. Then Dr. C. ceasing and stepping aside, Mr. Stone is asked to state how he had felt, Sec, But he stood as he was, mute and motionless for more than half a minute, as though he heeded nothing that was said or done, and with his eyes still fixed as they had been. He is asked, " Can't you speak ? " He soon faintly replies. M \\ - m" but still continues with his eyes and body fixed as before, and in about ten seconds, says, " I do fed very peculiarly, indeed," still without having stirred Or limb. In about one minute more he seemed more self- in the following narration : — " I had a sort of confuted feeling, which 1 have not recovered from u'. When I waa put the question how 1 felt, I thought I would answer, and tried to do bo, but felt somehow nut sensation in my whole id do so even now ; and when Dr. I me to myself, 1 felt 1 could stand th< length of time, and had • m to move. When you first asked me U ill around, and yet 1 con. I thirty-two ininu' . Joins begins to . ind at thirty-seven minutes past 12 lie • ir. Jones asked bim various questions, as to what be (Mr. J.) bad on i. .a the times the questions rect, and bo with other things, Dr. C. being kept some dis- • . Mr. Turnbull moved that the labors of the com- mit Iter some discussion, the vote irly unanimous against it. The Committee adjourned to 3 o'clock, P. H., of Tuesday next. BSDAY, July Gth. The committee met according to adjournment. Dr. C. relates that Mr. Stone, student of the Medical School, to which Dr. Storer lectures, and in whom gentlemen had ex- pressed their confidence, had told him that he (Mr. Stone) had 534 APPENDIX. magnetized one of his friends, Mr. ; and Dr. C. adds, that he himself, on introduction has done the same — all which Mr. Stone, being present, confirms. "While in default of a subject, and there was no other present business before the committee, considerable debate arose on the question of Dr. Gregerson stating the experience he had had since the last meeting. It was voted that he be requested to state it. Dr. G. acknowledged he had had some new expe- rience, but declined stating it, because the vote was not unani- mous. A few had voted in the negative, saying that the char- acter of Dr. Gregerson was such as might give his statements more weight with this committee than they should have. Mr. , the friend, before mentioned, of Mr. Stone, is brought in, and submits to the operation, only on the condition expressed in the following vote, viz : — Voted, That the name of no new subject be mentioned out of this hall. Voted, That the sub-committee, appointed June 20th, officiate during the experiment on Mr. ; and in the absence of Dr. Lane, Dr. Adams is substituted. Dr. Storer and others, who are still skeptics, expres- them- selves as entirely satisfied of the conscientious and veracious character of Mr. , and that there is no collusion him and Dr. C. Age 26. The sub-committee report a soft pulse in the patient, at 96 per minute — skin moist — hands rather cold and moist — Dr. C.'s pulse at 96, He commences the operation at twenty minutes before five. At thirteen minutes before five, the pa- tient having appeared asleep for a few minutes, Dr. C. applies his hand above the patient's, as if to attract it upward — when directly the fingers of the sleeper begin to twitch and tremble, and presently his whole hand to tremble or vibrate through the space of at least an inch. Dr. C. now applies his, above the patient's other hand, and then that too twitches and trembles in like manner. In the same manner Dr. C. applies a common horse-shoe magnet, and with the same effect. Dr. C. says the patient is now in a semi-state. At two minutes Km o'clock, Dr. C. performs a few more passes, and asks, k% Air. , do you see me ? " to which Mr. answers, M Yes.'' APPENDIX, 535 " Any one else ? n Answer, " No." To calls, first imitating those of Dr. C, and then very loud calls of Mr. , made at his ears, by Dr. Storer, Dr. IMorrell, Dr. Adams, and others, he returns no answer. Dr. C. then says more gently, M Did you hear any noise, Mr. ? were, " No." A loud noise was her< md Dr. ' " Did you hear any noise then Other loud and very loud noises were then m h of them, the same question - pal by Di I the same answer given. The patient's reports that " the eyeball seems re an involuntary vibrating or roll:.. ported at 96, the sail.' tie the nose, ears, ribs, and otln ; rely ; while his brother, now I with other persons, he is very i nil answers from him in ■ M mental • Then being in which ! - " in the bar." OS iii the bar." A most U t lick . who had than fifteen minutes, and that no other 'it there in the mean time. In I - to the lower room in the pie, being to how many persons then I ; i\e." Ln fact there were four — but Dr. « n and he answers wing, by request : 4l What has of them in his band? 91 lie replies, " foot." It is rted thai the thing beld up was in fact a chair, and that it held by I QOW a-ked the patient what foot it was he meant, and b< " of a stool* 91 At fourteen mini .. Dr. C. commences the upward ke the patient. At twelve minutes before six he begins gradually to move his head, and at ten minutes before has it erect agaiftSt the chair, sighs deeply, shrugs the shoulders, and presses the hands against his face and eyes, rubbing the latter, and stretching as if just waked from a deep sleep. Thus his sleeping lasted for an hour and ten minutes, 536 APPENDIX. during all which time every part of him, unless moved by per- sons present, was perfectly composed as in sleep, except so far as was necessary to perform the acts above described, and ex- cept that a clapping of hands at his ear produced a slight mo- tion of the head, — and did the same on repetition. Mr. , gradually recovering himself, begins to remark that his arms were quite stiff and sore, from rowing yesterday, when he came here, so that he could not bend them, but are now limber and free from soreness, and his back which was quite stiff and sore when he came here, has now but little of soreness. Asked by the Rev. Dr. Greenwood — " How long do you think you have been asleep ? " he says, " About ten minutes " — " I recollect I saw Dr. Collyer and no one else." [Dr. C. says this must have been when he was in the semi state.] u I feel just as if waked from a natural sleep — I felt no one handle or touch me during my sleep, nor recollect any visions or dreams, or of hearing any noises." The Rev. Mr. ( Jannett Bays to him, u You pressed your chest and crossed your arms against your breast when waking, as though pained. Did you feel any pain during the last four or five minutes ? " He replies, u Not at all." He says he tried not to go to sleep, and thought of every thing he could to keep awake, — never saw any magnetizing till be saw it lately here by Dr. Collyer, and that he alv. a the leg of a chair the foot of it. Voted, That each of the sub-committee be requested to state his opinion upon the facts observed. 7)/-. Storer — "I was hitherto entirely skeptical, and consider this last as the only satisfactory experiment I have seen« I have now no doubt that Mr. was in an unnatural stmt Dr. Lewis — "I have had no doubts o( the other subjects having been in the unnatural state, and, of course, have none that this was so." Dr. Morrcll — states substantially the same as Dr. Storer. Dr. Adams — " I feel obliged to say, I think the patient was in a very strange and unnatural state of nerve." J. W. James, Esq. — concurs generally in the foregoing state- ments. Mr. Stone — says "I do not hesitate to say, I think Mr. was in an unnatural state, having seen him so twice before, APPENDIX. 537 producing it once myself, and having known him intimately as a room-mate." Dr. Storcr — in reply to a question, says that he has now no doubt that this unnatural state was produced by Dr. Collyer. " I have before been a skeptic, but am now free to say I am so no longer.'' The foregoing record of this meeting was then read, and sanctioned by all concerned. On motion of Dr. Storer, I, That the unanimous thanks of this committee be presented to the gentleman who has submitted himself to the tions of Dr. Collyer this afternoon. The committee baring ascertained from Dr. Collyer, that he ' some public i m from them, after having convinced them at th of ^o much trouble; and after ir. Gannett, Dr. Greenwood, and A. IYabody, it, and, . in which Eta . Green- .rnbull, Jones, Mil tapin, Drs. Storer, . 1 others, took following resolution was adopted, unanimously, with R( train froi ing principle of " Animal . it, in the experiments of l which aition of collusion, or by a cal princ am to them. Aft< ling forth lionoftbi the meeting 5, Chairman. It may. perba] action to ipect log- imine the fol- dculation oo of chances— showing the l improbabilil ct answers to .Mr. Park'- questic in the above report We shall 538 APPENDIX, refer to them by their numbers, as above given. It will be seen that we omit in our calculation many of the correct an- swers, just as if in those cases there were no other thing which his mind could be led to fix on for his guess, and, therefore, it were no guess at all. This, however is far from true, and is making a very large concession. — 1. In relation to the third answer, suppose (to be within bounds) that only one in four of the buildings in the city has a street on each side of it ; and the chances of giving this answer with correctness, in a mere guess, are seen to be one in four, and the ratio of probability is 1-4 2. On the eighth answer : in what proportion, let it be asked, of all the places within doors, can be seen at once, seven and more doors, i. e., as many as eight ? Proba- bly not one in fifty. Let, then, the ratio be ... . 1-50 3. On the tenth answer : suppose that, of all the inner doors in the city, one-twentieth of them are thus barred up at mid-day, and the chances of guessing such a de- scription, as the boy did, with correctness, would be only one in twenty; and the ratio of probability in guessing thus, 1-20 4. On the thirteenth answer : suppose that, of all the apartments in the city, the proportion which have in them, between one and two o'clock, P. M., just one person, and not more, and that person a man, and not a woman or child, is (we will say, to be within bounds,) one in five ; and the ratio of probability for one's guessing thus, rightly, would be 1-5 5. On the fourteenth answer, suppose that, of all the articles that would be likely to take attention in all the apartments of the city, not more than one in three could be called round, and the ratio of probability is . . 1-3 6. On the eighteenth answer, it may be safely said that of the articles in our apartments, not more than one in five could well be thus described in such severe Saxon, and the ratio of probability is 1-5 7. On the nineteenth, suppose other visible articles in apartments will average as numerous as windows, and then the chances of guessing a window with correctness will be one in two, and the ratio 1-2 APPENDIX. 539 Now multiply all these ratios together — (according to Edin. Encyc, Art. Chances, or Hedge's Logic), i X ^j X jftj X i X £ X i X £=^^73-^ and the chances of guessing correctly in all these instances, taken together, prove to he only one in more than half a mil- lion. Towards making up this number, each of the supposed failures counts only one by way of oflbet We think the estimate we have given of the probabilities in the instances we have selected above, is far less than they would bear, to say nothing of the correct answers we have omitted. But unless on insay this estimate as too large, he must admit (600,000 to 1) either that one of our citizens, whom we are accustomed tu tru-t, is duping the public on an u-ive and difficult plan, or else that there is something in clair\ This is nut the only case of this kind in which, in order to . it will be necessary to implicate, tu a similar certainty, (L e. many tb tO One) the veracity of .e of our 1 Me citizens. We think, therefore, the a: i ;uus, to say the h B. h. c. 1 ih/, indui Deacidif led using ^ s Treatment . • 04 PreservationTechnologies A WORLD LEADER IN PAPER PRESERVATION Thomson Park Onve i*jfTy TownsNp. PA 16086